Skip to main content

Full text of "Young people's history of Holland"

See other formats


£>eoole. '  s»   v-vi-^bovy 

cl      . 


gy  PUBLIC  LI 
333: 

BRARY     THf 

530V 

L  BRANC 

194 

H  LIBRAR 

9951 

ES 

.  (frnffite,  5D.3D. 


THE    STORY   OF    NEW    NETHERLAND.     Illustrated. 
I2mo,  $1.25,  net.     Postage  12  cents. 

YOUNG  PEOPLE'S  HISTORY  OF  HOLLAND.  Illus- 
trated. Crown  8vo,  $1.50,  net.  Postage  extra. 

BRAVE  LITTLE  HOLLAND,  AND  WHAT  SHE  TAUGHT 
US.  Illustrated.  i6mo,  $1.25.  In  Riverside  Library  for 
Young  People.  Small  i6mo,  75  cents.  In  Riverside 
School  Library.  Half  leather,  i6mo,  60  cents,  net. 

THE  AMERICAN  IN  HOLLAND.  Sentimental  Ramblings 
in  the  Eleven  Provinces  of  the  Netherlands.  With  a  map 
and  illustrations.  Crown  8vo,  $1.50. 

THE  PILGRIMS  IN  THEIR  THREE  HOMES,  — ENG- 
LAND, HOLLAND,  AND  AM  ERICA.  Illustrated.  i6mo, 
$1.25.  In  Riverside  Library  for  Young  People.  Small 
i6mo,  75  cents. 

JAPAN:  IN  HISTORY,  FOLK-LORE,  AND  ART.  In 
Riverside  Library  for  Young  People.  Small  i6mo,  75 
cents. 

MATTHEW  CALBRAITH  PERRY.    A  typical  American 

Naval  officer.     Illustrated.     Crown  8vo,  gilt  top,  $1.00. 
TOWNSEND  HARRIS,  First  American  Envoy  in  Japan. 

With  portrait.     Crown  8vo,  $2.00. 
THE  LILY  AMONG  THORNS.     A  Study  of  the  Biblical 

Drama  entitled  The  Song  of  Songs.     i6mo,  $1.25  ;  white 

cloth,  gilt  top,  $1.50. 

HOUGHTON   MIFFLIN  COMPANY 

BOSTON  AND  NEW  YORK 


AMALIA    VAN    SOLMS   (page  238) 
Wife  of  Prince  Frederick  Henry 


YOUNG   PEOPLE'S 

HISTORY  OF 

HOLLAND 


BY 


WILLIAM  ELLIOT  GRIFFIS 


WITH   ILLUSTRATIONS 


a 


. 

> '  ) 

. 

•  , 
• 
,  •   . 

•  • 


BOSTON    AND    NEW   YORK 
HOUGHTON    MIFFLIN  COMPANY 
Jftitoer^i&e  pire??  Cambridge 


THE  NEW  YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


A8TOR,   LENOX   AND 
TILDEN  FOUNDATIONS. 


COPYRIGHT    1903   BY  WILLIAM   ELLIOT  GRIFFIS 
ALL   RIGHTS   RESERVED 

Published  March,  iqoj 


•    .  ,    ' 

'  <  ,    c 

€•«        •   • 

,       ,        •        . 

C       •  6       t 


<  1 1 1 . 


'     '      '     , 
'      ' 


» 
«    •         '    •         •  . 


i ' 
..  ,  i 


'  * 

"        ' 


Gr 


To 
SISTER  MARGARET 

FIRST  COMRADE  IN  MY  TRAVELS   THROUGH 
THE  NETHERLANPS 


;  : 


., > » *  c. 

'  ^ 


i       « 

V      »  i  3  O      O 


t     c     ' 

'  '         ,  « 

I  (       «       C 

c        ' 


PREFACE 

• 

HOLLAND  had  a  great  part  in  the  making 
of  the  civilization  of  Europe.  By  a  very  un- 
usual training  amid  the  elements  of  nature, 
the  Dutch  were  educated  to  take  a  noble  part 
in  bringing  about  the  modern  world  of  ideas 
and  forces.  To  win  first  their  own  land  from 
the  waters,  to  make  it  habitable,  and  then  to 
gain  the  dominion  of  the  seas,  were  notable 
triumphs  of  mind  over  matter.  To  lead  in 
intellectual  liberty  and  freedom  in  religion,  in 
the  enlargement  of  the  bounds  of  human 
knowledge,  and  in  the  union  and  reconcilia- 
tion of  the  Orient  and  the  Occident,  were 
surely  great  things  to  be  done  by  a  country 
so  small  in  area  and  a  people  so  few  in  num- 
bers. 

In  this  outline  of  Dutch  history  for  young 
people,  I  have  laid  emphasis  upon  things  visi- 
ble and  tangible  and  upon  persons  and  events 
rather  than  upon  theories  and  tendencies.  I 


VI 1 


PREFACE 

have  given  most  space  to  the  picturesque  part 
of  the  Netherlands  story,  to  the  early  move- 
ments of  nations,  the  origin  of  cities,  the  cru- 
sades, the  counts,  feudalism,  the  eighty  years' 
war  for  freedom,  and  those  modern  move- 
ments that  have  shown  the  varied  life,  both  of 
the  old  republic  and  of  the  modern  kingdom 
which  fulfilled  the  hopes  of  republican  days. 

Every  American  should  know  the  history 
of  the  Netherlands,  the  fatherland  of  millions 
of  Americans  and  the  storehouse  of  prece- 
dents in  federal  government  from  which  those 
who  made  our  nation  borrowed  most  freely. 
Nowhere  in  Europe,  except  in  England,  can 
one  find  the  origin  of  so  much  that  is  deepest 
and  best  in  our  national  life  —  including  the 
highest  jewel  of  civilization,  religious  liberty 
—  as  in  Holland,  as  John  Adams  and  Benja- 
min Franklin  long  ago  confessed. 

In  a  larger  work,  for  adults,  laying  less  stress 
upon  the  picturesque  and  romantic  elements, 
I  hope  to  show  more  fully  what  the  northern 
Netherlands  have  accomplished,  what  their 
mark  has  been  upon  the  world  at  large,  what 
have  been  their  colonial  experiences,  what 

•  •  • 
Vlll 


PREFACE 

problems  they  have  solved,  and,  in  a  word, 
what  they  have  contributed  in  many  lines  of 
achievement  to  the  sum  of  human  civilization. 

W.  E.  G. 

ITHACA,  N.  Y.,  February,  1903. 


ix 


CONTENTS 


CHAPTER  PAGE 

I.  THE  AGE  OF  THE  TERPEN  i 

II.   LIFE  IN  THE  DAYS  BEFORE  LETTERS      .  9 

III.  THE  COMING  OF  THE  ROMANS     .        .        .17 

IV.  THE  FRANKS  AND  THE  FRISIANS     .        .  28 
V.   CHARLES  THE  GREAT 37 

VI.   FEUDALISM  :  THE  LORD  AND  HIS  VASSALS  44 

VII.  THE  CRUSADERS  IN  ASIA          ...  54 

VIII.   THE  FIRST  COUNTS  OF  HOLLAND       .        .  63 

IX.   THE  HOUSE  OF  HAINAULT       ...  80 

X.  THE  CODS  AND  HOOKS         ....  85 

XI.  JACQUELINE  OF  BAVARIA          ...  90 

XII.  THE  HOUSE  OF  BURGUNDY          .        .        .107 

XIII.  THE  CHARTER  OF  THE  GREAT  PRIVILEGE  116 

XIV.  THE   DUTCH  UNDER  THE  HOUSE  OF  AUS- 

TRIA            122 

XV.  THE  OLD  WORLD  BEFORE  GUNPOWDER  AND 

PRINTING 129 

XVI.  THE  SEVENTEEN  STATES  UNDER  ONE  HEAD  140 

XVII.   ORANGE  AND  THE  BEGGARS     .        .        .  147 
XVIII.   HEDGE  PREACHING  AND  THE  STORMING  OF 

IMAGES 156 

XIX.  MARCH   OF   THE    SPANIARDS  —  FLIGHT  OF 

THE  FLEMINGS         ....  164 
XX.   THE  BATTLE  OF  HEILIGERLEE    .        .        .171 
XXI.  THE  VICTORIES  OF  THE  WATER  BEGGARS  179 
XXII.   NAARDEN,  HAARLEM,  ALKMAAR,  AND  LEY- 
DEN  1 88 

XXIII.  ENGLAND  HELPS  HOLLAND  ....  206 

XXIV.  PRINCE  MAURICE  THE  UNION  GENERAL  .  222 

xi 


CONTENTS 

XXV.  THE  BLOOM  OF  THE  REPUBLIC    .        .        .  237 
XXVI.   THE  PARLIAMENTARY  REPUBLIC      .        .  246 
XXVII.  DUTCH  STADHOLDER  AND  BRITISH  KING  .  254 
XXVIII.   THE  Two  REPUBLICS  —  DUTCH  AND  AMERI- 
CAN     ........  262 

XXIX.  THE  FALL  OF  THE  REPUBLIC  .        .        .  267 
XXX.   THE  BATAVIAN  REPUBLIC  AND  THE  KING- 
DOM OF  HOLLAND           ....  274 

XXXI.   "  THE  DUTCH  HAVE  TAKEN  HOLLAND  "      .  283 
XXXII.  BELGIUM  AND  HOLLAND  UNITED  AND  SEPA- 
RATED            288 

XXXIII.  THE   Two   QUEENS,  EMMA   AND  WILHEL- 

MINA 295 

XXXIV.  THE  REIGN  OF  QUEEN  WILHELMINA  .        .  299 

APPENDIX 3°7 

INDEX 3*7 


xn 


LIST  OF   ILLUSTRATIONS 

PAGE 

AMALIA  VAN  SOLMS  (page  238).    .    .    .    Frontispiece. 
From  an  engraving  after  the  painting  by  G.  v.  Honthorst 

ESCAPE  TO  THE  TERPEN  FROM  THE  FLOODS.    ...        6 

From  Arend's  "  Geschiedenis  des  Vaderland  " 

ROMAN  ROADS  AND  ARCHITECTURE  IN  THE  NETHER- 
LANDS  20 

From  an  engraving  after  the  original  by  F.  v.  Bleyswyck 

CLAUDIUS  CIVILIS  ATTACKING  THE  ROMAN  CAMP  .    .      24 

From  an  engraving  after  the  original  by  L.  F.  du  Bourg 

THE  REFUSAL  OF  RADBOD 34 

From  an  engraving  after  the  original  by  L.  F.  du  Bourg 

THE  HAARLEM  CRUSADERS  CAPTURING  DAMIETTA    .      70 

From  an  engraving  of  the  eighteenth  century 

BATTLE  ON  THE   ICE  BETWEEN   FRISIANS  AND  HOL- 
LANDERS   82 

From  an  engraving  of  the  eighteenth  century 

THE  WIDOW  OF  COUNT  ALBERT    RENOUNCING   HER 

CLAIM 92 

From  Arend's  "  Geschiedenis  des  Vaderland  " 

JACQUELINE  GOING  FORTH  TO  SHOOT  AT  THE  POPIN- 
JAY   ioo 

From  Arend's  "  Geschiedenis  des  Vaderland  " 

A  BROKEN  DIKE 112 

From  an  engraving  of  the  eighteenth  century 

RIOTS  IN  NORTH  HOLLAND  ON  ACCOUNT  OF  HEAVY 

TAXES 124 

From  an  engraving  after  the  original  by  T,  Folkema 

xiii 


LIST   OF   ILLUSTRATIONS 

PREACHING  OUTSIDE  THE  WALLS  OF  ANTWERP     .    .    158 

From  an  engraving  of  the  eighteenth  century 

THE  WOMEN  SOLDIERS  OF  HAARLEM 192 

From  an  engraving  of  the  eighteenth  century 

NAVAL  BATTLE  IN  THE  ZUYDER  ZEE,  1573    ....     196 

From  an  engraving  after  the  original  by  H.  Vettewinkel 

THE  RELIEF  OF  LEYDEN 202 

From  an  engraving  after  the  original  by  H.  P.  Oosterhuis 

THE  ASSAULT  ON  COEVORDEN 226 

From  the  original  painting  by  Wouvermans 

THE  GREAT  SYNOD  OF  DORT 234 

From  an  engraving  by  B.  Picart 

WILLIAM  V.,  HEREDITARY  STADHOLDER 258 

From  an  engraving  after  the  original  by  P.  v.  Nymegen 

JOHANNES  DE  GRAEFF 264 

From  the  painting   in  the  New  Hampshire  House  of   Re- 
presentatives, Concord,  N.  H. 

THE  FRENCH  BOMBARDING  WILLEMSTAD 270 

From  an  engraving  after  the  original  by  Hausdorff  and  Bult- 
huis 

FOUNDERS  OF  THE  CONSTITUTION 284 

From  an  engraving  after  the  original  by  J.  W.  Pieneman 

ENTRY  OF  THE  DUTCH  ARMY  INTO  BRUSSELS   .    .     .    290 

From  a  lithograph  after  a  sketch  made  at  the  time 

QUEEN  WILHELMINA 296 

From  a  photograph 

THE  JOYOUS  ENTRY  INTO  AMSTERDAM,  1898      .    .    .    300 

From  a  photograph 


XIV 


YOUNG   PEOPLE'S   HISTORY   OF 
HOLLAND 


HISTORY  OF    HOLLAND 


CHAPTER  I 

THE    AGE    OF   THE    TERPEN 

I  AM  about  to  tell  you  the  story  of  a  land  that 
is  very  wonderful,  because  it  lies  for  the  most 
part  below  the  level  of  the  sea.  One  would 
not  suppose  that  there  are  people  who  dwell 
beneath  the  line  of  low  tide,  but  there  are,  and 
they  do  not  live  in  a  mine  or  down  at  a  ship's 
bottom,  either.  They  have  farms  and  gardens 
and  cows  and  horses  lower  than  the  surface, 
not  only  of  the  rivers,  but  of  the  ocean.  The 
tops  of  many  of  the  houses  are  on  a  line  with 
the  decks  of  steamers  passing  along,  and  in 
some  cases  even  the  chimneys  are  lower  than 
the  keels  of  rowboats.  Down  in  the  deep 
polders,  or  bottoms  of  the  drained  lakes,  it  is 
like  living  in  a  washbowl  or  a  cellar,  yet  it  is 
bright,  green,  and  sunny  there. 

The  cows  graze  where  the  fishes  used   to 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

feed,  and  the  flowers  bloom  where  seaweed 
once  grew.  To-day  as  we  rush  through  that 
country  on  the  flying  express  train  —  for  one 
can  travel  the  whole  length  of  the  land  in  day- 
light —  we  see  very  few  swamps,  marshes,  or 
waste  spaces.  Having  climbed  up  to  the  top 
of  the  great  church  towers,  and  looking  down, 
we  see  the  whole  land  dotted  with  cities,  towns, 
and  villages.  Hundreds  of  canals  cross  the 
landscape,  and  there  are  many  hollows,  rich  and 
low,  made  of  drained  land,  called  "  polders." 
About  five  millions  of  people  live  and  work  and 
enjoy  themselves  in  this  curious  country,  set  be- 
tween the  sand  hills  and  the  sea,  between  Bel- 
gium and  Germany.  Altogether  the  Nether- 
lands are  in  area  less  than  one  fourth  of  Iowa. 
One  would  hardly  look  in  such  a  place  for  a 
country  fit  for  human  beings  to  live  in.  Yet  the 
people  are  very  happy  in  their  cosy  homes,  and 
the  kingdom  is  like  a  garden.  How  was  it 
made  ? 

Long,  long  ago,  before  a  baby  cried  or  a  boy 
played  in  this  part  of  the  world,  the  great 
rivers  of  Europe  had  begun  to  flow.  Down 
out  of  what  is  now  Switzerland,  and  into  and 
through  Germany,  the  Rhine  forced  its  way. 
The  melting  ice  on  the  mountains  kept  the 
stream  always  full  and  often  in  flood.  From 


THE   AGE    OF   THE   TERPEN 

the  south  there  were  two  rivers,  called  the 
Maas  and  the  Scheldt,  which  brought  water 
and  mud  from  France  and  Belgium.  These 
three  rivers,  after  descending  from  the  high 
to  the  low  lands,  rolled  their  waters  over  the 
muddy  flats,  which  they  had  already  helped 
to  make  by  bringing  down  sand,  gravel,  and 
different  kinds  of  earth.  Every  year  they 
spread  more  soil  over  the  low  countries  by 
the  sea. 

Other  forces  helped  to  make  the  Dutch  do- 
main and  get  it  into  shape.  The  sun  shone 
hot  in  summer  and  dried  up  the  waters,  and  so, 
here  and  there,  above  the  swamps  and  fens, 
land  was  seen.  By  and  by  something  like  a 
seashore  appeared.  By  the  work  of  the  wind 
and  the  waves,  great  lines  and  heaps  of  sand 
began  to  form  into  banks  or  dunes.  In  course 

o 

of  time  these  dunes,  or  hills  of  sand,  have  be- 
come like  great  sea  walls,  to  make  a  coast  and 
keep  out  the  ocean.  They  rise  from  fifty  to 
three  hundred  feet  in  height,  and  are  many 
rods  wide.  The  dunes  furnish  homes  for  birds 
and  rabbits.  Sometimes  they  give  soil  enough 
for  the  raising  of  potatoes,  provided  no  storm 
comes  up  to  blow  the  farm  away  or  ingulf  it 
with  more  sand. 

Within  this  country,  birds,  beasts,  and  reptiles 

3 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

lived  before  men.  At  first  there  was  hardly 
anything  except  swamps  within  and  rivers, 
lakes,  and  lagoons  near  the  seashore.  Wher- 
ever the  land  did  come  nearly  up  to  or  just 
above  the  water,  there  was  a  thick  growth  of 
reeds,  rushes,  and  grasses,  in  which  millions  of 
wild  fowl  lived,  feeding  upon  the  fishes  and  in- 
sects that  were  to  be  found  on  the  sand  and  in 
the  vegetation.  Wherever  patches  of  dry  land 
appeared,  formed  of  sand  and  sand  only,  there 
was  little  or  no  growth  of  trees,  but  wherever 
the  rivers  overflowed,  leaving  a  top  dressing  of 
mud,  or  "  sea  clay  "  mixed  with  the  sand,  there 
trees  grew,  so  that  by  and  by  great  forests 
arose.  Ages  afterward,  when  men  spoke  a 
language  in  which  "  holt '  or  "  hout '  meant 
wood,  then  the  holt-land  or  hout-land,  that  is, 
wood-land,  was  called  Holland. 

Many  animals  roamed  in  these  forests. 
There  were  wild  boars,  with  hard  and  sharp 
tusks,  terrible  to  their  enemies.  Shaggy,  fierce, 
and  bold,  these  fellows,  swift  on  the  hoof  and 
strong  in  the  snout,  lived  on  acorns,  beechnuts, 
and  what  they  could  root  up  out  of  the  ground. 
Then  there  were  wolves,  swift,  strong,  with  terri- 
ble teeth,  and  able  to  stand  a  good  deal  of  hunger 
and  cold.  There  were  bears  that  fed  on  many 
kinds  of  food.  Having  warm  coats,  they  could 

4 


THE   AGE    OF   THE   TERPEN 

stand  the  bitterly  cold  winters  in  this  part  of 
the  world.  Finding  some  hollow  tree  or  hole 
in  the  ground,  the  brown  bear  could  live  all 
winter,  eating  nothing,  but  sleeping  most  of 
the  time. 

Looking  at  the  map  of  the  Netherlands  to- 
day, you  \vill  see  that  Zeeland  consists  of  a  net- 
work of  islands  formed  chiefly  by  the  Scheldt 
river  finding  its  way  to  the  sea.  Then  from 
the  point  where  the  Rhine  enters  Gelderland 
you  will  find  another  wonderful  network  of 
streams  flowing  with  the  Maas  and  the  Waal 
westward  to  the  sea,  making  more  islands. 
Further  north  is  the  Zuyder  Zee,  with  the  Ijssel 
and  the  Eem  and  the  Vecht  rivers  flowing  into 
it.  Beyond  North  Holland  and  Friesland 
again  is  a  line  of  half  a  dozen  islands.  Where 

o 

there  are  no  natural  rivers  the  Dutch  dig 
canals,  for  their  inland  commerce  is  very  great. 
Every  morning  the  newspapers  announce  the 
depth  of  water  in  each  stream,  so  that  the  men 
may  know  whether  they  can  sail,  row,  or  pole 
their  boats  where  they  want  to  go.  When  they 
meet  in  the  morning  their  greeting  is  not "  How 
do  you  do  ? '  but,  literally,  "  How  do  you 
sail  ?  " 

What  was  the  appearance  of  the  country 
when  the  first  human  beings  came  into  it? 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

Who  were  they  ?  How  did  they  look  ?  What 
did  they  wear  ?  What  did  they  find  to  eat  ? 
How  did  they  work,  build,  fight,  and  hunt? 
Above  all,  how  did  they  defend  themselves 
against  the  water  from  heaven  and  earth,  the 
rain  and  the  waves,  the  river  and  the  sea 
floods  ? 

We  cannot  tell  exactly,  but  we  know  that 
the  men  of  that  time  had  to  work  hard  for  a 
living,  and  to  find  food  and  clothes  for  their 
children.  In  such  a  country,  with  more  water 
than  solid  land,  their  first  care  was  not  to  get 
drowned.  Perhaps  it  took  more  thought  to  be 
able  to  guard  against  the  waters  than  to  fight 
the  wolves  and  bears.  Sometimes  the  wind 
would  blow  long  and  hard  from  the  west  and 
drive  the  ocean  waves  over  the  land.  In  the 
spring  time,  when  in  Switzerland  the  snow 
melted  and  in  the  French  mountains  the  rain 
fell  heavily,  the  waters  spread  over  the  coun- 
try and  the  land  was  lost  from  sight  again. 
Then  between  storm  and  flood  these  shaggy 
men,  half  naked  or  dressed  in  wolf  or  bear 
skins,  had  to  fight  for  their  lives  against  the 
water  as  their  foe. 

How  did  they  do  it  ?  And  how  were  their 
wives  able  to  guard  their  babies,  rear  their 

children,  and   dwell  in    safety  till  the  waters 

6 


en 
Q 
O 
O 


W 


w 
a, 

06 

w 
H 

W 


t-1 
O 

w 


u 

c/) 

w 


THE  NEW   YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


A8TOR,  LENOX  AND 
TU.OEN  FOUNDATION*. 

o 


THE   AGE    OF   THE   TERPEN 

went  down,  so  that  they  could  live  once  more 
in  their  huts  and  hunt  and  fish,  or  perhaps  cul- 
tivate the  ground  ?  Yet  it  is  from  the  cold, 
stormy  lands  of  northwestern  Europe  we  get 
our  dear  word  "  home." 

Well,  these  men  first  won  a  shelter  by  build- 
ing mounds  of  tough  clay  which  they  raised  a 
few  feet  above  the  level  of  some  piece  of  hard 
ground.  Sometimes  they  drove  in  stakes  of 
wood  to  keep  the  mound  or  little  hill  firm  when 
the  waters  rushed  in  around  it.  These  mounds 
were  called  "  terpen."  In  time,  many  hundreds 
of  these  terpen  dotted  the  land,  and,  in  the 
course  of  history,  when  men  became  more 
numerous,  stronger,  and  more  civilized,  the 
terp  became  the  centre  of  the  town.  On  it 
houses  were  built  or  the  great  church  rose  up 
toward  the  sky.  Yet  on  many  of  the  terpen 
no  village  rose,  and  these  became  grassy  knolls 
that  look  very  pretty  on  the  flat  landscape. 
Trees  have  grown  on  their  rich  soil,  the  cattle 
have  grazed  up  and  down  upon  them  and  used 
them  for  shade  in  summer,  and  to-day  picnic 
parties  play  and  dance  and  eat  luncheon  there. 
The  terpen  are  the  relics  of  the  early  Dutch 
world  before  history  was  written. 

Let  us  get  acquainted  with  the  men  and  wo- 
men, the  boys  and  girls,  who  lived  upon  these 

7 


HISTORY    OF    HOLLAND 

mounds.  Even  in  our  day  we  can  see  just  how 
many  kinds  of  people  have  dwelt  upon  or 
visited  the  terpen,  from  the  earliest  to  the  lat- 
est times,  from  the  men  who  saw  the  now  ex- 
tinct reindeers,  antelopes,  and  beavers  down  to 
those  who  have  looked  upon  Queen  Wilhel- 
mina  and  her  inauguration.  In  later  times 
chemists  have  found  that  the  earth  in  these 
terpen  is  very  rich  in  black  mould,  for  much  of 
it  is  the  prized  sea  clay,  which  everywhere  in 
the  Netherlands  makes  the  soil  that  the  farmer 
values  most.  Large  areas  of  the  Netherlands 
consist  only  of  sand,  which  is  nearly  worthless ; 
but  the  clays  deposited  by  the  sea,  river,  and 
stream,  and  the  drained  fen  land,  can  always  be 
made  into  good  pasture  or  grain  fields.  When 
the  sea  clay,  out  of  the  old  marshes,  is  put 
upon  the  sand,  then  rye,  oats,  and  grass  grow 
finely.  This  is  the  reason  why  the  terpen, 
once  out  in  the  country  beyond  the  towns  or 
cities,  are  not  now  often  to  be  seen.  They 
have  been  cut  down  and  sold  at  so  much  a  cart 
load.  I  have  seen  men  with  spades  digging 
them  down  and  hauling  away  this  "  pay  dirt' 
to  enrich  their  fields. 


8 


CHAPTER  II 

LIFE    IN    THE    DAYS    BEFORE    LETTERS 

WHAT  else  do  we  find  in  the  terpen  ? 

Many  things,  for  each  one  is  like  a  layer 
cake  or  plum  pudding,  rich  in  delights  to  the 
men  on  the  outlook  for  curiosities  of  past  ages. 
Under  the  first  two  or  three  feet  we  find  bits 
of  crockery  or  porcelain,  buttons,  horseshoes, 
or  such  things  as  are  modern  and  have  been 
known  only  in  recent  times.  In  the  next  few 
feet  below  we  find  coins  minted  in  the  old 
days  when  many  Dutch  cities  had  the  right  to 
stamp  money,  together  with  images  of  the 
saints,  crosses,  and  things  belonging  to  the 
middle  ages.  A  yard  or  so  further  down  we 
are  very  apt  to  fall  upon  Roman  coins  and 
images  of  Mars,  Venus,  and  Apollo,  with  odds 
and  ends  of  things  used  in  the  time  when  the 
Roman  soldier  camped  in  the  land.  Toward 
the  bottom  we  reach  relics  of  the  very  ancient 
days,  before  the  time  of  iron  and  steel,  such 
as  bronze  swords,  daggers,  and  spearheads. 
Either  with  these,  or  still  lower  down,  are 

9 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

things  made  of  stone  and  bone,  such  as  we 
may  pick  up  among  our  fields  where  the  red 
Indians  lived.  The  earth  or  the  animals  fur- 
nished material  for  the  needles,  combs,  scra- 
pers, chisels,  arrowheads,  fishhooks,  tools,  and 
ornaments  which  the  people  used  who  lived 
long  ago  before  the  time  of  written  history. 

These  terpen  are  to  be  seen  especially  in 
Friesland  and  Groningen.  Perhaps  the  men 
who  first  made  them  lived  about  the  same  time 
as  those  who  raised  the  dolmens,  or  heaped 
stones,  in  Drenthe,  called  Hunnebeden,  or 
"  giants'  graves."  There  are  fifty  or  sixty  of 
these  dolmens  left  yet,  and  We  see  them  best  at 
Rolde.  Each  one  consists  of  a  dozen  stones, 
more  or  less,  which  are  laid  around  to  form  a 
kind  of  wall,  or  huge  box,  and  on  top  of  these 
are  placed  two  or  three  of  the  larger  boulders, 
each  as  big  as  a  cart.  How  did  these  great 
rocks  get  where  they  are  ? 

Well,  ages  aor>,  when  most  of  Holland  was 

'        O  O 

under  the  water  of  the  ocean,  great  glaciers, 
from  which  icebergs  are  made,  extended  all  the 
way  down  from  Norway  to  France  and  the 
Netherlands.  They  brought  with  them,  as  ice- 
bergs do,  large  masses  of  rock,  besides  millions 
of  pebbles  and  many  cubic  miles  of  gravel. 
In  later  ages  they  floated  around  and  above 

10 


LIFE   IN   THE   DAYS   BEFORE   LETTERS 

the  land  that  was  to  be,  and  sometimes  they 
grounded.  When  the  ice  melted,  this  stony 
material  from  Sweden  and  Norway  was  left  on 
Dutch  soil.  Thus,  whether  by  iceberg  or  by 
glacier  or  both,  Drenthe  was  covered  with 
these  boulders,  and  other  parts  of  the  country 
were  filled  with  the  "  drift,"  or  small  stones  and 
gravel. 

This  time  of  the  world's  history  has  been 
named  Ragnarok,  or  "  The  Twilight  of  the 
Gods."  In  the  mythology  or  fairy  tales  of  the 
Norsemen,  we  are  told  about  Woden,  who  was 
a  great  hero  living  during  the  age  of  the  gla- 
ciers, and  of  Thor,  who,  with  his  mighty  ham- 
mer, helped  to  shape  the  world. 

No  doubt  the  men  who  lived  in  Drenthe 
and  raised  these  tombs,  or  altars,  or  whatever 
they  were,  worked  very  hard  with  the  lever  and 
the  roller,  prying  and  turning  over  these  huge 
stones.  It  must  have  cost  great  labor  to  get 
them  into  position.  We  can  imagine  the  boys 
and  girls  of  this  wild  age  looking  on  and  being 
interested,  while  the  women  cooked  the  food 
and  worked  equally  hard  to  take  care  of  the 
babies  and  to  make  the  husbands  and  fathers 
comfortable. 

We   can    only   guess   how  people  lived  in 

those   far-away   times   by   studying   tribes   of 

n 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

savages  whose  ways  of  life  are  somewhat  like 
those  of  the  terpen  folks.  This  we  know,  how- 
ever, that  they  had  to  toil  hard  to  live.  With 
stone  knives  they  skinned  the  animals  killed 
with  spear  or  arrow,  and  cut  the  flesh  into 
pieces  for  boiling  or  roasting.  Their  axes 
were  made  of  chipped  or  sharpened  flints 
tied  to  wooden  handles,  and  with  these  they 
cracked  open  the  marrow  bones. 

To  split  wood,  make  boats,  and  provide  fuel 
for  warmth  with  such  tools  meant  a  good  deal 
of  labor.  Yet  even  in  those  days  the  people 
played  as  well  as  worked.  We  can  see  in  the 
museums,  from  what  has  been  found  in  the 
terpen,  that  boys  and  girls,  men  and  women, 
were  as  fond  of  adorning  themselves  then  as 
we  are  now.  They  bound  up  their  hair,  first 
with  withes  or  cords,  and  then  with  bands  of 
bronze.  We  can  handle  their  hairpins,  hair- 
rings,  bracelets,  finger  rings,  necklaces,  dia- 
dems, and  various  ornaments  and  implements 
made  to  hold  clothing  together.  The  girls 
and  women  in  those  days,  as  in  ours,  liked  to 
look  pretty.  The  men  took  great  pains  and 
care  with  their  weapons  to  make  them  sharp 
and  powerful. 

With  the  clay,  which  they  could  easily  dig 
up  all  around  them,  they  moulded  urns,  jars, 


12 


LIFE    IN   THE    DAYS   BEFORE   LETTERS 

plates,  cups,  and  many  kinds  of  cooking  and 
drinking  vessels.  By  baking  the  clay  in  the 
fire,  they  made  it  hard,  so  that  they  were  able 
to  keep  not  only  food  but  water  and  liquids. 
To  grind  their  grain  they  made  hand-mills 
out  of  stones.  In  summer  the  men  hunted 
and  fished,  enjoying  the  sweet  breath  of  the 
woods  and  meadows.  In  winter  they  tied  on 
their  feet  skates  made  of  bone  and  glided  over 
the  smooth  ice.  I  have  no  doubt  that  though 

o 

we  could  not,  yet  they  did  enjoy  their  kind  of 
life. 

In  religion  these  people  worshiped  gods 
who  were  a  good  deal  like  themselves,  yet  per- 
haps they  were  as  truly  religious,  according  to 
their  light,  as  we  are.  They  had  no  temples 
or  sacred  buildings,  but  certain  trees  were  holy, 
and  no  one  must  tread  in  those  parts  of  the 
forest  that  were  counted  sacred,  without  being 
clean  in  body  and  pure  in  thought.  The  trees 
in  the  groves  of  the  gods  were  believed  to  have 
powers  of  healing.  Many  a  mother  brought 
her  sick  baby  before  the  sacred  fir  or  the  vine- 
covered  oak,  praying  to  the  god  Woden  to 
heal  the  child.  Often  men  in  disease  were 
carried  a  long  distance  by  their  friends  and 
laid  before  the  holy  trees,  hoping  for  health 
again.  Sometimes  their  religion  took  what 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

seems  to  us  a  very  cruel  form.  They  feared 
the  wrath  of  the  gods,  who,  they  thought,  de- 
lighted in  war  and  death.  Very  tall  figures, 
made  in  human  shape  of  plaited  osiers  or  wil- 
low branches,  were  filled  with  prisoners  taken 
in  battle,  or  with  people  who  were  believed  to 
have  wrought  witchcraft,  or  who  were  supposed 
to  have  made  the  gods  angry.  Then  this  great 
wooden  framework,  full  of  human  beings,  was 
set  on  fire  and  all  within  were  burned  to  ashes. 
This  was  supposed  to  please  the  gods,  who 
loved  blood  and  slaughter,  even  as  the  warriors 
themselves  did.  When  a  chief  or  great  man 
died,  they  laid  his  body  upon  a  very  high  pile 
of  wood  and  ranged  around  him  his  servants, 
who  were  then  put  to  death.  They  led  up  his 
horse  and  his  dog,  and  these  also  they  killed 
with  their  stout  knives.  Then  they  placed  all 
the  dead  bodies  on  the  heap,  setting  the  whole 
on  fire.  All  this  they  did  in  the  hope  that  the 
master  would  not  be  lonely,  but  have  company 
in  the  spirit  world.  Often  the  wife  died  thus 
with  her  husband. 

Yet  there  were  bright  days  too,  for  these 
people  were  much  like  ourselves.  They  liked  to 
have  their  fun  and  frolic.  They  showed  their 
gladness  when  winter  had  gone  and  summer 
had  come.  They  marked  the  passing  of  time 

H 


LIFE   IN   THE    DAYS   BEFORE   LETTERS 

when  the  spring  days  began  to  lengthen  and 
the  autumn  nights  grew  shorter,  and  again 
when  the  hours  between  sunrise  and  sunset 
were  fewer  and  there  was  less  time  for  outdoor 
life.  The  long  nights  made  them  gather 
round  the  fireplace  and  tell  wonderful  stones 
of  great  heroes  and  gods,  and  of  men  and  wo- 
men who  had  set  shining  examples  of  duty  or 
prowess.  They  celebrated  what  we  call  the 
sun's  solstices,  the  winter  one,  which  comes  on 
December  22d,  near  our  Christmas,  and  the 
summer  one,  which  comes  on  June  2ist,  and 
also  the  equinoxes  of  the  spring  and  autumn. 

Perhaps  one  of  the  greatest  days  of  all  the 
year  was  the  May  festival,  when  the  women 
and  children  put  flowers  on  their  heads, 
wreathed  them  over  their  shoulders  and  around 
their  waists,  and  made  long  garlands  of  green- 
ery decked  with  blossoms.  A  great  tree  was 
cut  down  and  drawn  out  from  the  forest  into 
the  open.  Its  branches  were  chopped  off  and 
it  was  set  up  as  the  May  pole,  around  which 
the  people  danced  and  sang,  while  one  pretty 
maiden  was  made  the  queen.  To  her  they  all 
paid  honors. 

Thus,  long,  long  before  such  things  as  clocks 
or  almanacs  were  known,  or  there  was  any 
exact  method  of  keeping  time  or  marking  his- 

'5 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

tory,  the  centuries  slipped  away,  while  the  land 
was  forming  into  its  present  shape,  or  rather 
toward  it.  Further  south,  below  what  is  now 
the  Zuyder  Zee,  stretched  great  wastes  of  sand 
called  the  Veluwe,  or  Vile  land,  while  in  the 
great  island  next  south  to  it  was  the  Betuwe, 
or  the  Better  Land  or  meadow.  Still  further 
south  and  to  the  southwest,  between  hill  and 
sea,  was  more  of  the  low  land  which  now  forms 
Belgium. 

How  many  people  there  were  in  all  these 
lowlands  before  Christ  was  born  we  cannot 
tell.  Living  amid  their  own  swamps,  occupied 
as  they  were  in  fishing  and  in  hunting,  and 
often  at  war,  they  hardly  knew,  except  by 
vague  and  strange  reports,  of  the  bright,  sunny 
lands  in  the  south,  where  dwelt  people  who 
had  cities,  streets,  canals  and  aqueducts, 
houses  of  brick  and  marble,  painting,  sculp- 
ture, and  books.  About  these  things  the  peo- 
ple in  the  north  of  Europe  knew  and  cared  no 
more  than  the  savage  Indians  of  America  used 
to  care  for  farms,  shops,  or  stores.  They  were 
in  love  with  their  wild  life  as  fishermen  and 
hunters  and  worshipers  of  Woden.  To  them 
these  marshy  lowlands,  under  cloudy  skies  and 
often  hidden  in  fog,  made  home. 


16 


CHAPTER   III 

THE    COMING    OF   THE    ROMANS 


IT  was  wonderful  and  exciting  news  when 
in  the  year  54  B.  c.  swift  runners  brought  word 
that  the  south  men,  the  Romans,  were  march- 
ing by  the  thousands  toward  the  Rhine.  From 
their  lookouts  in  the  treetops,  these  stalwart 
men  of  the  north  saw  the  flashing  brass  hel- 
mets of  the  Roman  soldiers.  At  first  they 
were  afraid  of  them.  They  saw  that  these 
warriors  from  sunny  lands  wore  tunics,  or  short 
coats,  with  greaves  on  their  lower  limbs,  but  not 
leggings  or  trousers,  like  the  men  of  colder 
climes.  At  night  they  wrapped  themselves  in 
cloaks.  They  carried  short,  iron  swords,  and 
shields  made  strong  with  hide  and  metal.  On 
their  bodies  they  had  armor,  their  shoulders 
being  especially  well  guarded  with  bands  and 
plates  of  bronze. 

These  southern  men  were  not,  as  a  rule,  so 
tall  as  those  in  the  north.  Indeed,  many  of 
them  seemed  to  the  Germans  to  be  mere  boys. 
So  the  tribesmen  plucked  up  courage,  gathered 

17 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

themselves  together,  and  went  out  with  their 
spears  and  swords,  expecting  to  drive  the  Ro- 
mans away  and  kill  them  all,  but  they  had 
made  a  great  mistake.  The  Romans  were 
not  only  brave,  but  they  were  cool  and  obeyed 
orders.  They  stood  together  close  in  ranks 
and  could  not  be  driven  back,  even  when  the 
heavier  tribesmen  rushed  at  them  in  great 
crowds. 

It  was  the  Roman  discipline  that  conquered. 
These  "  boys "  kept  their  ground,  first  receiv- 
ing  the  blows  of   the  barbarians  upon  their 
shields,  and  then  thrusting  the  enemy  through 
with  their  short  swords.     There  was  no  steel 
in  those  days,  and  if  a  soldier  bent  his  sword, 
he  put   it  under  his  foot  and  straightened  it 
out  again.     In  the  end,  Caesar,  who  had  eight 
legions,  or  about  fifty  thousand  men,  conquered 
the  Netherlands  south  of  the  Rhine.     Other 
generals  followed  Caesar,  and  soon  the  golden 
eagles  and  banner  of  Rome  were  seen  all  over 
the  land.    The  Batavians,  or  the  men  who  lived 
on  the  island  of  Betuwe — famous  for  its  pas- 
tures—  and  the  regions  around,  were  such  good 
fighters  on  horseback  that  they  were  invited, 
13  B.  c.,  to  enter  the  Roman  army.     This  they 
did,  becoming  the  life  or  body  guard  of  the 
Roman  emperor.     They  served  as    Batavian 

18 


THE  COMING  OF  THE  ROMANS 

cavalry  in  many  campaigns,  even  in  far-off 
southern  Europe  and  in  Greece,  once  deciding 
a  great  battle  by  their  valor. 

The  history  of  the  Netherlands  becomes 
brighter  after  the  Romans  entered  the  country, 
for  these  southerners  understood  writing,  and 
letters  bring  light.  Caesar  has  told  his  story 
in  Latin,  which,  though  it  seems  to  the  school- 
girls and  schoolboys  beginning  it  hard  to 
translate,  is  very  clear.  Yet  Caesar  wrote  only 
about  the  earliest  wars.  We  wish  some  other 
Romans,  during  the  following  centuries,  had 
written  equally  well  about  later  events  and 
their  own  lives  and  work ;  for  very  many  people 
came  up  from  Italy  and  the  southern  countries, 
and  thousands  of  them  lived  in  the  Nether- 
lands during  five  hundred  years.  They  built 
roads,  canals,  and  forts,  laid  out  farms,  and 
reared  houses  and  temples.  They  made  a  very 
large  walled  camp  on  the  seashore  near  Ley- 
den,  which  they  called  the  House  towards  Brit- 
ain. One  general,  named  Drusus,  1 1  B.  c., 
had  a  long  canal  cut,  which  joined  the  waters 
of  the  Rhine  and  the  Ijssel  rivers,  so  that  they 
flowed  to  Lake  Flevo,  where  is  now  the  Zuyder 
Zee,  and  out  to  the  German  Ocean  through  the 
Vlie.  After  that,  a  Roman  galley  could  be 
rowed  from  inland  Germany  to  the  British 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

Isles,  or  enter  from  the  North  Sea  into  the 
heart  of  Europe. 

One  of  the  canals,  dug  near  Leyden  and 
called  the  Vliet,  is  probably  the  same  one  down 
which,  many  centuries  later,  the  Pilgrim  Fa- 
thers began  their  journey  to  America. 

We  know  fairly  well  what  cities  there  were 
in  the  times  of  the  empire  and  where  the  gar- 
risons were  placed.  While  the  Romans  had 
their  farms,  the  natives  kept  their  marks, 
or  divisions  of  land,  and  thus  the  one  set  of 
men  learned  a  great  deal  from  the  other.  A 
mark  wras  a  tract  of  land  owned  by  a  tribe  or 
family  in  common.  All  the  people  could  cut 
wood  from  the  forest  for  their  fires  or  to  make 
houses  or  tools,  "and  all  were  allowed  to  keep 
their  pigs  in  the  woods,  or  to  let  their  cows 
graze  upon  the  meadows,  for  the  land  of  the 
community  was  free  to  all.  On  the  other  hand, 
the  Romans  measured  and  divided  their  land 
into  farms,  each  owned  by  one  person.  In 
later  ages  some  of  the  Roman  laws  and  cus- 
toms were  adopted  by  these  Germanic  tribes 
that  became  Dutch  and  English,  so  that  not  a 
few  Latin  words,  now  spelled  "  farm,"  "  canal," 
"street,"  "port,"  or  "common,"  have  remained 
in  our  language.  Even  the  "common,"  or 
"  green,"  which  we  see  in  our  towns  and  vil- 


20 


THE  KEW 

PUBUC  IIBRARY 


.  CENOX  AND 
FOUNDATIONS 

' 


ROMAN   ROADS   AND  ARCHIT: 


JRE    IN   THE   NETHERLANDS 


THE  COMING  OF  THE  ROMANS 

lages,  is  a  relic  of  these  old  days.  In  time  the 
Romans  became  Christians,  and  thus,  through 
them,  one  of  the  greatest  blessings  brought 
into  this  northern  land  was  the  religion  of 
Jesus,  which  softened  manners  and  kindled  in 
men's  hearts  the  greatest  of  all  hopes. 

Let  us  look  at  some  of  the  Roman  cities  in 
the  far  north.  Beginning  at  the  south,  there 
was  Noviomagum,  which  is  now  called  Ny- 
megen.  We  must  remember  that  these  Latin 
names,  sooner  or  later,  became  changed  into 
Dutch,  and  that  the  names  we  now  see  on  the 
map  have  grown  out  of  the  Latin ;  as,  for  ex- 
ample, Vianen,  from  Fanum  Dianae,  or  Diana's 
Shrine.  In  some  cases  the  Latin  name,  like 
Lugdunum,  now  perhaps  the  city  of  Leyden, 
was  only  the  southern  man's  way  of  pronoun- 
cing Lugdun,  the  name  already  there,  which 
has  in  it  "  lug,"  now  our  word  "  look."  Among 
the  islands  of  Zeeland,  Roman  sailors  and  mer- 
chants lived  and  had  their  altars  and  temples, 
but  we  do  not  know  the  exact  place  of  any 
ancient  town  or  city  there.  "  Utrecht  "  is  only 
the  late  form  changed  from  words  meaning  the 
Upper  or  Old  Ford,  near  a  settlement,  where 
the  water  was  so  low  as  to  be  easily  crossed. 
Further  on  the  west  was  the  great  camp  on 
the  seashore,  called  the  House  toward  Britain, 

21 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

which  was  the  place  whence  the  Roman  ships 
could  sail  over  to  the  British  islands  to  supply 
the  garrisons  there,  and  to  which  galleys  could 
row  or  sail  from  the  direction  of  sunset.  A 
little  south  was  a  colony  at  the  place  now 
called  Voorburg.  Further  up  in  the  north 
was  the  Flevo  castle,  standing  about  where 
Hoorn  now  is.  Just  north  of  Lake  Flevo, 
which  has  since  become  the  Zuyder  Zee,  was 
a  holy  forest,  far-stretching  and  gloomy,  in 
which  were  many  sacred  trees.  To  the  north- 
east was  Groningen.  The  channels  of  most  of 
the  Dutch  rivers  were  then  as  they  are  now. 

The  natives  had  not  only  their  witches  and 
wizards,  but  also  their  fortune-tellers  and  those 
whom  they  called  weird  women,  who  foretold 
that  which  would  come  to  pass.  One  of  them, 
living  near  the  spot  where  the  river  Lippe 
flowed  into  the  Rhine,  was  the  virgin  Velleda. 
She  dwelt  alone  in  the  forest,  far  above  the 
ground,  in  a  tower  or  platform  built  in  the 
trees.  Many  people  believed  that  she  could 
not  only  see  into  the  future,  but  could  assure 
success  to  those  whom  she  favored.  This  wo- 
man was  a  great  friend  of  a  native  noble  named 
Claudius.  His  parents  had  not  so  called  him 
when  a  boy,  but  on  becoming  a  soldier  in  the 
Roman  army,  he  took  the  name  of  Claudius 

22 


THE   COMING    OF   THE    ROMANS 

Civilis,  which  shows  that  he  was  a  Roman 
citizen.  He  served  twenty-five  years  in  the 
legions  and  under  the  golden  eagles,  fighting 
for  the  empire  wherever  he  was  sent.  He 
lived  a  long  time  in  Italy,  in  the  city  on  the 
Tiber,  but  he  never  lost  his  love  for  his  people 
or  his  country  in  the  north. 

When  Claudius  and  his  brother  were  charged 
with  crime,  they  were  sent  prisoners  to  Rome. 
His  brother  was  put  to  death,  but  he  escaped. 
He  then  determined  to  free  his  country  also. 
Coming  home,  he  told  Velleda,  the  fortune- 
teller, his  ambition.  She  promised  that  if  he 
would  lead  his  countrymen,  he  could  drive  away 
the  Romans  and  become  emperor.  When 
she  told  others  that  Claudius  was  their  cham- 
pion, the  tribes  rallied  round  him.  Knowing 
how  to  build  battering  rams  and  engines  to 
throw  stones  and  darts,  he  attacked,  A.  D.  70, 
his  enemy's  camps.  Yet  although  he  won 
some  victories,  he  was  not  very  successful. 
The  Romans  beat  back  his  forces  or  persuaded 
them  to  desert  their  leader.  Crafty  as  they 
were,  they  even  sent  to  Velleda  and  won  her 
over  to  their  cause.  She  now  began  to  fore- 
tell the  ruin  of  Civilis  and  the  triumph  of  his 
enemies. 

We  do  not  know  what  became  of  Claudius 

23 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

Civilis,  but  after  him  the  natives  gathered  to- 
gether and  chose  another  leader,  whose  name 
was  Brinio.  Theirs  was  a  rough  kind  of  an 
election.  Had  we  been  there  we  should  have 
seen  thousands  of  warriors  of  various  tribes 
met  together,  with  their  spears  and  swords  and 
shields.  Stalwart  fellows,  with  long  mustaches 
and  streaming  hair,  or  with  their  locks  bound 
up  in  a  knot,  dressed  in  leather  or  skins  with 
the  fur  on,  bearing  shields  of  hide  or  wicker- 
work,  held  a  council  and  made  many  speeches. 
Then  after  it  had  been  pretty  well  agreed  who 
should  be  chief,  a  half  dozen  or  more  strong 
warriors  would  lead  out  the  elected  man.  Pla- 
cing him  upon  their  big  shields,  they  hoisted 
him  up  in  the  air,  resting  the  burden  on  their 
shoulders.  Standing  on  this  platform  of  hu- 
man muscle,  holding  his  sword  in  one  hand 
and  gesturing  with  the  other,  Brinio  addressed 
his  warriors  in  a  rousing  speech.  He  had  on 
a  tunic,  held  together  by  a  belt,  in  which  a 
knife  was  thrust.  Over  his  shoulders  hung  a 
skin  mantle,  a  hide  was  wrapped  around  his 
legs,  and  on  his  feet  were  sandals.  The  great 
crowd  of  war-men  set  up  a  shout,  hailed  him  as 
their  chief,  and  rattled  the  flat  of  their  swords 
and  spears  against  their  shields.  Then  he  led 

them  forth  to  battle. 

24 


CJ 

2". 
<: 

S 

Q 
Ptf 

a 
K 
H 

O 
^ 

^H 

^ 
CJ 
< 

H 


u 

C/3 

D 

5 
t> 
< 
j 

u 


THE  NEW  YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


ASTOR,  LENOX  AND 
TILDE.N  FOUNDATIONS. 


THE  COMING  OF  THE  ROMANS 

These  events  took  place  in  the  years  69  and 
70,  when  in  the  far  east  another  Roman  army 
under  Titus  was  besieging  Jerusalem. 

But  in  A.  D.  70  it  was  not  yet  for  either  a 
Claudius  or  a  Brinio  to  make  headway  against 
the  Romans.  The  southern  rulers  still  held 
their  camps,  garrisons,  and  cities,  marched  up 
and  down  the  roads,  and  collected  the  taxes  in 
the  northern  lowlands.  There  were  others 
besides  soldiers  among  these  people  from  the 
sunny  south,  for  the  women  had  come  to  make 
homes  as  well  as  camps.  The  boys  and  girls 
born  in  the  settlements  amid  this  watery  land 
were  sent  to  Italy  for  their  education.  To- 
day, as  the  spade  and  plough  disturb  the  soil, 
mirrors,  bracelets,  images,  jewelry,  sculpture, 
children's  toys,  and  many  a- pretty  thing  brought 
from  the  land  on  the  Mediterranean  are  turned 
up.  Dutch  writers  tell  wonderful  stories  of  the 
Roman  world  passed  away. 

By  and  by,  in  the  latter  part  of  the  third 
century,  when  tribes  of  men  from  the  north 
and  east  broke  into  the  land  and  captured  the 
Roman  camps  and  cities,  the  cohorts  were 
sent  to  the  frontier,  and  they  drove  back  these 
new  Germans  from  over  the  border.  On  the 
eastern  frontier,  then  as  now,  most  of  the  land 
was  swampy  or  sandy,  but  a  strip  of  hard  soil 

25 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

crossed  it,  making  a  gateway  into  the  Low 
Country.  Here  the  Romans  built  a  camp  and 
formed  a  garrison,  at  what  is  now  called  Coe- 
vorden,  as  well  as  at  Groningen.  Thus  the 
invaders  were  held  back,  for  the  great  empire 
of  Rome  was  still  strong  and  the  legions  were 
kept  in  splendid  discipline. 

But  gradually  most  of  the  soldiers  found  in 
the  Roman  army  were  men  of  northern  birth. 
They  did  not  enjoy  fighting  for  the  distant 
emperor  in  Italy.  They  favored  their  own 
countrymen  more  and  more.  At  any  rate, 
about  the  middle  of  the  fifth  century,  the  Ger- 
manic tribes  all  united  together,  and  resolved 
to  drive  the  Romans  southward,  and  to  occupy 
the  whole  land  for  themselves.  Encouraged 
by  their  weird  women,  and  led  by  brave  and 
stalwart  leaders,  they  streamed  over  the  land. 
Though  sometimes  beaten  back,  they  captured, 
one  after  the  other,  the  Roman  camps  and 
castles,  and  were  finally  successful.  In  a  few 
years  most  of  the  marble  images  and  altars 
were  overthrown,  and  the  Roman  temples  de- 
faced and  ruined.  The  jewels,  ornaments,  toys, 
and  pretty  things  brought  from  Italy  became 
playthings  for  the  barbarian  children.  The 
mosaic  floors  sank  under  the  earth.  The  very 

places  where  there  were  Roman  houses  and 

26 


THE  COMING  OF  THE  ROMANS 

gardens  were  overgrown  with  bushes  and  for- 
gotten. Trees  sprang  up,  forests  covered  the 
ploughed  land,  and  once  more  much  of  the 
country  was  as  wild  as  nature  could  make  it. 
The  arts  of  brickmaking  and  stonebuilding 
were  forgotten,  and  the  story  of  the  Romans 
became  myth  and  fairy  tale. 

By  the  sixth  century,  Germans,  Franks,  Sax- 
ons, and  Angles  had  occupied  the  whole  land, 
and  new  tribes,  along  with  the  Frisians,  filled 
the  country.  There  was  pagan  darkness  again, 
as  of  old.  It  is  now  time  for  us  to  look  again 
towards  the  Mediterranean,  to  see  what  next 
the  bright  sunny  south,  rich  in  glorious  cities 
and  Christian  temples,  will  send  into  this  land 
of  forest,  fen,  and  marsh.  Now  that  in  these 
warmer  south  countries,  so  much  nearer  Pales- 
tine, the  church  had,  for  the  most  part,  taken 
the  place  of  the  pagan  temple,  we  should  ex- 
pect the  rays  of  Christianity  to  shine  brightly 
in  the  far  north  also.  Even  to  this  day  the 
Latin  motto  of  Utrecht  University  means, 
"  Sun  of  (Divine)  Justice  shine  on  us,"  while 
that  of  her  child  in  the  new  world,  Rutgers 
College,  at  New  Brunswick,  in  New  Jersey, 
means,  "Sun  of  (Divine)  Justice  shine  also  on 
the  West." 


CHAPTER  IV 

THE    FRANKS    AND   THE    FRISIANS 

LIKE  the  great  floods  from  river  and  sea  that 
from  time  to  time  roll  over  the  Netherlands, 
hiding  for  a  while  the  face  of  the  country  be- 
neath the  waters,  while  leaving  new  deposits 
of  soil,  so  was  the  great  overstreaming  of  the 
nations  from  the  north  and  east  during  the 
fifth  and  sixth  centuries,  that  filled  the  land 
with  new  people.  The  men  and  boys  marched 
on  foot,  the  women  and  little  folk  traveled  in 
wagons.  When  they  reached  the  seashore, 
thousands  of  them  sailed  on  westward  over  the 
North  Sea  and  settled  in  England. 

When  we  look  again  at  the  Low  Countries, 
we  find  them  occupied  chiefly  by  two  great 
peoples,  called  the  Frisians  on  the  north  and 
the  Franks  on  the  south.  Between  these  two 
peoples  there  was  often  war,  but  in  time  of 
peace  much  trade  and  barter.  Their  lan- 
guages were  not  very  different,  so  that  they 
could  talk  easily  with  each  other.  The  Fri- 
sians were  really  a  mixture  of  many  people. 

28 


THE   FRANKS   AND    THE   FRISIANS 

Their  language  was  very  much  like  that  of 
the  tribes  that  had  crossed  the  North  Sea  into 
England,  and  have  since  been  called  "  the 
Anglo-Saxons."  We  can  see  now  how  this 
general  likeness  of  the  speech  of  the  Teutonic 
tribes  would  help  to  spread  the  religion  of 
Jesus  when  missionaries  came  into  the  land. 
The  Netherlanders  were  pagans,  and  if  they 
were  to  be  converted  to  Christianity,  the  work 
must  be  done,  as  it  is  always  done  when  a 
nation  changes  or  improves  its  religion,  by 
missionaries. 

Most  of  the  old  Celtic  tribes  that  had  lived 
in  the  Low  Countries  were  driven  further  south 
below  the  Rhine,  which  was  now  the  general 
boundary,  no  longer  between  Romans  and 
Germans,  but  between  the  new  nations.  The 
neighbors  of  the  new  Netherlanders  were  called 
Franks,  or  Spear-men,  as  the  Saxons  were 
Knife-men.  These  Prankish  tribes  were  de- 
scendants of  the  same  people  who  had  lived  in 
the  regions  along  the  river  Rhine  in  Caesar's 
day,  and  with  whom  the  Romans  had  come  into 
contact.  The  Franks  entered  the  Netherlands 
between  the  years  300  and  361  A.  D.  When  in 
the  fifth  century  they  began  to  move  southward, 
they  made  a  confederacy  and  called  them- 
selves Franks,  which  then  meant  freemen. 

29 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

There  were  two  divisions  of  them.  One  was 
the  Salic,  or  Salian,  group  of  tribes,  living 
around  the  lower  or  western  Rhine  and  the 
Maas  and  the  Scheldt  rivers.  These  took 
their  name  from  the  river  Ijssel,  which  was 
then  called  Sala. 

The  other  group  of  Franks  came  from  the 
middle  or  eastern  part  of  the  river  Rhine,  in 
and  about  the  region  of  which  the  city  of  Co- 
logne is  the  centre.  These  were  called  the 
Riparian,  or  River,  Franks,  because  of  their 
riparian  situation ;  for  the  word  means  by  the 
side  of,  or  belonging  to,  the  banks  of  a  river. 
"  Rijp  "  is  the  ending  of  many  Dutch  names  of 
places  that  once  stood  on  a  river,  like  Dronrijp, 
for  example,  in  Friesland.  Indeed,  in  those 
times,  the  savage  Netherlanders  were  like  our 
North  American  Indians,  fond  of  living  near 
rivers  or  streams,  in  which  they  could  catch 
fish  for  food  and  beavers  for  clothing.  Other 
animals,  besides  the  human  sort,  made  their 
haunts  near  the  water,  finding  it  a  good  place 
for  daily  food. 

The  Franks  moved  into  what  was  then  called 
Gaul,  and  gave  it  the  name  of  France.  They 
raised  a  flag  with  the  colors  red,  white,  and 
blue  in  it;  and  overthrowing  the  imperial 
power  and  driving  out  the  Roman  soldiers, 

3° 


THE  FRANKS  AND  THE  FRISIANS 

they  set  up  a  kingdom  of  their  own.  They 
extended  their  conquests  by  going  up  and 
back  into  their  old  home-land,  pushing  the 
Frisians  northward.  Yet  active  as  they  were 
in  the  arts  of  war,  the  Christian  missionaries 
from  Rome  and  Ireland  were  equally  busy  in 
the  arts  of  peace.  During  the  long  years  of 
both  peace  and  war,  the  Franks  were  taught 
the  religion  of  Jesus,  until  it  became  their 
own. 

This  was  the  wonderful  thing,  that  Ireland 
was  then  an  island  of  saints  and  full  of  Chris- 
tian light.  About  the  year  388,  a  Latin  gen- 
tleman's son,  named  Succat  (brave  in  battle), 
was  carried  captive  to  Ireland  and  there  made 
a  slave.  When  he  gained  his  freedom,  he 
went  over  to  Gaul  to  be  educated.  Becom- 
ing a  Christian  pastor,  he  resolved  to  return 
to  Ireland,  and  did  so  in  A.  0.432.  As  Saint 
Patrick  he  taught  the  good  news  of  God's  love, 

O  <D 

winning  great  success,  as  all  missionaries  do 
who  have  strength,  perseverance,  wisdom,  and 
gentleness,  and  who  not  only  preach,  but  live 
the  pure  gospel  of  Christ.  Ireland  became  a 
Christian  country,  and  her  people  sent  out  mis- 
sionaries to  Scotland,  France,  and  the  Nether- 
lands. 

.     When  the  Franks  first  raised  the  flag  of  war 

31 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

against  the  Romans,  they  chose  three  colors, 
red,  white,  and  blue.  The  three  stripes  were 
placed  vertically,  that  is,  up  and  down.  This 
first  flag  of  freedom  has  ever  since  been  con- 

o 

spicuous.  To-day,  after  the  white  lilies  of  the 
Bourbons,  it  is  the  flag  of  the  republic  of 
France.  The  same  colors  are  those  of  the 
Netherlands  and  of  the  United  States,  as  well 
as  of  other  countries  under  their  influence. 

One  of  the  great  kings  of  the  Franks,  the 
first,  A.  D.  500,  was  Clovis.  Another  was  Dago- 
bert,  who  became  sole  ruler  of  the  Frankish 
empire.  He  collected  the  laws  and  framed 
them  into  a  code.  About  the  beginning  of 
the  seventh  century,  the  Franks  gradually 
secured  victory  over  the  Frisians.  Then,  at 
Utrecht,  in  A.  D.  628,  Dagobert,  having  author- 
ity over  the  whole  country,  gave  protection 
to  the  missionaries  when  they  wished  to  go  up 
further  north  and  preach  the  gospel.  The  sav- 
age Frisians  there  were  slow  to  give  up  their 
gods,  sacred  trees,  and  old  traditions. 

Looking  back  to  the  seventh  century,  we 
can  see  a  little  wooden  church  rising  up  in 
Utrecht,  and  hear  prayers  to  God  in  Christ; 
but  the  pagan  Frisians  turn  jealous  eyes  on 
this  building,  and  their  priests  are  sullen  and 
hostile.  By  and  by  they  burn  down  the  church, 

32 


THE   FRANKS   AND   THE   FRISIANS 

but  it  is  soon  rebuilt.  The  missionaries  go 
forth  and  preach.  With  their  axes  they  cut 
down  the  trees  sacred  to  Woden  and  Thor, 
and  build  churches  amid  the  groves. 

So  Christianity  moves,  now  forward,  now 
backward,  yet  ever  onward.  About  A.  D.  679, 
from  near  York  in  England,  a  city  which,  hav- 
ing been  first  Briton  and  then  Roman,  was  at 
this  time  Anglo-Saxon,  Wilfried  the  mission- 
ary reached  the  Netherlands.  On  the  coast 
of  England  he  got  on  board  one  of  the  little 
wooden  ships  of  the  period,  to  sail  down  into 
France,  expecting  then  to  travel  across  the 
country.  He  was  going  to  Rome  to  see  the 
Pope. 

The  North  Sea  is  often  very  stormy,  and 
Wilfried's  ship  was  blown  over  to  the  coast  of 
Friesland.  Adgillus,  the  king  of  the  Frisians, 
having  many  enemies  among  the  Franks, 
wanted  to  be  friendly  with  Wilfried.  This 
was  because  Nebroin,  who  was  the  great  court- 
master  of  the  king  of  the  Franks,  was  a  friend 
of  Wilfried.  So  Adgillus  gave  Wilfried  per- 
mission to  preach  the  gospel.  He  had  no 
trouble  in  making  himself  understood  by  these 
people,  strangers  though  they  were.  In  those 
days  the  language  which  both  the  people  in 
the  British  Islands  and  those  in  the  Nether- 

33 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

lands  spoke  was  about  the  same.  The  Anglo- 
Saxons  and  the  Frisians  belonged  to  the  one 
race,  and  the  English  language  was  not  yet 
separated  from  the  German.  His  preaching 
was  welcomed,  and  many  thousand  Frisians 
were  baptized. 

On  his  return  to  England  in  680,  Wilfried 
secured  permission  to  have  other  missionaries 
cross  the  North  Sea  to  Friesland.  One  of  the 
most  celebrated  of  the  number  was  Willibrord, 
who  had  been  a  pupil  of  Wilfried  in  earlier 
days.  He  is  now  spoken  of  as  "  the  apostle  of 
the  Frisians."  He  studied  twelve  years  in  Ire- 
land, and  in  690  he  went  over  to  the  Nether- 
lands, landing  near  Utrecht.  Here  he  was 
joined  by  a  band  of  eleven  other  English  mis- 
sionaries. The  chief  ruler,  who  was  a  Frank, 
named  Pepin  the  Big,  welcomed  him  and 
treated  him  well.  He  also  had  the  patronage 
of  KinQ-  Charles  Martel,  who  had  beaten  the 

o 

Saracens  in  battle.  With  his  band  of  preach- 
ers and  teachers,  Willibrord  went  all  through 
the  northern  Netherlands.  By  the  year  700, 
many  thousands  of  the  Frisians  had  become 
Christians,  putting  away  their  old  ideas  and 
customs.  Not  a  few  of  the  converted  pagan 
priests  became  pastors  of  villages  of  Christian 


34 


Q 
O 
03 
Q 


en 

& 
fa 
W 
CK 

w 

S 
H 


THE  NEW   YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


ASTOR,  LENOX  A»0 
TILDEN  FOUNDATION*. 

o 


THE  FRANKS  AND  THE  FRISIANS 

people.  The  images  of  the  gods,  the  holy 
marks  on  the  trees,  the  rude  stone  altars  of 
sacrifice  passed  away.  In  the  old  sacred  places 
rose  houses  of  worship,  in  which  the  heavenly 
Father  alone  was  adored. 

But  from  time  to  time  there  would  be  a  re- 
action. It  is  not  easy  for  men  to  change  their 
religion,  and  conversion  was  often  brought 
about  by  force.  The  Frisian  king,  Radbod, 
had  been  compelled  to  obey  the  Frankish  rule 
and  come  into  the  Christian  Church,  A.  D.  718, 
to  be  baptized.  The  ancient  fonts,  still  to  be 
seen  in  the  museums,  were  as -large  as  tubs. 
The  candidate  for  baptism  stepped  into  the 
vessel,  and  could  be  not  only  sprinkled  but 
dipped.  When  the  royal  Radbod  had  put  one 
leg  into  the  font,  he  stopped  and  asked  Wol- 
fram the  missionary  whether  through  baptism 
he  could  enter  heaven. 

"  Certainly,"  answered  the  bishop. 

"  But,"  replied  Radbod,  "  how  is  it  with  my 
father,  and  my  grandfather,  and  all  my  ances- 
tors who  have  not  been  baptized  ?  Are  they 
not  in  heaven  ? ' 

"  No,"  answered  Wolfram  the  pastor,  "  they 
are  in  hell.  Only  the  baptized  Christians  go 
to  heaven." 


35 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

"  Then  I  '11  think  it  over  before  I  am  bap- 
tized. I  had  rather  be  with  my  own  kindred 
in  hell  than  with  you  and  yours  in  heaven." 
Thereupon  he  drew  out  his  foot  and  went 
away. 


CHAPTER  V 

CHARLES    THE    GREAT 

RELIGION  and  politics  were  mixed  together  in 
those  early  days,  and  some  of  the  bishops  were 
rather  in  a  hurry  about  forcing  the  Frisians 
to  accept  their  religion  from  Rome.  Rad- 
bod's  son,  Poppo,  who  succeeded  his  father  as 
nominal  king,  refused  to  be  a  Christian.  He 
rebelled  against  the  Prankish  dominion,  and 
called  out  his  tribesmen  to  battle.  He  was 
beaten,  and  with  thousands  of  his  men,  per- 
ished on  the  bloody  field  of  war,  A.  D.  750. 
After  this,  Christianity  was  enforced  as  the 
law  of  the  land. 

Soon  another  Anglo-Saxon  missionary  from 
England,  Winfried,  whose  Roman  or  clerical 
name  was  Boniface,  began  preaching  and  teach- 
ing in  Frisia.  He  worked  so  hard  among  the 
Germanic  tribes,  both  east  and  west,  that  he 
has  been  called  "  the  apostle  of  Germany." 
Ever  anxious  to  turn  the  people  from  pagan- 
ism, he  did  not  hesitate  to  compel  them  by 
force,  not  only  to  believe  the  gospel,  but  to  be 

37 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

Christians  of  the  Roman  sort.  Indeed,  most 
of  the  British  missionaries  were  rough  and  se- 
vere, and  not  at  all  like  the  wise  and  gentle 
Patrick  of  Ireland.  So  it  came  to  pass  that 
Boniface  lost  his  life. 

In  the  year  755,  he  went  up  into  the  region 
in  which  lies  the  pretty  little  city  of  Dokkum. 
On  Easter  Sunday,  after  having  taught  and 
baptized  his  converts,  who  were  dressed  in 
white,  he  gave  them  the  communion.  In  the 
midst  of  the  feast,  the  pagan  Frisians,  with 
patriotic  motives,  and  also  in  the  name  of 
their  gods,  slew  him  and  fifty  other  Christians. 
Boniface  was  made  a  saint  in  the  Roman  cal- 
endar. Christianity  was  gradually  established, 
yet  only  after  many  wars ;  for  the  natives  often 
rose  in  rebellion  against  their  Prankish  mas- 
ters and  tried  to  be  free  again,  and,  perhaps 
also,  to  be  pagans,  as  their  priests  wanted  them 

to  be. 

When  the  Saxons  and  Frisians  joined  to- 
gether to  fight  against  Charlemagne,  or  Charles 
the  Great,  Wittekind  was  their  leader,  and  won 
a  great  victory  over  the  Franks.  Then  Charle- 
magne took  a  cruel  revenge  in  the  year  782, 
by  putting  4500  Saxons  to  the  sword.  This 
made  all  the  Saxon  tribes  rise  up  again  under 
Wittekind  ;  but  they  were  beaten,  and  after 

38 


CHARLES   THE   GREAT 

a  while,  Wittekind  and  the  other  chiefs  came, 
in  785,  to  France,  and  received  baptism  as 
Christians.  Now  for  the  first  time  since  the 
Roman  empire  fell,  all  the  Netherlands  were 
united  under  one  ruler.  Henceforth  Chris- 
tianity was  the  faith  of  all  the  people  in  the 
Low  Countries. 

Charles  the  Great  had  reared  a  new  empire 
which  he  hoped  would  be  like  that  of  Rome. 
He  restored  order,  established  courts,  and  built 
schools.  He  was  wise  in  the  government  of 
his  subjects,  who  belonged  to  many  nations. 
When  on  Christmas  Day,  A.  D.  800,  he  was  in 
Rome,  and  was  worshiping  in  the  cathedral, 
Pope  Leo  III.  put  upon  his  head  the  iron 
crown  of  imperial  dominion.  The  forehead 
band  on  the  inside  was  said  to  have  been  made 
of  a  nail  from  the  true  cross  on  which  Jesus 
was  crucified.  Thus  with  the  blessing  of  the 
Pontiff  he  ruled  his  great  empire. 

Knowing  how  fiercely  patriotic  the  Frisians 
were,  and  that  they  loved  to  call  themselves 
"  free  Frisians,"  Charles  gave  them  great  free- 
dom, and  let  them  have  their  own  laws,  while 
they  agreed  to  obey  the  chief  officers  which  he 
appointed  over  them.  There  were  other  ways 
in  which  liberty  was  granted  the  Frisians,  as 
seen  in  their  famous  book  of  laws  called  "  The 

39 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

Asega  Book."  This  shows  both  their  ancient 
customs  and  the  Prankish  additions,  and  is  a 
very  interesting  work.  Indeed,  it  is  from  the 
Frisians  that  we  get  our  word  "  book,"  and 
many  other  terms  used  in  ordinary  conver- 
sation. 

Charles  the  Great  was  one  of  the  mightiest 
men  in  European  history.  He  brought  nearly 
the  whole  of  central  Europe  under  govern- 
ment, and  led  the  wild  and  warlike  peoples 
into  the  ways  of  civilization.  Whole  tribes  had 
been  accustomed  to  move  about  in  wagons, 
like  gypsies,  or  to  wander  on  foot,  like  tramps, 
and  thus  to  keep  up  their  savagery.  Charles 
induced  the  rovers  to  settle  down  as  farmers, 
and  to  begin  work  in  tilling  the  soil,  to  love 
peace,  and  to  engage  in  trade  and  commerce. 
He  gathered  learned  men  about  his  court,  set 
up  schools  in  different  parts  of  the  empire, 
and  fixed  the  church  neighborhoods.  He 
may  be  called  the  great  civilizer  of  barbarian 
Europe.  Born  A.  D.  742,  he  died  A.  D.  814. 

After  a  great  man  dies,  many  stones  gather 
about  his  name.  To  most  people  in  the  middle 
ages,  Charlemagne  seemed  to  be  more  like  an 
ogre,  a  giant,  or  a  good  fairy,  than  a  real  man. 
He  and  his  captains  became  the  heroes  of 

many  legends  and  romances.     In  the  Nether- 

40 


CHARLES   THE   GREAT 

lands  his  favorite  dwelling-place  was  at  Ny- 
megen,  on  the  Waal  river,  whence  he  could 
look  up  and  down  the  beautiful  valley.  There 
he  spent,  his  winters  in  making  laws  and  ruling 
his  great  empire,  or  in  preparing  for  those 
campaigns  which  he  carried  on  in  summer. 
To-day  it  is  delightful  to  stroll  in  the  Walkof, 
or  pretty  park  in  this  fine  old  Dutch  city,  and 
call  up  the  wonderful  things  now  told  of  him 
in  story,  painted  in  picture,  or  sung  in  opera, 
or  to  sit  among  the  ruins  of  the  chapel  in 
which  he  and  his  people  once  worshiped  a 
thousand  years  ago.  When  the  curfew  bell 
rings  in  Nymegen,  it  is  called  "  Kaiser  Karel's 
bell."  Among  Dutch  people,  Charlemagne  is 
known  as  Karel  de  Groot,  or  Charles  the  Great. 
But  there  is  a  Japanese  proverb  which  says, 
"  The  great  general  has  no  son  ; '  that  is,  he 
has  no  heir  who  inherits  his  brain  and  power 
and  can  carry  on  his  work.  Sometime  after 
the  great  Charles  had  died,  his  grandsons  met 
at  Verdun  in  843  and  divided  their  inheritance; 
for  the  Prankish  empire  could  not  last,  as  did 
that  of  the  Romans,  for  twelve  hundred  years. 
The  many  elements  then  in  Europe  were  not 
well  mixed  together.  There  was  no  common 
language  and  no  real  patriotism.  The  peoples 
living  in  what  is  now  France,  Germany,  and 

41 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

Italy  wished  to  be  by  themselves.  Further- 
more, the  old  pagan  civilization  had  to  pass 
away  entirely  before  the  new  Christian  civiliza- 
tion could  be  fully  formed. 

From  the  time  of  the  great  treaty  made 
at  Verdun  in  the  year  843,  between  Charle- 
magne's three  grandsons,  the  empire  was  di- 
vided up  into  as  many  kingdoms.  From  that 
time  forth  the  peoples  that  had  been  develop- 
ing themselves  during  the  previous  three  and 
a  half  centuries  had  the  opportunity  to  become 
new  and  separate  nations.  They  began  to  be, 
what  for  a  thousand  years  they  have  been, 
Italians,  French,  and  Germans. 

The  Netherlanders  in  the  time  of  Charle- 
magne and  his  first  successors  lived  under  a 
very  different  kind  of  political  life  from  that  to 
which  their  old  Germanic  ancestors  had  been 
accustomed.  In  the  ancient  days,  the  tribes- 
men came  together  first  in  their  villages,  and 
each  tribe  elected  its  own  chief.  Then,  in  a 
great  assembly,  they  chose  the  general  of  all 
the  tribes.  But  when  conquered  by  the  Ro- 
mans, this  method  of  election  passed  away,  for 
the  people  were  governed  by  officers  sent  out 
from  Rome.  When  the  Franks  set  up  their 
empire  again,  they  followed  the  same  Roman 

policy.      The   people   had   no   elections,   but 

42 


CHARLES   THE   GREAT 

simply  submitted  to  the  governors  who  were 
sent  by  the  Prankish  king  to  command  the 
army,  to  rule  the  country  and  districts,  and  to 
hold  the  courts.  According  to  Charlemagne's 
directions,  these  officers,  who  were  called 
"dukes,"  "  earls,"  "  counts,"  "  margraves,"  or  by 
other  titles,  respected  the  local  customs,  and 
this  made  the  people  feel  that  they  were  still 
enjoying  some  liberty.  Rebellion  was  rare, 
and  in  the  Netherlands  good  order  was  the 
rule. 

These  old  names,  "  duke,"  "  earl,"  "  count," 
"baron,"  remain  in  our  language,  but  are  no 
longer  signs  of  ownership  of  land.  Whether 
in  China,  Japan,  France,  or  England,  the  titles 
last  after  the  reality  of  power  has  passed  away. 
Let  us  now  glance  at  that  condition  of  society 
called  feudalism.  The  one  great  difference 
between  the  United  States  of  America  and 
European  or  Asiatic  countries  is  that  in  Amer- 
ica there  never  was  any  feudalism  save  a  rude 
sort  among  the  Iroquois  Indians. 


43 


CHAPTER  VI 

FEUDALISM  :    THE    LORD   AND    HIS    VASSALS 

THE  people  had  never  lost  their  local  liberty, 
and  were  governed  by  edicts  sent  out  from  a 
great  emperor  whom  very  few  of  them  ever 
saw,  and  whose  language  was  different  from 
their  own.  Gradually  it  came  to  pass  that 
their  own  "  count,"  or  local  ruler,  whom  they 
saw  often,  became  more  important  in  their  eyes 
than  the  emperor  who  was  far  away.  It  was 
the  habit  of  the  count  to  hold  an  assembly  of 
his  vassals  several  times  a  year,  to  discuss 
matters  of  law  and  custom.  Then  every  man 
appeared  in  his  presence.  When  war  broke 
out,  all  the  strong  men  got  ready  for  the  cam- 
paign. The  count's  under-officers  went  to 
meet  him,  to  get  their  orders  from  him.  Then 
coming  back,  each  called  out  his  own  company 
of  vassals,  or  soldiers.  Every  man  able  to  bear 
arms  was  expected  to  appear  ready  for  war. 
He  must  have  a  shield,  a  spear,  and  a  cuirass, 
or  breast-plate,  a  bow,  and  a  quiver  with  twelve 
arrows  in  it. 

44 


FEUDALISM 

Step  by  step  there  began  a  new  system  of 
society,  which  is  called  feudalism.  All  over 
the  world,  except  among  savages,  this  system 
has  at  some  time  been  the  rule.  Men  coining 
up  into  civilized  life  pass  through  feudalism  as 
a  stage  of  progress,  just  as  boyhood  is  a  stage 
between  babyhood  and  manhood.  In  savage 
life  there  is  only  one  class  of  people.  In  our 
day  and  country,  there  are  many  classes, — 
farmers,  mechanics,  merchants,  sailors,  soldiers, 
lawyers,  doctors,  ministers,  etc.,  but  in  feu- 
dalism there  are  only  two  classes  of  society, 
those  who  own  land  and  those  who  do  not. 
The  landowners  or  landlords  are,  of  course, 
very  few,  but  the  lacklands,  or  landless  ones, 
are  many.  The  two  chief  landowners  are 
the  baron  and  the  bishop.  The  baron  builds 
a  great  castle,  with  thick  walls  of  brick  or 
stone,  which  has  a  defensive  belt  of  armor  in 
the  shape  of  water  in  a  moat.  Then,  pulling 
up  the  drawbridge,  he  is  safe  from  the  rest 
of  the  world ;  for  he  has  food  and  drink  within, 
and  brave  men  on  the  walls  and  turrets  to  de- 
fend him  and  his  company.  The  miserable 
poor  people,  afraid  to  live  in  villages  or  in  the 
country,  when  armed  men,  who  are  usually  rob- 
bers, are  moving  about,  gather  round  the  base 
of  the  castle  built  on  the  rock,  or  behind  the 

45 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

moated  grange.  There  they  huddle  together 
in  hovels  made  of  timber  and  wattle-work, 
smeared  with  mud,  hardly  daring  to  call  their 
lives  their  own.  In  time  of  danger  and  during 
the  winter  they  live  a  wretched,  and  in  time  of 
war  a  horrible,  life.  In  summer  they  are  only 
too  glad  to  have  a  little  holiday,  or  to  enjoy  an 
entertainment  in  looking  at  a  procession  of 
knights  or  priests,  or  the  lords  and  ladies  of 
the  castle  riding  or  hawking,  in  watching  a 
tournament  or  gathering  for  sport,  and  occa- 
sionally sharing  a  "  largess,"  or  gift  of  extra 
food,  game  from  the  hunt,  or  spoil  of  war. 
Their  daughters  unprotected,  and  their  sons 
made  servants,  they  live  more  like  serfs  than 
freemen. 

Thus  over  most  of  Europe  during  the 
period  of  feudalism,  from  the  ninth  to  the  six- 
teenth century,  we  see  only  a  few  large  cities 
and  towns,  with  many  villages  gathered  around 
castles,  cathedrals,  and  churches.  There  is 
very  little  dwelling  in  the  country,  either  by 
individuals  or  in  hamlets,  as  in  the  old  days 
of  primitive  freedom.  Single  farmhouses  are 
almost  unknown. 

The  other  great  landlord,  or  landholder, 
the  bishop,  dwelt  near  the  big  brick  or  stone 

church,  usually  in  a  palace.      He  had  control 

46 


FEUDALISM 

also  of  the  monasteries  and  nunneries,  be- 
sides enjoying  or  directing  the  revenues  of  the 
country.  The  people,  who  were  very  ignorant, 
imagined  that  their  superiors  in  the  Church 
could  open  the  gates  of  heaven  to  them  when 
they  died.  Hardly  thinking  about  salvation 
in  this  life,  and  hoping  only  to  be  saved  in 
heaven  after  death,  they  usually  gave  while 
they  lived  all  the  money  which  priest  and 
bishop  demanded.  On  his  death-bed,  instead  of 
leaving  his  property  to  his  wife  and  children, 
the  father  was  very  apt  to  make  his  will  just  as 
the  monk  or  priest  told  him  to  do.  In  the  long 
course  of  centuries,  enormous  tracts  of  land 
came  into  possession  of  the  Church.  Matters 
were  made  worse  by  so  many  men  becoming 
priests  or  monks,  and  thus  saving  themselves 
from  hard  work.  In  some  of  the  towns,  a  ma- 
jority of  the  people,  male  and  female,  belonged 
to  the  religious  orders,  which  fattened  upon 
the  poverty  of  the  working-people. 

There  was  another  side  to  feudalism,  for  it 
had  a  bright  as  well  as  a  dark  side.  The  might 
of  the  knight  often  helped  the  weak  and  re- 
dressed the  wrong  of  the  oppressed.  In  the 
castle  were  developed  lovely  manners  and  win- 
ning politeness.  Woman  was  honored.  The 
baron's  wife  became  a  lady,  and  his  daughters 

47 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

were  treated  with  gentleness.  Thus  grew 
up  the  wonderful  and  beautiful  institution  of 
chivalry. 

Nor  were  all  the  monks  idle  fellows.  Many 
of  them  were  teachers  and  makers  of  books. 
They  kept  alive  what  little  learning  there  was, 
by  copying  the  old  manuscripts  and  maintain- 
ing schools.  Often  they  made  roads  and  built 
dikes,  or  kept  them  in  repair.  They  helped 
in  many  ways  to  create  comfort  in  the  home 
and  prosperity  in  the  cities. 

The  raids  of  the  Norsemen,  which  began  as 
early  as  A.  D.  810,  also  aided  the  growth  of  feu- 
dalism, and  of  these  men  and  their  attacks  we 
must  now  give  an  account. 

The  Netherlands  are  nearer  the  North  Pole 
than  we  are,  for  they  lie  above  the  fiftieth 
parallel  of  north  latitude,  which  is  as  far  north 
as  are  Labrador  and  Hudson's  Bay  and  the 
lower  part  of  Alaska  on  our  continent.  Still 
further  northward  and  eastward  lie  Denmark, 
Sweden,  and  Norway.  The  coasts  of  these 
lands  are  rich  in  bays  and  rivers  running  into 
the  sea.  These  are  called  viks,  and  the  men 
living  near  the  viks,  vikings.  These  "  bay- 
men,"  or  "  creekers,"  were  a  daring  set  of  peo- 
ple, whom  we  call  the  Norsemen.  They  were 

fond  of  the  sea  and  of  living  in  boats.     There 

48 


FEUDALISM 

was  not  much  to  eat  in  their  cold,  foggy,  and 
rocky  country.  So  driven  forth,  not  only  by 
hunger,  but  by  thirst  of  adventure,  they  sailed 
down  toward  the  sunnier,  richer  countries  of 
the  south.  They  liked  to  dash  out  from  Jut- 
land and  Scandinavia  and  the  coasts  and  isl- 
ands in  the  Baltic  Sea,  and  come  southward  to 
the  Netherlands,  and  down  through  the  British 
Isles  to  rob,  burn,  and  kill. 

In  England  these  pirates  were  called  East- 
men  or  Danes,  but  on  the  continent  they  were 
called  North-men,  Norse,  or  Normans.  No 
Christianity  had  yet  come  among  them,  and, 
fierce  pagans  as  they  were,  they  liked  to  go 
into  the  Christian  churches  to  defile  and  burn 
them.  But  woe  be  to  Dane  or  Norman  if 
caught  at  such  business.  He  was  skinned 

o 

alive,  and  his  hide  nailed  on  the  church  door, 
or  he  was  taken  down  to  the  seashore  and  had 
his  head  cut  off. 

These  skillful  seamen  from  the  north  built 
small,  sharp,  open  vessels,  by  which  they  were 
able  to  go  up  the  narrow  rivers  of  Europe. 
Thus  they  scoured  not  only  the  coasts  of  Eng- 
land, France,  Germany,  and  the  Netherlands, 
but  went  far  inland.  Landing  in  the  morning 
at  a  village,  they  would  leave  it  at  night  a  level 
mass  of  smoking  ashes,  with  the  dead  and 

49 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

wounded  lying  around.  Then  they  sailed 
away  again,  with  their  boats  loaded  with  plun- 
der or  filled  with  men  and  women  to  be  sold 
for  slaves. 

By  and  by,  about  the  middle  of  the  ninth 
century,  instead  of  arriving  in  small  raiding 
parties,  the  Vikings  came  in  great  fleets,  and 
their  armies  were  able  to  besiege  and  take 
cities.  Often  they  would  spend  a  winter  or 
longer  in  one  place,  and  in  time  even  made 
permanent  settlements.  Later  on,  they  scat- 
tered themselves  and  went  further  afield,  visit- 
ing Italy,  Greece,  Asia  Minor,  and  Russia, 
while  in  the  far  west  they  even  dared  to  go 
out  into  the  deep  sea.  They  settled  Iceland 
and  made  colonies  in  America. 

These  bold  sailors  had  no  compasses  or 
charts.  By  night  they  followed  the  stars  and 
steered  by  them.  When  the  fog  covered  the 
sea,  so  they  could  not  discern  anything,  they 
sent  out  the  raven,  as  Noah  did  from  the  ark, 
to  find  land.  If  the  raven  returned,  they  knew 
there  was  no  land.  If  the  raven  never  came 
back,  they  turned  their  prows  in  the  direction 
of  its  flight  and  soon  reached  some  shore.  At 
first  their  boats  were  so  small  that,  when  they 
met  with  an  obstacle,  they  could  take  them  up 
on  their  shoulders  and  carry  them  overland 

50 


FEUDALISM 

from  one  water-course  to  another.  Later,  they 
built  great  galleys  with  masts  and  sails.  The 
prow  was  high,  and  was  usually  ornamented 
or  carved  with  a  dragon's  head  or  terrible  fig- 
ure of  some  kind.  Behind  this  prow,  a  man 
who  acted  as  the  lookout  stood  on  a  platform 
watching  ahead,  while  on  another  raised  deck 
toward  the  stern  were  the  chieftains  or  the 
steersmen. 

How  could  the  people  of  the  Netherlands 
live  amid  such  alarms  ?  Their  whole  country, 
especially  along  the  rivers  and  seacoast,  was 
in  constant  danger  from  these  cruel  pirates, 
who  not  only  burned,  robbed,  and  killed,  but 
carried  their  captives  away  into  slavery.  The 
people  on  the  coast  and  along  the  rivers  were 
in  continual  terror.  By  degrees  they  left  their 
homes  and  settled  around  the  baron's  castle, 
becoming  his  slaves.  They  gave  themselves 
up  to  the  churches  and  monasteries,  as  serfs  for 
life.  In  this  way  the  bishops  and  the  barons 
grew  richer  and  richer  and  the  people  poorer 
and  poorer,  thousands  of  them  being  nothing 
but  slaves. 

Yet  there  was  a  difference  even  among  the 
slaves,  for  there  were  various  classes  of  them. 
The  church  slaves  were  treated  more  kindly 
and  had  many  more  rights  than  the  slaves  of 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

the  barons,  who  in  some  cases  were  hardly  more 
than  brutes.  There  was  also  a  class  called  the 
villagers,  or  villeins,  who  were  a  little  above  the 
absolute  slaves. 

For  a  time,  even  the  free  Frisians  were 
conquered  and  held  in  bondage.  Godfrey 
the  Norman  was  king  over  them  during  a 
part  of  the  ninth  century.  Every  Frisian  had 
to  wear  a  halter  around  his  neck,  until  God- 
frey was  killed.  Then  the  Frisians  were  again 
free. 

While  the  country  was  thus  kept  in  alarm 
by  the  raids  of  the  Norse  pirates,  the  power  of 
the  German  emperor,  who  lived  far  away,  be- 
came less  and  less,  while  that  of  the  dukes  and 
barons  who  lived  in  the  land  increased.  Men 
cared  more  for  the  strong  hand  that  could  im- 
mediately protect  them  than  for  some  crowned 
head  hundreds  of  miles  off.  The  castles  and 
monasteries  became  the  real  centres  of  power. 
Soon  all  the  land  in  the  country  was  owned 
by  the  barons  or  the  bishops.  Their  retainers, 
as  well  as  the  knights  and  the  monks,  lived  off 
the  people,  who  were  taught  that  they  owed 
their  very  life  to  their  masters.  Dark  and 
dreary  for  the  mass  of  the  people  was  the 
age  of  feudalism.  From  the  ninth  to  the  thir- 
teenth century,  most  of  the  common  folk  were 

52 


FEUDALISM 


poor,  wretched,  and  hopeless.  Humanity  was 
settling  down  into  stagnation.  Something 
must  come  forth  to  stir  and  rouse  society  from 
its  torpor.  What  should  it  be  ? 


53 


CHAPTER  VII 

THE   CRUSADERS    IN    ASIA 

EVERY  morning,  out  of  the  black  night,  light 
dawns  in  the  east.  So  in  history.  All  the 
great  religions  have  come  out  of  Asia,  and  so 
have  many  of  the  best  ideas  and  inventions. 
Over  darkest  Europe,  in  the  eleventh  century, 
we  note  streaks  of  light  and  an  influence  which 
moved  Europe  to  new  life. 

It  came  about  in  this  way.  From  the  time 
that  the  Christian  missionaries  first  entered 
northern  Europe,  preaching  the  gospel  and 
telling  the  story  of  Christ's  life,  people  longed 
to  visit  the  Holy  Land  to  see  Bethlehem  and 
Jerusalem.  Men,  and  even  women,  had  trav- 
eled to  Palestine,  making  pious  pilgrimage  to 
the  place  of  Jesus'  birth  and  sepulchre.  Little 
or  nothing  was  done  to  hinder  them ;  but  in 
the  year  1065  the  Seljuk  Turks  overran  and 
conquered  Syria.  Then  these  proud  fellows 
began  to  insult  and  treat  very  cruelly  the  pil- 
grims from  the  Christian  countries. 

These  holy  and  traveled  people  were  called 

54 


THE   CRUSADERS   IN   ASIA 

"  palmers,"  because  they  brought  home  a  palm 
branch  from  Syria  and  laid  it  on  the  parish 
church  altar,  or  they  made  a  cross  of  slips  of 
palm  and  sewed  it  on  their  hats.  They  usu- 
ally carried  a  long  staff  also,  often  with  a  piece 
tied  at  right  angles  near  the  upper  end,  thus 
making  a  cross  above  their  heads.  On  their 

o 

return  home,  they  fixed  a  scallop  shell,  picked 
up  in  Palestine,  to  their  dress.  This  was  to 
show  that  they  had  been  pilgrims  to  the  Holy 
Land. 

In  fact,  during  the  middle  ages,  many  classes 
and  various  sorts  of  people  were  marked  in 
some  way  on  their  dress.  The  Jews  and  other 
persons  not  considered  Christians,  the  lepers 
and  diseased  people  generally,  were  forced  to 
sew  on  their  clothing  a  round,  square,  or  con- 
ical mark.  Those  who  had  broken  the  law 
by  committing  some  felony,  such  as  theft, 
arson,  blasphemy,  etc.,  had  a  scarlet  letter,  the 
initial  of  their  crime,  at  first  branded  on  their 
foreheads,  and  later  sewed  upon  their  breasts, 
as  R  for  robbery,  D  for  drunkard,  etc. 

The  stories  of  cruelty  to  Christian  pilgrims 
at  the  hands  of  the  Turks  lost  nothing  in  the 
telling.  Fiery  preachers  went  all  over  Europe 
speaking  to  great  crowds  in  the  churches  and 
fields.  Not  in  one  country  only,  but  in  several 

55 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

of  them,  people  were  roused  to  go  to  Pales- 
tine and  recover  the  sacred  places  from  the 
Turks.  As  they  brooded  over  the  matter, 
they  went  wild  over  it.  Many  thousands  of  all 
ages  started  in  crowds  to  go  to  the  Far  East. 
They  swarmed  together,  not  knowing  where 
they  could  get  food  to  eat  or  how  to  find  ships 
to  cross  the  seas;  but  they  went.  No  doubt 
with  very  many,  it  was  as  much  to  get  rid  of 
work,  or  to  be  free  from  slavery,  or  to  enjoy 
novelty  and  adventure,  as  it  was  with  any 
Christian  motive,  that  they  thus  set  their  faces 
towards  the  sunrise. 

These  wars  for  the  cross  began  by  the  move- 
ment of  a  rabble,  made  up  of  four  great  armies, 
gathered  from  the  very  dregs  of  Christendom. 
A  man  named  Walter  the  Penniless  com- 
manded the  first  host  of  twenty  thousand,  who 
were  almost  all  destroyed  by  the  Bulgarians. 
Another  swarm  of  forty  thousand  men,  women, 
and  children  was  led  by  Peter  the  Hermit, 
who  had  been  in  the  Holy  Land,  and  who 
went  about  preaching  in  several  countries, 
rousing  the  people.  The  Turks,  at  Nice,  de- 
stroyed this  mob.  Another  band  of  fifteen 
thousand,  chiefly  Germans,  was  killed  or  scat- 
tered in  Hungary.  The  last  of  the  four  mobs, 
made  up  of  people  from  France  and  Eng- 

56 


THE   CRUSADERS   IN   ASIA 

land,  numbering,  it  is  said,  200,000,  also  went 
to  pieces  on  the  road,  and  the  expedition 
amounted  to  nothing.  After  the  lower  classes 
had  tried  and  failed,  the  priests  and  the  soldiers 
joined  forces  for  a  new  enterprise.  By  this 
time  the  Syrians,  Turks,  Arabs,  and  the  Ma- 
hometan peoples  of  the  East  were  called  by 
the  general  name  of  "  Saracens,"  which  means 
Eastern  people. 

In  1095  at  Clermont,  in  France,  in  a  great 
council,  which  was  addressed  by  the  Pope,  a 
crusade  was  decided  upon  under  the  patronage 
of  the  Church.  The  knights  and  the  nobles 
took  part.  Six  splendid  armies,  led  by  the 
Southern  Netherlanders,  were  formed,  and 
moved  towards  the  rising  sun.  Godfrey  de 
Bouillon,  with  other  great  warriors,  captured 
Nice  and  besieged  Antioch.  After  wonderful 
battles,  they  reached  Jerusalem,  but  only  forty 
thousand  of  the  half  million  of  men  that 
started,  remained.  The  city  was  taken  and 
Godfrey  made  king. 

From  this  time  forth,  crusading  was  a  regu- 
lar occupation,  for  the  Saracens  rallied,  and 
various  expeditions  from  Europe  were  neces- 
sary to  drive  them  back.  Even  the  children 
joined  in  the  holy  war.  In  bands  numbering 
tens  of  thousands,  they  left  France  and  Ger- 

57 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

many,  expecting  that  the  Mediterranean  Sea 
would  open  a  path,  so  that  they  could  walk  dry- 
shod  to  Palestine.  They  thought,  for  they 
were  so  taught,  that  the  Turks  would  be  con- 
verted by  miracles.  No  such  unnecessary 
things  happened,  however;  but  thousands  of 
boys  and  girls  died  of  hunger,  cold,  and  fatigue 
on  the  road,  were  drowned,  or  were  taken  and 
made  slaves.  A  few  returned  home. 

At  last  these  movements  eastward,  which 
had  lasted  for  over  two  hundred  years,  came 
to  an  end.  The  Saracens  still  held  the  Holy 
Land.  The  Christians  had  wasted  millions 
of  money  and  hundreds  of  thousands  of  lives. 
What  was  the  use  of  all  this  waste,  and  what 
came  of  it  ? 

We  answer,  much  every  way.  Society  in 
Europe  was  roused  from  its  stagnation  and 
stirred  up  to  newer  and  better  life.  In  the 
first  place,  slavery  was  nearly  destroyed  by  the 
crusades.  The  slaves  that  enlisted  to  fight 
under  the  banner  of  the  cross  were  made  free. 
In  this  way  thousands,  on  their  return  from 
Palestine,  became  free  men.  Other  thousands 
of  human  beings,  sold  or  mortgaged  by  the  cru- 
sading knights,  were  bought  by  the  churches 
and  monasteries,  and  even  without  their  stir- 
ring a  step  their  position  in  life  was  greatly  im- 

58 


THE   CRUSADERS   IN   ASIA 

proved.  With  so  many  serfs  abroad,  free 
labor  at  home  became  more  and  more  the  rule, 
and  the  condition  of  the  freemen,  mechanics, 
and  traders  was  far  better  than  it  had  been. 
Population  increased.  The  people  formed 
themselves  into  guilds  and  communities.  As 
they  grew  richer,  they  were  able  to  have  law 
equal  for  all,  instead  of  the  mere  will  or  pleasure 
of  the  lord  of  the  castle  or  of  the  land.  Thus 
villages  and  towns,  having  their  own  rights, 
grew  up.  By  and  by  the  castles,  moats,  and 
thick  masonry  of  the  barons  were  no  longer 
the  only  means  of  protection,  for  the  towns  also 
could  afford  to  build  walls  to  defend  those  who 
lived  inside,  with  towers  to  watch  enemies  and 
gates  to  keep  them  out.  They  began  to  guard 
themselves,  not  only  from  foreigners  and  rob- 
bers, but  even  from  the  lord  of  the  land,  when 
he  was  cruel  and  unjust ;  or  from  the  bishop, 
who  was  often  as  bad  as  the  baron. 

But  more  than  this,  these  people  of  the 
North  learned  a  great  deal  in  their  travels  in 
the  South  and  East.  Going  out  from  the  land 
of  storms  and  fog,  of  rain  and  cold,  where,  be- 
sides the  daily  food  of  bread  and  cheese  or 
meat,  beer  and  butter  were  almost  the  only 
luxuries,  they  entered  into  the  bright  and  sunny 
world  of  the  South.  Here  rice  and  figs  grew, 

59 


HISTORY    OF   HOLLAND 

and  oil  and  wine,  while  fruits  of  many  sorts 
abounded.  In  these  warmer  lands  they  be- 
held the  wonderful  relics  of  the  old  Roman 
world  —  splendid  churches,  richer  and  grander 
cities,  finer  houses,  and  inventions  that  aston- 
ished them.  When  these  men,  who  thought 
they  were  honoring  God  because  they  sewed  a 
cross  on  their  coats,  reached  Syria,  they  met 
with  a  great  surprise.  The  Saracens,  whom 
they  had  been  taught  to  regard  as  black  devils, 
were  found  to  be  elegant  in  appearance  and 
refined  in  manners.  Many  of  them  dressed  in 
silks  or  other  fine  clothing,  and  wore  jewels 
and  superb  weapons,  such  as  the  rude  Nether- 
landers  had  never  seen.  Many  of  the  Saracens 
could  read,  and  were  learned  in  many  sciences, 
such  as  astronomy,  medicine,  and  mathematics. 
The  crusaders  discovered  also  that  their  ene- 
mies, whom  they  had  been  taught  to  hate  as 
outcasts  and  infidels,  were  not  only  brave,  but 
were  moral  men,  often  superior  in  character  to 
themselves.  All  this  astonished  them. 

In  other  ways,  travel  to  Asia  opened  the 
eyes  of  the  crusaders.  They  learned  that  those 
who  talked  most  about  religion  and  the  war 
for  the  cross  loved  money  rather  too  much, 
and  kept  up  the  campaigns  for  glory  and  gain 

rather  than  for  love  to  God.    In  the  East  they 

60 


THE   CRUSADERS   IN   ASIA 

saw  trees  and  flowers  very  different  from  those 
in  the  West  and  North.  They  brought  back 
many  seeds,  both  for  the  mind  and  for  the  soil. 
With  new  kinds  of  flowers  to  enjoy,  and  with 
food  growing  up  out  of  the  earth  which  their 
fathers  had  never  seen  ;  with  new  stories  to  tell, 
and  new  books  and  writings  to  read,  and  with 
trade,  both  overland  and  by  sea,  enriching  the 
Italians  and  the  other  European  peoples,  the 
age  of  commerce  began.  Among  the  first  to 
profit  by  their  opportunities  were  the  Nether- 
landers. 

Feudalism  was  the  age  of   the  knight  and 

o  o 

the  horse.  Except  the  priests  and  churchmen, 
no  one  was  considered  of  any  great  value  in 
society  unless  he  owned  land  or  horses,  or 
served  some  one  who  did  own  them,  and  knew 
how  to  ride  and  fight.  As  trade  and  com- 
merce became  of  more  importance,  there  was 
less  need  of  the  knight.  So  feudalism  gradu- 
ally passed  away,  while  the  merchant  took  the 
place  of  the  knight,  and  the  skilled  mechanic 
that  of  the  soldier. 

One  bright  flower  grew  out  of  the  old  state 
of  things.  Looking  back  at  the  inheritances 
from  the  feudal  ages,  we  may  count  chivalry 
as  the  best  of  all.  It  was  a  school  of  fine 

manners.    Courtesy,  generosity,  valor,  and  skill 

61 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

in  arms  and  on  horseback  were  the  virtues  in 
which  the  good  knight  was  trained.  Chivalry 
marks  the  transition  from  violence  to  culture. 
It  gave  rise  to  the  literature  of  the  chroniclers, 
such  as  that  of  Froissart,  who  tells  so  many 
delightful  stories ;  and  to  the  songs  and  stories 
of  the  troubadours,  who  were  the  wandering 
singers  of  the  middle  ages.  Cervantes,  in  his 
"  Don  Quixote,"  makes  fun  of  the  silly  knight 
who,  on  his  nag  Rozinante,  charges  at  a  wind- 
mill. There  were  other  witty  writers  who  ridi- 
culed the  extravagancies  of  the  feudal  period. 
Yet  it  was  during  this  time  that  traditions 
of  manners,  poetry,  and  art,  which  still  have 
force  in  our  society,  were  created.  Men's 
minds  were  so  expanded  by  coming  into  con- 
tact with  Greek  and  Oriental  civilization,  and 
the  new  methods  of  trade  and  ownership  of 
land,  and  the  cultivation  of  it,  that  Europe  was 
well  prepared  to  enter  the  higher  school  of  life 
and  thought  in  the  great  Reformation.  Most  of 
the  titles  and  polite  customs  of  our  day,  such 
as  the  use  of  "  sir  "  and  "  madame,"  "  Mr."  and 
"  Mrs.,"  bowing,  and  taking  off  the  hat,  and 
various  other  courtesies  of  daily  life,  have  come 
down  to  us  from  the  feudal  a^e,  to  be  no 

O      ' 

longer  the  sole  monopoly  of  knights  and  titled 

ladies,  but  the  property  of  everybody. 

62 


CHAPTER  VIII 

THE    FIRST   COUNTS    OF    HOLLAND 

UP  to  this  time  we  have  not  met  with  the 
name  of  Holland,  or  indeed  with  many  people 
having  names.  We  have  known  of  tribes,  and 
of  Romans,  Netherlanders,  and  Germanic  peo- 
ples, but  not  much  of  individuals.  People  at 
large  did  not  have  family  names.  The  great 
majority  of  girls  were  named  after  the  Virgin 
Mary,  or  Elisabeth,  the  mother  of  John  the 
Baptist,  and  the  majority  of  boys  after  their 
fathers,  the  oldest  son  taking  his  parent's  par- 
ticular name,  with  the  word  "  son  "  after  it,  the 
others  having  only  their  given  names,  usually 
borrowed  from  those  of  the  saints  in  the  calen- 
dar. It  was  not  until  the  people  of  northern 
Europe  had  the  Bible  in  their  own  tongues, 
and  could  read  it,  that  there  was  much  variety 
in  this  respect.  Then  names  were  borrowed 
by  wholesale  and  in  great  variety  from  the 
pages  of  Holy  Scripture. 

We  have  seen   that  the  Netherlands  were 
once  part  of  the  Frankish  empire,  which  had 

63 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

fallen  to  pieces  after  the  death  of  Charlemagne. 
Charles  the  Simple  was  the  last  of  the  line 
called  Carlovingian,  and  after  him  came  Henry 
the  Fowler,  who  ruled  over  the  Franks  and 
Netherlanders.     In    925   the    Low    Countries 
passed  from  the  control  of  France  and  were 
put  under  that  of  Germany,  being  still  part  of 
the  empire.     On  Easter  evening,  the  2Oth  of 
April,  in  the  year  922,  this  King  Charles  the 
Simple  gave  to  Count  Dirk  I.  that  part  of  the 
country  called   Holland.     The  name  Dirk  is 
the  short  form  of  Theodoric,  a  favorite  saint's 
name.     Dirk    is  reckoned    the    first  count  of 
Holland,  perhaps  because  he  was  the  first  man 
to  possess  the  monastery  of  Egmond;  and  from 
him  the  line  of  succession  and  the  thread  of 
Dutch  history  continue   unbroken.     We   can 
now  beonn  to  think  of  Dutchmen  as  distinct 

o 

from  Germans. 

It  is  wonderful  how  much  history  depends 
upon  a  few  drops  of  ink  on  a  sheet  of  parch- 
ment or  paper.  There  may  be  mighty  men 
who  do  great  things,  but  unless  some  one 
writes  about  them,  to  celebrate  their  deeds  and 
make  them  famous,  we  know  nothing  of  them 
except  in  myths  or  fairy  tales,  in  which  it  is 
hard  to  separate  fact  from  fiction.  "  Life  with- 


THE   FIRST   COUNTS   OF   HOLLAND 

out  letters  is  death,"  and  it  is  like  black  night 
where  there  are  no  writings. 

Egmond  Abbey,  now  in  ruins,  was  one  of 
the  oldest  monasteries  in  North  Holland.  It 
was  built  first  of  wood  and  afterwards  of  brick. 
There,  for  hundreds  of  years,  almost  all  the 
manuscripts  which  told  the  early  history  of 
the  Netherlands  were  kept.  In  this  abbey  the 
monks  sat  by  their  rude  oaken  tables,  each 
with  his  ink-horn  and  parchment,  and  copied 
out  what  could  be  read  in  the  Latin  chronicles. 
They  also  listened  to  the  accounts  of  old  men 
who  remembered  what  had  happened  in  days 
gone  by.  They  heard  travelers  and  strangers 
from  far  countries  tell  the  news,  or  relate  their 
stories.  Thus  they  wrote  down  many  fasci- 
nating annals  and  anecdotes,  which  serve  us 
as  material  for  history.  They  began  also  the 
first  museums.  In  Egmond  Abbey  was  the 
fountain  of  the  stream  of  Holland's  history. 

Almost  all  we  know  of  Count  Dirk  I.,  the 
founder  of  the  Holland  House,  is,  that  in  this 
sandy  region  of  Egmond,  near  the  sea,  he 
established  a  nunnery  and  built  a  wooden 
church,  which  he  dedicated  to  St.  Adelbert, 
the  English  missionary  who  had  come  over 
with  Willibrord.  Dirk  died  probably  in  the 
year  923. 

65 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

The  word  "count"  means  "companion,"  that 
is,  of  the  emperor.  The  count  was  the  ruler, 
in  place  of  the  emperor,  over  a  certain  portion 
of  the  empire.  The  counts  of  Holland,  sixteen 
in  number,  and  one  countess,  ruled  their  do- 
main from  A.  D.  923  to  A.  D.  1299.  During  this 
period  the  little  states  of  the  Netherlands,  with 
the  names  of  which  we  are  now  so  familiar,  Hol- 
land, Utrecht,  Brabant,  Flanders,  etc.,  began 
to  take  form,  and  the  cities  of  Dordrecht,  The 
Hague,  Amsterdam,  etc.,  were  built.  It  was 
a  time  of  petty  wars  and  quarrels  about  land, 
trade,  and  power.  The  count  and  the  bishop, 
the  Hollanders  and  the  Frisians,  the  Zee- 
landers  and  the  Flemings,  the  upper  classes 
and  the  lower,  were  often  at  war.  Under  the 
feudal  system  all  the  land  was  supposed  to  be- 
long to  the  emperor.  He  could  give  it  away 
to  this  or  that  servant,  as  he  pleased.  Or  he 
could  order  off  one  vassal  to  this  place  or  that, 
and  compel  another  to  take  the  place  vacated. 
This  is  exactly  what  I  saw  done  in  the  feudal 
system  of  Japan,  under  which  I  lived  in  1870- 
1871.  It  was  like  playing  a  game  of  chess 
on  a  large  scale,  the  pieces  being  noblemen, 
differing  in  rank  and  value;  but  all  Europe 
was  like  a  chessboard.  The  contest  was  be- 
tween the  count  and  the  bishop,  the  emperor 

66 


THE    FIRST    COUNTS    OF   HOLLAND 

and  his  vassals.  Indeed,  our  game  of  chess, 
which  has  come  to  us  from  Asia,  and  takes  its 
name  from  the  Shah  of  Persia,  is  only  a  minia- 
ture of  mediaeval  history,  and  represents  in 
play  that  which  took  place  in  actual  history. 

Yet  neither  the  rulers  nor  the  people  were 
always  at  war.  There  were  many  sunny  days 
of  peace,  many  great  churches  and  castles 
built,  and  wonderful  things  accomplished,  chief 
among  which  was  the  building  of  the  dikes. 

Holland  is  like  a  fortress,  in  a  constant  state 
of  siege  by  the  waters,  fresh  and  salt,  of  rivers 
and  of  ocean,  that  in  times  of  storm  attack  and 
would  destroy  it.  Now,  in  these  days  of  skill- 
ful engineering,  it  is  like  a  modern  ship  built 
in  water-tight  compartments.  But  the  land 
was  not  of  old  protected,  as  it  is  now,  from  the 
river  and  sea  floods,  by  the  dikes  or  walls  of 
earth,  wood,  and  stone  which  form  its  armor 
of  defense. 

Every  dike  or  dam  in  the  Netherlands  is 
like  the  steel  plates  of  a  battleship.  It  is  put 
on  both  as  a  shield  to  ward  off  real  danger, 
and  to  keep  the  country  afloat.  Yet  both  the 
word,  and  the  thing  for  making  this  ship-like 
hollow  land  water-tight,  are  quite  modern,  no 
city  whose  name  ends  in  "dam"  being  older 

than   the  twelfth  century.     Only  those  towns 

67 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

built  on  hard  and  dry  ground  were  of  old  safe 
from  the  waters. 

In  1 1 70  the  ocean  flood  rolled  in  over  Hol- 
land, Friesland,  and  Utrecht,  and  thousands 
of  people  were  drowned.  It  was  a  curious 
sight  when  boys  and  men,  standing  on  the 
walls  of  the  cities,  threw  down  their  nets  and 
caught  fish  thus  brought  to  their  doors.  The 
Netherlands  suffered  again  and  again  from 
this  overstreaming  of  the  waters,  until  finally 
her  people  had  made  it  on  all  sides  a  dike-clad 
land,  in  which  they  could  sleep  safely ;  but  they 
spent  many  hundred  millions  of  money  to 
secure  this. 

The  relations  between  Scotland  and  the 
Netherlands  have  been  very  close  from  the 
twelfth  century.  Through  the  marriage  of  a 
Scottish  princess,  they  were  centred  in  Zee- 
land.  At  the  little  town  of  Veer,  the  Scottish 
merchants  were  allowed  to  settle  and  to  have 
the  monopoly,  or  sole  right,  of  trade  between 
Holland  and  Scotland.  Many  of  them  married 
Dutch  ladies  and  grew  rich,  or  became  magis- 
trates. They  traded  the  wool  of  the  sheep 
that  grazed  amid  the  heather  of  Scotland  for 

<D 

the  butter  and  cheese  which  the  mild-eyed 
cows  of  the  Netherlands  produced.  By  and 

by  these  Scotsmen  in  Veer  built  a  very  fine 

68 


1 


THE   FIRST   COUNTS    OF   HOLLAND 

store  and  trading-house  of  oak  and  stone,  deco- 
rated on  the  outside  with  ironwork,  showing 
the  Scottish  thistle  and  its  prickly  leaves.  This 
edifice  is  still  standing,  and  next  door  to  it  is 
the  house  of  the  chief  of  the  company,  both 
buildings  being  kept  in  order  by  the  Dutch 
government.  Veer  is  much  the  same  word  as 
our  word  "  ferry."  The  town  arms  represent 
two  men  ;  each  is  on  a  tower,  holding  a  shield ; 
between  the  towers  a  boat  is  passing  on  the 
canal,  which  joins  the  different  waters  in  one 
stream.  Thus  the  town  arms  tell  the  story  of 
geography  and  history. 

The  crusades  took  place  during  the  age 
of  the  counts,  and  the  Dutch  won  some  glory 
in  them.  In  the  month  of  May,  1217,  Count 
William  sailed  with  twelve  large  ships  down 
the  river  Maas.  Remaining  part  of  a  year  in 
Portugal,  he  sailed  to  Syria  and  later  over  to 

Egypt- 
Then  followed  one  of  the  most  brilliant  epi- 
sodes in  all  the  history  of  the  Dutch  crusades. 
A  victory  was  gained  which  is  celebrated  in 
Haarlem  at  nine  o'clock  every  evening  by 
ringing  the  bells  in  the  great  church.  This 
carillon  is  called  "  the  Damietje,"  because  it 
celebrates  the  capture,  in  1219,  of  Damietta,  in 

Egypt,  which  was  accomplished  on  this  wise. 

69 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

The  city  lay  on  the  east  branch  of  the  Nile. 
Out  in  the  river  was  a  great  rock,  on  which  a 
fort  had  been  built.  Between  the  city  and  the 
fort  was  a  mighty  chain  of  iron.  It  wras  neces- 
sary first  to  capture  the  fort,  and  then  break 
the  chain,  so  as  to  let  in  the  fleet.  The  Dutch- 
men grappled  their  vessels  together  and,  by 
means  of  four  tall  masts,  built  a  high  tower  on 
the  decks.  Near  the  top  of  this  floating  castle 
of  wood,  they  fastened,  by  means  of  chains  and 
pulleys,  a  sort  of  drawbridge.  Running  their 
vessels  close  up  to  the  walls  of  the  fort,  they 
lowered  their  drawbridge  until  one  end  of  it 
lay  on  the  parapet.  Then  streaming  out  over 
the  walls  into  the  fort,  the  brave  fellowrs  cap- 
tured it  and  raised  their  flag.  The  other  ships 
broke  the  chain,  and  so  the  whole  fleet  getting 
under  the  city  walls,  the  sailors  and  soldiers 
soon  conquered  Damietta.  William  returned 
in  triumph  to  Holland,  ruled  four  years  longer, 
and  died  in  1224. 

Haarlem's  coat  of  arms  is  a  sword  laid  on  a 
shield  between  four  stars,  and  surmounted  by 
a  Maltese  cross.  On  each  side  is  a  lion,  and 
over  the  shield  are  tall  branches,  on  which 
hang  bells  with  the  motto,  Vicit  Vim  Virtns, 
or  "  Courage  conquered  force."  It  was  given 

to  the  brave  Haarlemmers,  who  were  chiefly 

70 


H 

W 


o 
5 

5 
p 

H 

OH 
< 

u 

C/5 
(^ 

w 

Q 


w 
J 

as 
< 
< 

X 

w 


TH£  N£W   YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


TILDEN 

c 


THE   FIRST   COUNTS   OF   HOLLAND 

engaged  in  the  capture  of  Damietta,  by  the 
emperor  Frederick  Barbarossa,  in  the  presence 
of  the  Patriarch  of  Jerusalem.  By  this  time, 
also,  coins,  with  the  arms  of  Holland  stamped 
on  them,  were  in  general  circulation.  Count 
William  also  gave  to  the  city  of  Middelburg, 
in  1253,  a  charter  of  liberties,  which  is  still 
sacredly  preserved. 

Meanwhile,  at  home  trade  and  commerce 
were  increasing,  and  as  the  towns  grew  richer 
and  larger,  the  count  had  to  take  their  advice 
in  regard  to  war  or  treaties.  If  the  towns  were 
against  him,  he  could  not  fight,  for  -he  could 
get  no  money.  War  or  peace  depended  on 
their  mint  and  vote.  Thus,  gradually,  a  na- 
tional assembly,  or  congress,  was  formed.  This 
congress  was  called  the  "  states,"  or  "  states- 
general,"  because  the  "states,"  or  "estates," 
were  made  up  of  the  delegates  from  each  town-, 
and  also  from  the  open  country ;  that  is,  the 
cities  and  the  nobility.  The  states-general  was 
composed  of  the  states  particularly  united  in 
one  body.  This  body  voted  the  money  to  be 
given  to  the  count  for  the  public  good. 

In  all  cases  of  extra  expense,  the  count  was 
obliged  to  ask  for  money  from  the  cities  as  a 
favor,  and  not  as  a  right.  Such  money  was 
raised  by  taxes  laid  upon  houses  and  upon 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

lands.  For  centuries  this  request  of  the  count 
for  a  tax  was  called  "  bede,"  or  prayer.  It  was 
a  settled  principle  that  there  should  be  "no 
taxation  without  consent ; '  that  is,  the  states, 
and  not  the  prince  or  count,  were  to  fix  the 
amount  of  money  to  be  given.  This  has  since 
become  the  settled  principle  in  all  nations  hav- 
ing representative  institutions. 

The  rulers  of  Europe  were  beginning  to  see 
the  evils  of  the  feudal  system,  and  to  curb  the 
power  of  the  nobles,  who  lived  in  their  fortified 
castles  and  cared  little  or  nothing  for  the  poor 
people,  besides  often  plundering  them.  In 
Frisia  the  feudal  system  never  took  deep  root, 
and  even  the  nobles  did  not  have,  as  in  France, 
Spain,  England,  and  parts  of  Germany,  the 
privilege  of  coining  money  or  of  putting  men 
to  death  for  crime.  Nevertheless,  they  could 
tax  the  people  heavily,  and  this  they  often  did. 
From  the  time  of  Floris  V.,  the  people  became 
more  attached  to  the  count,  who  granted  many 
valuable  charters  and  favored  the  commons 
rather  than  the  nobles,  who  were  vexed  at  the 
count.  The  nobles  and  vassals  were  free  from 
taxation,  and  when  Floris  tried  to  make  them 
pay  their  share  of  money  for  good  government, 
they  rebelled.  The  revolt  was  quieted,  though 
the  leader  was  banished. 

72 


THE   FIRST   COUNTS    OF   HOLLAND 

Falconry  was  one  of  the  sports  of  the  middle 
ages  most  cultivated  by  the  nobles,  and  ladies 
as  well  as  gentlemen  took  part  in  it.  Falcons 
were  trained  to  mount  up  into  the  air  and,  with 
their  fierce  claws  and  sharp  beaks,  to  catch 
and  kill  the  little  birds  flying  about,  of  which 
the  country  was  full.  Even  the  large  and  help- 
less ones,  as  cranes  and  storks,  were  attacked 
and  brought  down  by  these  living  arrows  of 
the  air.  The  hunter-bird  was  kept  hooded,  so 
that  it  could  not  see  until  it  was  let  loose.  The 
men  who  took  care  of  the  orame-birds  carried 

o 

them  on  their  wrists.  When  there  were  many 
of  them,  the  falconer  would  have  a  half  dozen 
perching  on  a  hoop,  which  he  kept  around  him 
and  held  on  straps  from  his  shoulders. 

This  custom  of  hunting  birds  with  birds  is 
very  ancient  in  the  Far  East,  as  in  China  and 
Japan,  and  was  introduced  into  Europe  from 
the  East,  coming,  as  printing  probably  also  did 
later,  with  the  Tartars  to  Russia.  One  king 
was  so  fond  of  the  sport  (as  Charlemagne 
had  also  been)  that  he  was  called  Henry  the 
Fowler,  and  one  emperor  wrote  a  little  book 
on  the  subject  of  hunting  with  birds.  So  un- 
erring was  the  falcon  in  darting  upon  the  prey 
and  catching  it,  even  at  long  distances,  that 
when  firearms  were  invented  the  cannon  were 

73 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

named  after  the  different  kinds  of  falcons,  as 
well  as  after  quick-darting  reptiles  and  beasts 
of  prey.  The  female  bird  was  the  stronger 
and  the  larger.  The  male,  being  smaller  and 
weaker,  was  called  falconet.  There  were  offi- 
cers in  charge  of  the  falcons,  and  it  requires 
almost  a  small  dictionary  to  give  and  define 
the  meaning  of  all  the  words  about  the  subject. 
The  time  of  the  chase  was  either  early  in  the 
morning  or  towards  evening. 

When  proper  game  was  discovered,  the  tiny 
hood  was  pulled  off  the  falcon's  eyes.  Imme- 
diately the  trained  bird  of  prey  darted  like  an 
arrow  high  into  the  air,  rose  in  rapid  circles 
above,  and  then  suddenly  swooped  upon  its 
victim.  When  the  bird  to  be  seized  was  large 
and  powerful,  with  strong  wings  and  sharp 
beak,  the  falcon  had  to  be  very  cautious  and 
cunning  in  turning,  wheeling,  and  striking  at 
the  right  moment.  Sometimes  "  the  plucky  fal- 
con had  its  leg  broken,"  as  says  the  proverb  of 
Japan.  Having  won  her  prize,  she  swept  in 
large  circles  over  the  head  of  the  falconer,  and 
finally  presented  him  the  booty.  This  he  put 
in  his  game  bag,  and  then  gave  the  falcon  food 
to  encourage  her.  Some  falcons  were  trained 
to  soar  high  in  the  air,  others  on  a  lower  but 
wider  range.  Some  were  best  for  the  inland 

74 


THE   FIRST   COUNTS    OF   HOLLAND 

country,  others  for  the  seashore,  river  banks, 
and  the  marshes ;  for  in  the  Netherlands  the 
birds  are  numerous  everywhere. 

In  Holland  the  huntsmen  were  often  helped 
by  trained  dogs.  Herons  were  very  plentiful, 
and  if  they  saw  the  falcon  they  would  keep 
among  the  rushes  and  be  safe.  In  this  case, 
the  sportsmen  beat  a  drum  and  scared  them,  so 
they  rose  up  in  the  air.  Then  the  dogs  were 
sent  into  their  hiding-places  to  bark  and  keep 
the  herons  from  coming  to  cover  again.  In 
this  way  the  poor  creatures  were  easily  seized. 
The  largest  species  of  hawks  and  eagles  were 
trained  to  catch  even  foxes  and  hares. 

The  ladies  also  rode  out  on  horseback  with 
the  knights  and  yeomen  and  mightily  enjoyed 
the  excitement  of  hunting.  This  was  almost 
the  only  outdoor  sport  in  which  the  women 
took  part,  and  a  crowd  usually  gathered  round 
the  castle  gate  on  hawking  days.  It  was  a 
very  pretty  sight  to  see  the  lords  and  ladies 
gayly  dressed,  and  the  falconers  picturesquely 
arrayed,  issuing  in  a  cavalcade  from  beneath 
the  battlements,  to  hunt  on  the  moors  and 
lowlands. 

It  was  at  one  of  these  falcon  parties  in  1296 
that  Count  Floris  was  slain  at  Utrecht  by 
jealous  nobles  who  hated  him  for  political 

75 


HISTORY    OF   HOLLAND 

reasons.  The  lords  of  Amstel  and  Woerden 
were  at  feud,  or  quarrel,  and  he  came  hoping 
to  reconcile  them.  So  it  came  to  pass  that 
when  he  was  called  early  on  that  fateful  morn- 
ing in  1296  to  go  out  hawking,  he  gladly 
dressed  himself  and  was  soon  ready.  These 
old  feudal  lords  were  great  drinkers.  Before 
starting  out,  Floris  asked  Amstel  to  drain  a 
"  stirrup  cup  "  to  Saint  Gertrude.  This  famous 
lady  of  the  middle  ages  had,  about  the  middle 
of  the  seventh  century,  founded  the  church 
at  Geertruydenburg,  and  was  the  patron  saint 
of  travelers.  The  men  were  only  too  glad  to 
drink  to  her  honor,  and  as  they  quaffed  the 
liquor  when  fresh  in  the  saddle,  they  called  it 
a  "  stirrup  cup." 

Amstel  was  a  traitor.  Taking  the  beaker 
from  his  master's  hand,  he  said,  "  God  protect 
you,  I  will  ride  forward."  He  drank  the  con- 
tents and  then  galloped  away.  Floris  was  so 
eager  to  see  the  sport  from  the  beginning 
that,  instead  of  taking  his  trusty  knights  with 
him,  he  rode  away  with  only  two  pages.  About 
two  miles  from  the  city  he  met  several  of  the 
nobles.  To  these  he  said  "  good-morning," 
and  received  a  falcon,  which  he  put  upon  his 
wrist ;  but  at  this  point  Woerden  seized  the 

bridle  of  the  count's  horse  and  said  to  him, 

76 


THE   FIRST   COUNTS   OF   HOLLAND 

"  You  shall  drive  us  no  more.  You  are  our 
prisoner."  Taking  this  as  a  joke  the  count 
lauehed,  but  when  another  noble  snatched 

o 

the  falcon  rudely  from  his  wrist,  Floris  drew 
his  sword.  Then  Velsen,  another  nobleman, 
threatened  to  cleave  his  head  if  he  made  any 
movement.  After  imprisoning  him  in  the 
gloomy  castle  of  Muiden,  which  is  still  stand- 
ing, they  slew  him  near  Naarden. 

In  the  church  of  St.  Lawrence,  at  Alkmaar, 
there  is  a  splendid  tomb  reared  to  the  memory 
of  Floris  ;  and  well  he  deserves  it,  for  he  was 
one  of  the  greatest  of  the  counts  of  Holland. 

o 

He  founded  the  order  of  the  Knights  of  St. 
James  in  1290.  He  was  a  builder  of  roads 
and  dikes  and  greatly  improved  the  country 
and  its  trade.  He  was  a  brave  soldier,  a  wise 
ruler,  and  always  the  protector  of  the  people 
against  the  nobles.  He  was  a  finely  formed 
man,  with  a  ruddy  face  and  handsome  features. 
Active  in  his  habits  and  loving  outdoor  life, 
he  was  also  skillful  in  music  and  eloquent  in 
speech. 

Many  of  the  wicked  nobles  had  to  fly  the 
country.  Some  died  in  exile.  Others  were 
captured  in  the  castle  whither  they  had  fled. 
Others  were  tortured  and  then  put  to  death 
for  their  great  crimes.  Indeed,  just  at  a  time 

77 


HISTORY   OF  HOLLAND 

when  the  towns  were  rising  in  strength  and 
power,  the  feudal  lords  lost  their  power  and 
influence  by  their  own  folly.  From  this  time 
forth  the  common  people  gained  greatly  in 
freedom,  wealth,  and  privilege. 

The  son  of  the  dead  count  was  John,  then 
in  England.  Here  he  married  the  princess 
Elizabeth,  and  with  his  nobles  and  many  pre- 
sents returned  to  Holland  ;  but  he  was  very 
young  and  had  but  a  short  and  stormy  career. 
He  died  of  malarial  fever  in  1299.  As  he  left 
no  children,  and  as  there  was  no  other  heir  to 
the  countship,  the  line  of  the  house  of  Holland 
came  to  an  end,  and  the  succession  was  trans- 
ferred to  the  house,  or  family,  of  Hainault. 

Thus  ended  sadly  a  long  and  heroic  line 
of  sixteen  counts  and  one  countess.  These 
rulers,  take  them  all  in  all,  were  brave  and 
wise.  Under  their  rule,  from  the  year  923  to 
that  of  1299,  the  country  was  raised  from  a 
half-drained  marsh  to  be  one  of  the  rich  states 
of  Europe,  whose  help  or  alliance  the  kings  of 
other  lands  were  glad  to  have.  Under  them 
good  laws  were  made  and  good  government 
established,  while  for  the  most  part  the  people 
lived  happily  and  the  country  increased  in 
freedom,  in  trade,  in  wealth,  and  in  learning. 

It  is  no  wonder  that  the  Dutch  look  back  to 

78 


THE   FIRST    COUNTS    OF   HOLLAND 

the  era  of  the  ancient  counts  of  Holland  as  a 
kind  of  golden  age.  Not  only  are  their  tombs 
in  the  churches  reverently  visited  and  looked 
upon,  but  in  the  Binnen  Hof,  at  the  centre 
of  the  city  of  The  Hague,  there  is  a  splendid 
memorial  in  ornamental  ironwork,  richly  deco- 
rated in  colors  and  gold ;  while  in  the  niches 
of  the  various  town  halls  there  are  handsome 
statues,  which  the  people  of  to-day  delight 
to  look  upon.  In  every  family  and  school, 
the  story  of  the  counts  of  Holland  is  told 
and  heard  with  equal  delight  to  narrator  and 
listener. 

The  names  of  these  sixteen  counts  of  Hol- 
land were,  Dirk  I.,  Dirk  II.,  Arnold,  Dirk  III., 
Dirk  IV.,  Floris  I.,  Dirk  V.,  Floris  II.,  Dirk 
VI.,  Floris  III.,  Dirk  VII.,  William  I.,  Floris 
IV.,  William  II.,  Floris  V.,  and  John  I.  The 
Countess  Ada,  daughter  of  Dirk  VII.,  ruled 
but  a  few  weeks,  married  Lodewijk,  Count 
van  Loon,  and  was  succeeded  by  her  uncle, 
William  I. 


79 


CHAPTER   IX 

THE    HOUSE    OF    HAINAULT 

THE  new  ruler,  the  count  of  Avennes,  also 
named  John,  visited  Holland  and  was  acknow- 
ledged by  the  nobles,  towns,  and  commons  as 
the  land's  lord.  Yet  among  the  nobility  the 
party  of  Van  Borselen  was  still  against  him. 
They  had  much  power,  and  they  even  got  aid 
from  the  emperor  of  Germany.  Some  fight- 
ing took  place  both  on  land  and  water.  It 
came  to  pass  in  the  next  year  that  Count  John 
gave  to  his  brother  Guy  the  government  of 
Holland  and  Zeeland. 

This  was  the  signal  for  troubles  with  the 
warrior-bishop  of  Utrecht,  and  when,  after  a 
few  skirmishes,  these  were  over,  the  Flemings 
and  the  Zeelanders  fought  in  a  great  naval 
battle  near  Zierikzee.  When  Count  John  died, 
late  in  1299,  his  son,  William  the  Good,  suc- 
ceeded, and  the  long  and  wasteful  wars  be- 
tween Holland  and  Flanders  were  over;  and 
Count  William  III.  and  his  people  enjoyed 
for  a  while  the  quiet  of  home  life. 

So 


THE   HOUSE    OF   HAINAULT 

William,  beginning  in  1304,  made  alliances 
honorable  and  advantageous  to  Holland,  but 
he  had  much  anxiety  and  trouble  because  of 
the  mixed  politics  of  Europe,  and  the  quarrels 
between  the  papal  and  imperial  factions ;  for 
at  this  time  there  were  two  popes,  one  at 
Avignon  and  one  at  Rome. 

A  daughter,  born   to  him  and  named  Mar- 

o 

garet,  became  the  wife  of  Louis  of  Bavaria, 
emperor  of  Germany.  It  was  a  proud  day  for 
the  Netherlanders  when  Margaret  of  Holland 
was  crowned  empress  in  1328. 

William's  younger  daughter,  Philippa,  was 
married  to  King  Edward  III.  of  England.  A 
body  of  three  thousand  Netherlandish  soldiers 
set  sail  from  Dordrecht  and  went  over  to  Eng- 
land to  support  her  husband,  the  young  king, 
in  his  wars. 

At  home,  William  became  the  sole  ruler  of 
Friesland,  without  interference  of  the  bishop 
of  Utrecht.  The  Frisians  showed  their  loyalty 
in  the  old  hearty  way  of  their  forefathers. 
They  made  Count  William  stand  upon  a  shield. 
Then,  after  some  stalwart  men  had  lifted  it  in 
the  air,  and  he  stood  over  their  heads,  they 
all  did  him  homage  by  shouting  in  unison. 
William  had  what  was  called  a  brilliant  foreign 

policy,  but  at  home  he  was  in  want  of  money, 

81 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

for  he  spent  more  than  he  earned.  He  was 
very  fond  of  tournaments,  but  these,  with  their 
flags  and  decorations,  arms  and  armor,  ban- 
quets and  servants,  were  very  expensive.  When 
he  took  a  journey,  which  was  very  often,  or 
when  one  of  his  four  daughters  was  married, 
he  called  upon  the  towns  for  large  sums  of 
money  to  pay  the  cost.  All  this  made  his  peo- 
ple grumble.  The  men  of  Kennemer  Land 
declined  to  pay,  unless  he  gave  them  a  charter 
of  privileges;  but  he  refused,  and  took  away 
from  them  even  what  they  had  had.  He 
treated  the  people  of  Dordrecht  in  the  same 
surly  manner,  so  that  he  became  very  un- 
popular. 

The  Hollanders  were  industrious,  and  did 
not  like  a  count  who  was  wasteful.  Although 
in  William's  lifetime  Holland  won  renown 
abroad,  yet  his  government  was  not  a  happy 
one  for  the  people.  The  Dutch  thought  that 
he  did  too  much  for  Hainault,  and  not  enough 
for  Holland,  and  neglected  the  business  inter- 
ests of  the  country.  During  his  time,  also, 
many  Dutch  clothmakers  went  over  to  Eng- 
land and  settled  there,  because  King  Edward 
III.  had  forbidden  the  export  of  wool,  which 
was  the  basis  of  English  trade  abroad. 


82 


BATTLE   ON  THE    ICE    BETWEEN    FRISIANS   AND    HOLLANDERS 


J  HE  NEW 

PUBLIC 


'•  «~o*  **o 
^  FOUND., 


THE   HOUSE    OF   HAINAULT 

The  plague  that  troubled  other  parts  of 
Europe  was  but  slightly  felt  in  Holland,  and 
the  price  of  rye,  which  at  that  time  almost  all 
the  people  of  Europe  used,  fell  from  fifteen 
pence  to  three  and  a  half  pence  a  bushel.  Few 
people  could  afford  to  eat  wheat  bread,  even 
though  a  penny  was  then  worth  five  or  six 
times  more  than  at  the  present  time. 

William  III.,  called  also  William  the  Pious, 
the  Master  of  Knights,  and  Chief  of  Princes, 
died  in  1337.  He  left  four  daughters:  Mar- 
garet, empress  of  Germany ;  Philippa,  queen  of 
England  ;  Joanna,  the  countess  of  Julieres ;  and 
Elizabeth. 

His  only  son,  William,  became  count'under 
the  title  of  William  IV.  He  raised  money  for 
his  wars  by  borrowing  from  the  townspeople. 
They  were  only  too  glad  to  furnish  him  with 
the  cash,  provided  he  would  grant  them  more 
rights  and  greater  privileges.  Thus  the  cus- 
tom of  public  loans  grew  up,  and  through  it 
life  in  the  cities  became  richer  and  more  joyous. 

William's  reign  was  very  short.  In  a  battle 
with  the  Frisians,  on  the  very  spot  where  their 
ancient  kings  held  their  supreme  court,  he  lost 
his  army  and  his  life.  His  dying  childless  left 
the  land  in  turmoil. 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

It  is  now  time  to  look  at  internal  politics ; 
for  as  the  people  were  getting  more  and  more 
rights  and  power,  they  formed  powerful  parties, 
and  with  very  Dutch  names. 


84 


CHAPTER  X 

THE    CODS    AND    HOOKS 

AFTER  the  death  of  William  IV.,  as  stated  in 
our  last  chapter,  it  became  a  serious  question 
who  was  the  ruler  of  Holland.  His  decease 
was  the  signal  for  an  outbreak  of  riot  and  civil 
war  that  lasted  through  several  generations. 
It  was  a  time  when  the  old  feudalism  was 
breaking  up,  and  the  cities  were  becoming 
more  and  more  powerful  as  against  the  nobles, 
there  being  much  hostility  and  jealousy  be- 
tween the  two.  Two  great  parties  were  formed, 
which  had  names  very  suitable  in  a  watery 
country  in  which  the  people  lived  largely  by 
fishing.  They  were  called  the  "  Codfishes  ' 
and  the  "  Fishhooks."  The  nobles  and  citizens 
of  the  larger  cities  were,  as  a  rule,  Cods.  The 
country  folk  and  people  of  the  smaller  towns 
were  the  Hooks. 

The  cod  is  a  voracious  creature,  able  to  eat 
up  the  little  fishes ;  but  the  fishhook,  in  the 
hands  of  a  fisherman,  can  catch  him  and  carry 
him  off.  The  Codfishes  were  the  more  numer- 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

ous,  but  the  Fishhooks  were  the  stronger.  It 
is  said  that  the  Cods  first  got  their  name  from 
their  armor,  which  looked  like  the  scales  of  a 
fish.  Oftentimes  brothers  and  relations  of  the 
same  family,  and  men  who  were  neighbors 
in  the  same  city,  were  divided  between  these 
parties.  Many  a  squabble  took  place  along 
the  canals  and  at  the  bridges,  during  which 
there  was  great  uproar  and  much  blood  was 
shed. 

Holland  had  always  been  an  undivided  he- 
reditary estate.  Margaret,  the  eldest  daughter 
of  William  III.,  and  empress  of  Germany,  con- 
sidered that  she  was  ruler  of  the  country ;  and 
though  it  was  winter,  she  traveled  at  once  into 
Holland,  before  Edward,  king  of  England, 
and  husband  of  her  sister  Philippa,  could  pre- 
sent his  wife's  claim.  The  Dutchmen,  finding 
her  so  anxious  to  rule,  at  once  took  advantage 
of  their  opportunity  and  obtained  from  her 
rights  and  privileges  for  which  they  had  long 
been  waiting.  Having  accepted  the  homage 
of  the  Dutch  people,  she  returned  to  her  hus- 
band in  Bavaria.  She  sent  her  second  son, 
William,  to  rule  Holland  while  she  should  be 
absent,  giving  him  sole  authority  and  reserv- 
ing for  herself  only  a  pension. 

Margaret's  husband,  the  emperor,  died  in 

86 


THE   CODS   AND   HOOKS 

1347,  and  since  her  son  William  did  not  pay 
the  pension  he  had  promised,  she  returned  to 
Holland  to  be  its  ruler.  She  obliged  her  son 
William  to  retire  to  Hainault;  but  he  did  not 
like  this  arrangement.  So  he  stirred  up  trou- 
ble, and  thus  Holland  was  plunged  into  fresh 
wars ;  for  the  quarrels  between  the  mother  and 
son  only  furnished  fuel  to  the  fire  of  hatred 
between  the  nobles  and  people. 

In  this  fourteenth  century,  the  Dutch  were 
not  the  only  people  that  were  suffering  from 
the  break-up  of  the  old  feudalism.  In  Ger- 
many and  France  also,  the  people  and  the  no- 
bility were  arrayed  against  each  other.  France 
became  a  field  of  blood.  The  awful  Jacquerie, 
or  insurrection  of  the  French  peasantry  against 
the  nobles,  took  place  in  May,  1358.  During 
three  weeks  or  more,  the  oppressed  lower 
classes  broke  loose  against  their  masters,  the 
lords  and  ladies  of  France.  They  burned  or 
destroyed  the  houses  of  the  rich  and  killed 
many  nobles,  committing  other  horrible  crimes. 
They  were  finally  beaten  in  battle  and  put 
down. 

In  Holland  the  nobles,  and  the  large  cities 
forming  the  Codfish  party,  took  the  side  of 
William  V.,  and  invited  him  to  come  into 
Holland  to  lead  them.  The  people  of  the 

37 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

country  and  smaller  towns  were  mostly  on 
Margaret's  side,  and  she  was  supported  also 
by  Brederode  and  some  of  the  popular  nobles. 
The  partisans  were  distinguished  by  the  color 
of  their  hats,  blue  or  white.  Finding  the 
Hooks  were  not  very  strong,  Margaret  asked 
for  help  from  the  king  of  England.  The 
Cods  seized  and  destroyed  seventeen  castles 
belonging  to  the  Hook  nobles,  and  though  in 
a  naval  battle  Margaret's  allies  defeated  their 
enemies  and  pursued  them,  yet,  in  the  river 
Maas,  William's  sailors  defeated  those  of  Mar- 
garet, and  Brederode  was  taken  prisoner.  The 
houses  and  castles  of  the  Hook  nobles  which 
remained  were  torn  to  pieces  or  set  on  fire, 
and  the  Hook  nobles  were  banished. 

Margaret  crossed  over  to  England  and  was 
soon  followed  by  William,  who  there  married 
Matilda,  the  daughter  of  the  duke  of  Lanca- 
shire. Then  peace  was  made  and  mother  and 
son  were  reconciled.  William  received  Hol- 
land, Zeeland,  and  Friesland  in  fief,  while  to 
Margaret,  Hainault  was  assigned,  and  she  was 
allowed  a  pension  also.  She  died  in  1356. 
Then  William  of  Bavaria  became  the  acknow- 
ledged count  of  Holland.  Thus  the  Nether- 
lands passed  out  from  the  control  of  the  house 
of  Hainault,  which  had  furnished  three  counts 


THE   CODS   AND   HOOKS 

and  one  countess  as  rulers  of  Holland,  and 
held  power  during  fifty  years,  from  1299  to 
1 349  A.  D. 

Now  began  the  Bavarian  dynasty  in  Hol- 
land, which  was  to  last  seventy-nine  years.  As 
the  Dutch  call  the  house  of  Hainault,  "  Het 
Huis  van  Henegouwen,"  so  they  speak  of  the 
house  of  Bavaria  as  "  Het  Huis  van  Beijeren." 


89 


CHAPTER   XI 

JACQUELINE    OF    BAVARIA 

THE  counts  of  Holland  belonging  to  the  house 
of  Bavaria,  three  in  number,  one  of  whom  had 
little  to  do  with  the  northern  Netherlands,  were 
occupied  chiefly  with  troubles  in  Ghent,  where 
the  people  were  fiercely  democratic,  and  in 
fighting  the  Frisians,  who  loved  liberty.  The 
fourth  and  last  ruler  of  this  line  in  the  Nether- 
lands was  Jacqueline,  or  Jacoba,  as  the  Dutch 
call  her.  As  she  is  the  best  known  of  the 
four,  we  shall  devote  most  of  this  chapter  to 
her  life  and  her  many  adventures  and  sorrows. 
Count  Albert  ruled  forty-six  years,  dying  in 
1404.  His  daughters  \vere  married  to  noble- 
men of  high  rank,  and  his  sons  became  emi- 
nent in  office.  He  had  the  misfortune  to  live 
in  an  evil  ao;e.  Although  he  was  mild  and 

o  o 

just,  the  country  was  in  constant  turmoil  dur- 
ing his  whole  lifetime ;  for  he  could  not  control 
the  Hooks  and  Cods,  or  make  his  subjects 
obey  him.  When  he  died,  he  was  so  poor, 

and    had  so  many  debts,  that   his  widow,  in 

90 


JACQUELINE   OF   BAVARIA 

order  to  be  free  of  them,  had  to  renounce  all 
claim  to  his  estate,  or  "  boedel,"  —  a  word 
which  has  since  become  American  slang  and 
is  spelled  "  boodle." 

In  this  ancient  ceremony,  the  widow  first 
chose  a  guardian.  Then  the  body  of  the  count 
was  placed  on  a  bier  and  brought  before  the 
door  of  the  court.  The  widow,  having  bor- 
rowed clothes  from  some  other  woman,  and 
keeping  in  her  hands,  or  on  her  person,  no- 
thing whatever  that  she  had  received  from  her 

C5 

late  husband,  walked  out  from  her  house  to 
the  corpse  with  a  straw  in  her  hand.  This 
straw  she  handed  to  her  guardian,  thus  re- 
nouncing and  surrendering  in  her  name  all 

o  o 

interest  in  the  estate  of  her  husband,  and  in 
all  debts  due  to  or  from  him.  This  custom 
of  using  a  straw  was  also  common  among  the 
Franks,  compacts  being  broken  by  breaking  a 
straw. 

In  1417  the  Frisians  obtained  from  the 
emperor  a  charter  confirming  their  independ- 
ence. William  VI.  died  this  same  year  and 
was  succeeded  by  his  daughter  Jacoba,  or 
Jacqueline. 

This  wonderful  woman  was  destined  to  be 
sadly  famous,  and  to  suffer  many  troubles  and 
sorrows.  Her  father,  Count  William,  had 

91 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

formed  an  alliance  between  her  and  the  son  of 
the  king  of  France,  which  country  was  suffer- 
ing from  the  rival  factions  of  Burgundy  and 
Orleans.  It  was  while  the  house  of  Burgundy 
was  in  the  ascendant  that  John,  the  king's 
second  son,  was  betrothed  to  Jacqueline.  Both 
were  so  young  that  they  were  not  married  till 
1415,  when  she  was  declared  heir  to  Hainault, 
Holland,  and  Friesland. 

When  his  brother  Louis  died  without  chil- 
dren, John  became  dauphin,  or  heir  apparent  to 
the  French  crown.  Yet  when  envoys  came  to 
invite  John  to  the  French  court,  Count  William 
was  afraid  to  allow  the  husband  of  his  only 
daughter  and  child  to  go  to  his  home  ;  for 
not  only  was  civil  war  raging,  but  King  Henry 
of  England  had  invaded  France  and  fought 
the  battle  of  Agincourt,  in  which  9000  French 
knights  were  killed.  Added  to  this,  the  Or- 
leans faction  disliked  the  young  dauphin  and 
his  father.  So  both  remained  in  Hainault. 

During  the  truce  between  the  French  and 
English,  much  diplomacy  went  on.  William 
went  to  Paris,  leaving  the  dauphin  at  Com- 
piegne,  while  he  should  arrange  the  terms  of 
his  reception.  But  when  he  heard  that  he 
would  be  seized  by  the  men  in  power,  he  left 

Paris  and  hurried  to  Compiegne,  there  to  find 

92 


THE   WIDOW  OF   COUNT  ALBERT   RENOUNCING   HER   CLAIM 


JACQUELINE    OF   BAVARIA 

his  son-in-law  dying.  It  was  believed  that  the 
young  man  had  been  killed  by  wearing  a  mag- 
nificent suit  of  armor  which  had  been  lined 
with  poison. 

In  those  days  it  was  quite  a  common  thing 
for  polite  murderers  to  get  rid  of  their  ene- 
mies, not  only  by  putting  poison  in  their  food, 
but  by  presenting  them  with  cunningly  made 
rings.  These  had  a  spur  or  orifice,  within 
which  was  a  drop  of  poison,  as  strong  as  the 
venom  which  oozes  from  a  rattlesnake's  fangs. 
The  dauphin,  delighted  with  his  beautiful  ar- 
mor, had  quickly  put  it  on  and  worn  it,  so  that 
the  poison  entered  his  body  and  he  died.- 

Jacqueline's  father  was  now  in  a  terrible 
situation.  The  succession  to  power  had  been 
settled  upon  his  daughter,  on  condition  that 
her  husband  should  be  ruler ;  for  most  of  the 
Hollanders  disliked  to  be -ruled  by  a  woman. 
On  previous  occasions  they  had  almost  re- 
belled, declaring  that  they  would  not  be  ver- 
vrouwd,  or  "  womaned."  William  was  afraid 
that  his  brother  John,  who  had  been  elected 
bishop  of  Liege,  would  seize  the  authority,  so 
he  assembled  the  nobles  of  the  towns  of  Hol- 
land in  congress.  They  swore  to  acknowledge 
Jacqueline  as  their  ruler,  in  case  he,  William, 
should  die  without  a  son.  This  was  just  what 

93 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

happened ;  for  only  a  few  weeks  later,  in  1417, 
as  we  have  said,  this  handsome  and  gallant 
count,  this  knight  who  so  often  bore  away 
prizes  at  the  tournaments,  lay  a  corpse. 

It  was  during  the  early  years  of  Jacqueline 
that  new  sources  of  wealth  were  developed. 
One  was  the  greater  use  of  the  windmill,  first 
introduced  in  1329,  and  the  other  was  the 
general  curing  of  herring  by  the  fishermen. 
The  gold  mines  of  the  Dutch  are  not  in  their 
muddy  ground,  but  lie  in  the  ocean,  in  their 
brains,  and  in  their  habits  of  industry,  which 
are  better  than  gold.  The  herring  fisheries 
had  already  begun  and  brought  in  plenty  of 
nourishment  for  the  people.  Yet,  unlike  grain, 
this  kind  of  food  could  not  be  kept  long.  When 
a  Dutchman  discovered  how  to  cure  or  dry  the 
fish,  so  that  they  could  be  kept  over  from  one 
month  to  another,  and  even  carried  to  distant 
countries  and  sold,  then  a  great  stream  of  gold 
rolled  from  many  lands  into  the  Netherlands. 

William  Beukels,  a  poor  fisherman  of  Bier- 
vliet,  in  Zeeland,  showed,  in  1350,  that  herring 
could  be  dried  in  smoke  and  thus  preserved. 
By  salting  them,  they  could  be  packed  in  kegs 
and  barrels  and  exported  to  foreign  countries, 
and  even  to  the  ends  of  the  earth.  Others  had 
tried  to  do  this,  but  Beukels  was  the  one  who 

94 


JACQUELINE    OF   BAVARIA 

succeeded.  There  are  even  people  who  say 
that  our  word  "  pickle '  is  derived  from  his 
name;  but  this  term  comes  rather  from  the 
older  Dutch  word  "  pekel,"  or  brine  of  vinegar 
and  salt,  of  which  the  Dutch  were  always  very 
fond. 

The  herrings  appear  annually  in  great  shoals 
around  the  coast  and  near  the  surface  of  the 
water.  The  larger  fishes  prey  on  them,  swal- 
lowing many  at  a  time,  while  the  gulls  and 
other  sea  birds  swoop  upon  them  and  get  fat 
by  eating  them.  Yet  they  are  very  uncertain, 
and  come  and  go  without  any  known  reason. 
Long  before  the  English  and  Scotch  people 
became  interested  in  the  herring  fisheries,  the 
Dutch  had  already  got  rich  by  them,  and  a 
proverb  declared  that  "  Amsterdam  is  built  on 
herring  bones." 

Hundreds  of  years  after  Beukels  invented 
the  pickling  of  herring,  the  great  emperor, 
Charles  V.,  made  a  pilgrimage  to  the  tomb  of 
this  humble  fisherman,  and  there  ate  one  of 
the  cured  fish,  in  gratitude  for  the  invention. 
Likewise,  from  time  to  time,  did  other  kings 
and  queens. 

To-day,  in  the  church  at  Biervliet,  there  is  a 
stained  glass  window  commemorating  the  fish- 
erman who  brought  what  was  better  than  gold 

95 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

mines  to  the  Netherlands.  Although  Scotland 
in  our  day  has  excelled  Holland  in  bloaters, 
red  herring,  and  in  fisheries  generally,  yet  the 
herring  still  fills  a  large  part  of  Holland's  horn 
of  plenty,  and  brings  riches  to  the  people. 
Every  year,  when  the  first  herrings  are  caught, 
they  are  drawn  in  a  coach  and  six  horses  to 
the  royal  palace.  At  the  shops,  a  crown  of 
green  leaves  is  hung  out  to  show  that  these 
fresh  delicacies  are  for  sale.  Smoked,  dried, 
pickled,  kippered,  eaten  fresh  when  baked, 
boiled,  or  broiled,  or  made  into  salads  or  pas- 
ties, they  are  the  every-day  food  of  millions 
of  people.  The  Dutch  have  many  pet  names 
and  proverbs  about  them.  White  herring 
are  called  "green,"  the  soused  herring  are 
"pickled,"  and  smoked  are  "red."  Our  word 
"  keg,"  or  "  cag,"  is  derived  from  the  Dutch 
"  kaken,"  which  means  "  to  barrel  up."  When 
people  have  to  sit  close  together,  they  say  they 
are  "packed  like  herrings."  The  Dutch  also 
were  the  first  to  learn  how  to  make  the  enor- 
mous seines,  or  nets,  to  catch  herrings  by  the 
thousand.  The  first  one  was  used  at  Hoorn. 
Millions  of  dollars  are  made  annually  in  the 
catch  and  sale  of  this  valuable  fish. 

The  young  widow,  Jacqueline,  though  only 
seventeen  years  old,  was  a  wonderful  creature, 

96 


JACQUELINE   OF   BAVARIA 

very  beautiful  and  lovely,  and  as  brave  as  a 
man.  Her  people  were  very  fond  of  her,  and 
she  in  return  loved  them  and  gave  them  char- 
ters and  privileges;  but  the  ambition  of  her 
uncle,  John  the  bishop,  gave  her  endless 
trouble,  and  her  great  beauty  and  charm  were 
sources  of  sorrow  rather  than  of  joy  to  her. 

In  those  days  many  wicked  and  worthless 
men  became  bishops  for  political  purposes  and 
selfish  ambition.  John,  though  he  wanted  to 
be  bishop,  did  not  take  the  priest's  orders ;  but 
William  made  him  bishop,  and  then  he  wished 
to  be  ruler  of  Holland,  against  Jacqueline's 
right.  She  resisted.  Both  uncle  and  niece 
raised  armies  to  fight  each  other,  and  war  broke 
out.  John  was  called  "  the  Ungodly,"  or  the 
"  Pitiless."  The  great  danger  to  her  country 
from  this  wicked  uncle  led  the  young  countess 
to  marry  her  cousin,  John  IV.,  duke  of  Bra- 
bant, and  lord  of  Antwerp,  who  was  even 
younger  than  herself.  He  and  his  brother 
Philip  were  sons  of  that  Antony,  duke  of  Bra- 
bant, who  was  killed  at  the  battle  of  Agincourt. 
The  older  of  the  two  brothers  was  weak  and 
tyrannical,  the  younger  was  crafty  and  cruel. 
As  Jacqueline  took  a  husband  for  political  rea- 
sons and  not  for  love,  she  had  many  new  and 
unlooked-for  miseries  from  both  these  men. 

97 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

The  wedding  took  place  in  the  spring  of 
1418.  Upon  this,  her  uncle  John  resolved  to 
give  up  his  bishopric,  marry  a  wife,  and  go  into 
politics.  So  he  obtained  permission  from  the 
Pope,  and  took  to  himself  Elizabeth  of  Luxem- 
bourg. He  then  assumed  the  title  of  count. 
This  caused  civil  war  to  break  out  at  once  ; 
for  there  could  not  be  two  counts  of  Holland 
any  more  than  two  suns  in  the  same  sky. 

The  Netherlander,  especially  those  belong- 
ing to  the  Hook  party,  stood  by  Jacqueline, 
while  others,  mostly  of  the  Cod  party,  ranged 
themselves  with  the  ex-bishop  John.  The 
struggle  was  for  "boodle,"  or  the  spoils  of 
office ;  for  politicians  were  as  eager,  as  hungry, 
and  covetous  then  as  now.  After  some  blood- 
shed and  much  quarreling,  which  kept  the 
country  in  turmoil,  it  came  to  pass  that,  through 
the  folly  of  Jacqueline's  worthless  husband, 
who  was  feeble  in  body  and  mind,  lazy  and 
uncertain,  she  lost  most  of  her  possessions. 

This  John  was  a  petty  tyrant.  He  ordered 
his  wife  to  send  away  her  Dutch  ladies  from 
court,  and  he  put  Brabant  ladies  in  their  places. 
When  Jacqueline  reached  the  age  of  twenty- 
one  years,  she  was  a  bright  and  vigorous  wo- 
man, and  her  spirit  revolted  against  her  fate. 

Unable  to  bear  the  wretchedness  of  her  posi- 

98 


JACQUELINE    OF   BAVARIA 

tion,  she  secretly  left  the  court,  and,  with  her 
mother,  traveled  to  Calais.  Thence  she  fled 
to  England,  where  she  was  warmly  welcomed 
by  Henry  V.,  who  gave  her  twelve  hundred 
pounds  sterling  a  year.  When  the  little  Eng- 
lish baby  that  became  Henry  VI.  was  baptized, 
Jacqueline  held  him  at  the  font. 

Jacqueline's  beauty  brought  her  into  fresh 
trouble.  The  king's  brother  Humphrey,  the 
duke  of  Gloucester,  fell  in  love  with  her,  but 
she  could  not  be  married  without  permission 
of  the  Pope.  At  this  time  there  were  two 
popes,  one  at  Rome  and  one  at  Avignon.  One 
of  them,  Benedict  XIII.,  granted  a  divorce. 
The  English  duke  and  the  Dutch  countess, 
Humphrey  and  Jacqueline,  were  wedded  to- 
ward the  end  of  the  year  1422.  This  marriage 
gave  great  offense  both  in  England  and  in  the 
Netherlands.  The  new  husband  and  wife  in- 
vaded Hainault,  and  some  of  the  cities  wel- 
comed them ;  but  soon  their  Dutch  enemies 
won  victories,  in  which  many  of  their  English 
soldiers  were  put  to  death.  When  the  duke 
of  Burgundy  challenged  the  duke  of  Gloucester 
to  single  combat,  he,  either  out  of  cowardice 
or  to  prepare  himself,  went  over  to  England, 
leaving  Jacqueline  in  Mons.  There  she  was 
seized  by  the  citizens  and  given  into  the  hands 

99 

5159 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

of  the  deputies  of  her  late  husband,  John  of 

Brabant. 

The  unhappy  woman  was  taken  to  Ghent, 
to  be  kept  until  the  other  Pope,  Martin  V., 
should  decide  upon  the  question  of  her  mar- 
riage; but  this  time  Jacqueline  was  too  clever 
for  them.  In  some  way  she  obtained  the  cloth- 
ing of  her  page,  and,  putting  on  male  disguise, 
escaped  into  Holland,  where  the  citizens  gave 
her  a  warm  welcome.  The  next  year  her 
uncle,  John  the  Ungodly,  died  from  poison, 
after  naming  as  his  heir  Jacqueline's  cousin, 
Philip  of  Burgundy. 

Jacqueline  remained  at  Gouda  waiting  for 
help  from  England.  She  was  very  fond  of 
outdoor  exercise,  shooting  at  the  popinjay, 
riding  horseback,  and  distributing  prizes  to 
contestants.  Sometimes  she  rode  at  the  head 
of  her  troops  and  won  victories.  The  English 
came  over  and  helped  the  Hook  party.  A 
great  battle  was  fought  between  the  allies  and 
the  Cods,  in  which  the  former  were  beaten, 
over  a  thousand  soldiers,  with  many  nobles  of 
Zeeland,  being  slain.  Thus  Jacqueline  had  to 
part  with  the  whole  of  this  rich  province.  In 
the  north,  also,  several  combats  between  the 
Cods  and  the  Hooks  went  against  her.  She 
retreated  once  more  to  Gouda. 


IOO 


JACQUELINE   GOING   FORTH   TO  SHOOT   AT  THE   POPINJAY 


THE   NEW    YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


ASTOR,  LENOX   AND 
TU.DEN  FOUNDATIONS. 

c 


JACQUELINE    OF   BAVARIA 

Jacqueline's  great  opponent  was  her  cousin 
and  brother-in-law,  Philip  of  Burgundy,  who 
secured  for  himself  from  her  former  husband, 
John,  the  title  of  governor  and  heir  of  Holland. 
While  John  gave  up  all  pretense  of  governing, 
Philip  proceeded  to  treat  the  Dutch  people 
with  great  cruelty. 

The  fortunes  of  Jacqueline  were  now  at  a 
low  ebb.  She  had  only  four  towns  that  ac- 
knowledged her.  To  add  to  her  troubles,  the 
Pope  declared  her  last  marriage  unlawful,  and 
forbade  her  ever  marrying  again.  Heroic  wo- 
man as  she  was,  she  appealed  to  the  general 
council  of  the  Church  against  the  Pope.  In 
England,  the  English  women  sympathized 
strongly  with  her.  They  came  to  Parliament, 
petitioning  the  lords  and  bishops  that  the 
cowardly  duke  of  Gloucester  should  assist 
his  Dutch  wife  and  be  faithful  to  her ;  but  he 
forsook  the  Countess  Jacqueline  and  married 
another  woman,  Eleanor  Cobham. 

This  cruel  desertion  was  a  keen  pang  to  a 
beautiful  and  high-spirited  woman,  a  princess 
of  true  birth,  and  the  real  ruler  of  Holland. 
She  remained  in  Gouda  in  grief  and  inaction, 
and  when  Philip  and  his  army,  backed  by 
the  Cods,  appeared  before  the  walls,  she  was 
obliged  to  yield  and  make  a  new  and  humili- 

101 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

ating  treaty.  She  promised  not  to  appeal  to 
the  Pope,  to  surrender  her  country  to  Philip 
as  ruler,  and  not  to  marry  again  without  his 
consent  and  that  of  her  mother,  and  of  the 
estates  of  towns,  nobles,  and  clergy.  If  she 
should  remarry,  her  subjects  were  to  be  released 
from  her  control,  and  she  was  to  be  degraded 
from  her  rank  and  be  no  longer  countess. 

Thus,  deprived  of  all  real  authority,  Jacque- 
line left  Gouda,  that  had  so  long  been  faithful 
to  her,  and  went  to  live  in  the  pretty  little  town 
of  Goes.  To-day  some  fragments  of  her  castle 
remain  in  Goes,  and  in  Gouda  there  is  a  fine 
chalice,  superbly  enameled  and  gilded,  which 
the  people  still  prize  highly  as  the  gift  of 
Jacqueline  to  the  guild  of  archers  in  1425. 
The  pretty  blue  and  white  porcelain  called 
Delftware  is  associated  with  Jacqueline's  name  ; 
for  during  her  enforced  leisure  in  the  convent, 
she  amused  herself  and  beguiled  her  time 
in  moulding  and  decorating  the  clay,  which, 
when  fired  or  baked,  gave  a  new  glory  to  com- 
mon earth.  "  Borselen  "  became  "  porcelain." 

Philip  went  back  to  Flanders  and  appointed 
as  his  stadholder,  or  lieutenant,  Francis  van 
Borselen,  to  rule  over  Holland  and  Zeeland. 

Having  now  no  wealth  or  title  to  bestow, 
most  of  Jacqueline's  party,  the  Hooks,  deserted 

IO2 


JACQUELINE   OF   BAVARIA 

the  unfortunate  lady ;  but  Francis  van  Borse- 
len,  though  one  of  the  Cods,  was  ever  ready  to 
help  her  with  money  and  advice.  He  proved 
himself  her  true  friend,  so  that  now,  being 
more  a  woman  than  a  politician,  she,  probably 
for  the  first  time  in  her  life,  loved  truly.  When 
he  pressed  her  to  marry  him,  she  agreed, 
though  she  well  knew  what  would  be  the  pen- 
alty of  a  secret  marriage ;  for  all  around  her 
were  Philip's  spies,  who  kept  him  informed  of 
what  was  going  on.  Yet  love  conquered  and 
made  her  a  slave.  She  was  married. 

This  was  just  what  her  crafty  and  cruel 
enemy,  Philip,  wanted.  He  now  had  this 
beautiful  woman,  who  was  only  thirty-five  years 
old,  as  much  in  his  power  as  the  falcon  that 
holds  the  dove  in  its  beak  and  claws.  He  ar- 
rested Francis  van  Borselen  at  The  Hague, 
and  brought  him  to  Rupelmonde,  giving  out 
that  he  was  to  be  a  prisoner  for  life.  This 
he  knew  would  lead  the  loving  Jacqueline, 
in  order  tov  save  him,  to  yield  up  her  title  of 
countess  and  the  allegiance  of  her  subjects. 
Philip  therefore  gave  to  van  Borselen  other 
offices,  but  he  was  no  longer  stadholder,  and 
Jacqueline  was  no  more  a  princess.  Yet, 
though  now  only  a  plain  woman,  passing  her 

days  in  obscurity,  and  with  but  a  small  pension, 

103 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

it  may  be  that  these  last  were  the  happiest  of 
her  life.  All  too  swiftly  the  time  sped  on,  and 
soon  she  fell  into  a  decline.  She  died  in  1426 
of  consumption,  at  the  age  of  thirty-six.  Her 
four  husbands  were:  John,  son  of  Charles  VI. 
of  France;  John  IV.,  duke  of  Brabant;  Hum- 
phrey, duke  of  Gloucester;  Francis,  lord  of 
Borselen. 

What  a  story  of  grief  and  sorrow !  Well 
might  Jacqueline  write  her  biography  as  one 
did,  "  My  whole  life  has  been  a  disappoint- 
ment." She  was  married  four  times,  but  only 
once  for  love,  and  of  her  own  personal  choice. 
Betrothed  as  a  girl,  she  was  wedded  to  a  young 
prince  and  had  bright  hopes  of  a  long  reign, 
when  her  first  husband  died  suddenly  of  poi- 
son. Her  second  political  marriage  was  fruit- 
ful only  in  disgusting  misery.  Her  third  was 
with  a  man  who  had  sought  her  hand  and 
name  for  selfish  purposes  only,  and  then  de- 
serted her,  a  coward  and  a  sneak. 

With  Jacqueline,  whom  the  Dutch  speak  of 
as  "  Jacoba  van  Beijeren,"  ended  the  rule,  in 
1436,  of  the  house  of  Bavaria  in  Holland. 
The  Dutch  are  never  tired  of  celebrating  in 
painting,  song,  and  story,  on  the  stage  and  in 
tableaux,  her  romantic  career.  She  had  no 

children,  and  when  she  died  the  Netherlands 

104 


JACQUELINE    OF   BAVARIA 

became  united  with  the  realm  of  the  duke  of 
Burgundy. 

It  was  while  Jacqueline  was  in  England  that 
the  disastrous  flood  of  1421  took  place,  called 
Saint  Elizabeth's  flood.  In  South  Holland, 
which  was  then  the  richest  district  of  the  coun- 
try, seventy-two  market  towns  and  villages  were 
washed  away  or  engulfed.  There  were  enor- 
mous losses  of  property  in  cattle  and  goods. 
Many  families  were  reduced  from  wealth  to 
poverty,  and  some  of  the  nobility  almost  to 
beggary.  Perhaps  a  hundred  thousand  people 
were  drowned,  and  the  town  of  Dordrecht  was 
cut  off  from  the  mainland.  It  was  an  awful 
sight  to  see  the  people  climbing  up  into  the 
trees  and  upon  the  roofs  of  houses  until  great 
crowds  were  found  on  the  house-tops  and 
church-roofs.  There,  unable  to  assist  their 
friends,  who  were  swept  past  and  drowned  in 
the  flood,  they  spent  hours  or  days  of  agony, 
only  to  starve,  or  be  themselves  hurled  into 
the  waters  through  the  undermining  and  giv- 
ing way  of  the  houses.  To-day,  in  the  gloomy 
and  lonely  "forest  of  reeds,"  called  the  Bies- 
bosch,  which  makes  a  great  scar  on  the  map, 
one  can  see  the  network  of  water-courses  and 
mud  which  has  taken  the  place  of  a  once  rich 


and  fertile  region. 


105 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

The  dynasty  of  Bavaria  (Het  Huis  van  Bei- 
jeren),  —  three  counts  and  one  countess,  —  end- 
ing with  Jacqueline,  had  ruled  Holland  during 
seventy-nine  years,  from  1349  to  1429  A.  D. 


1 06 


CHAPTER   XII 

THE    HOUSE    OF    BURGUNDY 

BURGUNDY,  a  fertile  region,  rich  in  wine,  took 
its  name  from  the  Burgundu,  a  German  tribe. 
It  was  founded  in  406,  and  then  included 
the  valley  of  the  river  Rhone  in  Southern 
France  and  the  western  half  of  Switzerland, 
but  changed  its  boundaries,  rulers,  and  politi- 
cal status  several  times.  In  the  fifteenth  cen- 
tury it  was  a  duchy,  and  Philip  was  its  duke. 
Holland  now  came  under  his  rule,  and,  through 
that  of  his  successors,  the  Netherlander  were 
ruled  by  Spaniards  and  Austrians. 

Philip  of  Burgundy,  who  was  called  "  the 
Good,"  but  who  was  a  very  bad  man,  married 
Isabella  of  Portugal,  and  the  wedding  was 
celebrated  at  Bruges,  in  January,  1430.  With 
all  his  great  territory,  though  only  a  duke,  and 
not  a  king,  he  was  now  the  equal  in  power  of 
many  sovereigns  of  Europe,  while  richer  than 
any  of  them,  and  his  court  had  no  superior  in 
splendor  and  brilliancy. 

Philip  founded  the  order  of  the  Knights 

107 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

of  the  Golden  Fleece.  These  were  at  first 
twenty-four,  but  the  number  was  afterwards 
increased  to  fifty-one.  The  first  meeting,  or 
chapter,  was  held  in  1431,  when  the  festivities 
lasted  three  days.  Each  knight  wore  a  long 
robe,  first  of  purple  woolen  cloth,  but  after- 
wards of  silk  velvet.  His  insignia  was  a  golden 

o  o 

collar,  holding  a  lamb  with  a  golden  fleece, 
with  two  laurel  bows,  and  the  duke's  symbol 
of  flint  and  steel  striking  fire. 

Philip's  rule  was  long  and  brilliant.  Com- 
merce increased  and  art  and  literature  flour- 
ished. Yet  Philip  was  a  very  extravagant 
ruler,  and  no  friend  of  liberty.  Whereas 
Jacqueline  had  studied  the  needs  of  her  peo- 
ple and  gave  them  all  the  freedom  then  possi- 
ble, Philip  went  in  the  other  direction.  He 
not  only  took  away  many  of  their  charters  and 
gave  them  fewer  privileges,  but  he  made  his 
own  selfish  will  the  law.  He  went  to  war  with 
England,  when  the  Dutch  had  no  desire  to 
do  so. 

Besides  this  wicked  strife,  there  was  trouble 
with  the  Baltic  towns,  so  that  the  usual  supply 
of  grain  was  not  obtained  and  the  price  of  rye 
rose.  The  poor  people,  not  being  able  to  get 
bread,  had  to  eat  beans,  rape,  and  hemp  seed. 

The  crops,  also,  were  very  poor.     Yet  while 

1 08 


THE   HOUSE    OF   BURGUNDY 

the  country  was  in  this  condition,  their  foreign 
ruler,  the  duke  of  Burgundy,  called  for  fresh 
taxes. 

The  usual  symptoms  of  bad  government 
began  to  appear.  The  quarrels  between  the 
Cods  and  the  Hooks  broke  out  afresh.  In 
Haarlem,  the  two  parties  took  up  arms.  Dur- 
ing two  days  they  glared  at  each  other,  ready 
to  fight,  but  bloodshed  was  prevented  by  a 
priest  walking  up  and  down  the  ranks,  carry- 
ing the  host.  Philip  sent  his  wife  Isabella  to 
quiet  the  rioters,  and  once  inside  the  city  she 
persuaded  the  Hooks  to  withdraw.  The  next 
troubles  were  in  the  town  of  Leyden,  when 
the  streets  and  bridges  in  the  city  became 
the  scenes  of  bloodshed.  Finally  the  duke 
of  Burgundy  himself  came  to  Holland  and 
ordered  that  the  partisans  should  no  more  call 
each  other  names,  or  sing  songs  in  ridicule  of 
their  rivals.  He  also  prohibited  the  wearing 
of  uniforms  or  marks,  the  putting  on  of  the 
white  or  the  blue  hoods,  the  enlistment  of  new 
burgher  guards,  and  the  carrying  of  swords 
or  other  weapons  or  armor.  If  a  man  was 
killed  in  a  quarrel,  it  was  ordered  that  six 
weeks  should  be  allowed  the  friends  on  both 
sides  to  settle  the  matter. 

Thus  Philip  secured  peace,  but  no  sooner 

109 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

had  he  done  this  than  he  took  unfair  advan- 
tage by  laying  on  heavier  taxes.  He  also 
tried  to  reform  the  Church,  which  at  this  time 
was  terribly  corrupt  and  full  of  superstition. 
There  wrere  some  hopes  for  reform,  because  the 
teachings  of  Wycliffe  of  England,  John  Huss, 
and  Jerome  of  Prague  had  already  spread 
throughout  the  Netherlands.  The  translation 
of  the  Bible,  though  poorly  done,  helped  the 
Dutch  people  to  read  the  Scriptures,  and  see 
how  widely  the  wicked  priests  and  church 
rulers  departed  from  the  simplicity  of  early 
Christian  times. 

The  duke  was  so  lavish  and  wasteful  with 
his  feasts,  tiltings,  and  shows,  his  personal 
gratification  and  his  gifts  to  favorites,  that  his 
treasury  was  often  empty  and  he  had  to  lay 
fresh  taxes  upon  the  Netherlanders.  Unable 
to  bear  the  galling  load,  they  rose  in  rebellion, 
the  men  of  Ghent  leading  the  revolt.  Sev- 
eral battles  were  fought,  but  the  citizens  were 
beaten.  Those  who  were  not  killed  were 
obliged  to  come  out  bareheaded  and  bare- 
footed and,  on  their  knees,  to  beg  for  pardon. 
About  two  thousand  Ghenters  thus  knelt. 
The  banners  of  the  guilds  were  taken  away, 
and  they  were  obliged  to  pay  the  expenses  of 

the  war  as  well  as  the  taxes. 

no 


THE   HOUSE   OF   BURGUNDY 

Philip's  son,  Charles  the  Bold,  a  terrible 
fighter,  was  made  stadholder  of  Zeeland,  where 
he  ruled  the  people  with  a  rod  of  iron.  Philip 
attempted  to  regain  his  authority  in  Friesland, 
and  largely  succeeded.  Getting  into  war  with 
France,  his  son,  Charles  the  Bold,  marched  to 
the  very  gates  of  Paris  and  further  chastised 
the  Netherlandish  allies  of  the  French.  In 
this  war  the  men  of  Holland  probably  took  no 
part,  but  they  had  to  pay  heavy  taxes  to  help 
in  settling  the  count's  war  bills. 

Philip  the  First  died  in  Bruges,  in  1467, 
at  seventy-two  years  of  age,  and  his  long  rule 
was  over.  He  has  the  reputation  of  being 
humane  and  just.  He  loved  peace  and  made 
many  treaties  with  foreign  nations,  by  which 
the  people  of  his  large  dominions  profited 
greatly,  so  that  though  they  were  heavily 
taxed,  they  could,  in  most  cases,  easily  pay. 
It  is  even  said  that  Philip  received  more 
money  from  his  subjects  than  they  had  paid 
in  four  centuries  toQ-ether  before. 

o 

At  this  time  the  Dutch  had  learned  to  make 
salt  and  to  refine  it  better  than  any  people  in 
Europe.  Besides  being  fishermen,  they  were 
highly  skilled  weavers  and  exported  linen  and 
woolen  cloth.  They  were  also  excellent  jewel- 
ers, and  sold  much  gold  and  silver  work  and 

in 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

many  jewels  in  England.  They  had  improved 
in  agriculture  and  the  making  of  dikes.  In- 
stead of  facing  their  dams  or  banks  with  bun- 
dles of  reeds,  as  in  old  times,  they  now  began 
to  bolt  together  beams  of  wood,  fill  them  with 
earth  and  stone,  and  then  front  them  with 
heavy  planks,  so  that  they  could  resist  both 
the  rush  and  the  pounding  of  the  sea  waves. 
In  many  places  they  defended  the  piers  by 
driving  piles  out  in  the  water,  so  as  to  break 
the  first  force  of  the  billows. 

The  duke  left  at  his  death  an  immense  for- 
tune. It  consisted  of  four  hundred  thousand 
crowns  of  gold,  and  one  hundred  thousand 
marks  of  silver,  with  pictures,  jewels,  and  furni- 
ture, supposed  to  be  worth  two  millions  more. 
He  was  thus  the  richest  ruler  in  Europe.  His 
bad  example  of  wastefulness  in  festivals,  shows, 
entertainments,  and  personal  adornment  was 
imitated  by  his  nobles.  Many  of  them  were 
ruined  by  their  extravagance,  and  although 
there  was  so  much  show  and  brilliancy,  morals 
were  very  bad.  In  Holland  the  continual  quar- 
rels of  the  Hooks  and  Cods  brutalized  manners 
and  kept  up  hatred  and  faction.  Nevertheless, 
the  Burgundian  era  is  looked  upon  as  a  bril- 
liant one,  because  literature  and  the  arts  were 
patronized  and  encouraged  by  Philip.  It  is 

I  12 


w 

I— I 

o 

w 
o 

pa 
< 


THE   HOUSE    OF   BURGUNDY 

believed  that  John  van  Eyck  of  Bruges  in- 
vented oil  colors,  and  from  his  day  painting 
entered  upon  a  new  era.  Historians  began  to 
write,  and  printing  came  into  use. 

Nobody  knows  who  invented  movable,  or, 
as  the  Japanese  say,  "  living,"  types.  In  Ger- 
many, Gutenberg  is  supposed  to  have  been 
the  inventor.  In  Haarlem,  the  statue  of  Cos- 
ter stands  near  the  great  church.  He  holds  in 
his  fingers  a  metal  type.  It  is  said  that  one 
day,  while  walking  in  the  woods  among  the 
beautiful  beech  trees  of  Haarlem,  he  whittled 
out  some  letters  from  bits  of  beech  wood. 
Wrapping  these  up  to  take  home,  he  noticed 
that  the  sap  stained  the  paper,  leaving  impres- 
sions of  the  letters.  This  gave  him  the  idea 
of  printing.  Others  say  that  he  invented  a 
thick  glutinous  ink,  and,  using  these  wooden 
types  in  the  same  way  as  a  seal  is  used  to  give 
impressions,  made  little  books  for  his  nieces 
and  nephews. 

Apart  from  all  these  uncertain  stories,  we 
know  that  long  before  the  time  of  either  Guten- 
berg or  Coster,  the  Netherlands  were  famous 
for  their  wrood  engravers,  who  made  pictures  of 
saints  and  the  Virgin.  Underneath  and  around 
the  drawings,  and  in  the  block,  they  cut  letters. 
With  these  engraved  blocks  they  printed  tracts 

"3 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

and  books  for  the  pious,  and  many  thousands 
of  leaves  for  the  hornbooks  which  children 
used  in  school.  It  is  highly  probable  that 
printing  with  living,  or  separate,  types  was 
brought  by  the  Mongols  into  Europe,  from 
China  or  Korea,  where  it  had  been  for  centu- 
ries in  use,  and  that  Europeans  improved  upon 
the  lead  or  iron,  wood,  or  terra-cotta  type  by 
making  an  alloy  of  lead  and  antimony. 

Besides  their  wood  engravers,  picture  makers, 
and  printers,  the  Netherlands  were  famous  for 
their  free  schools  for  children.  Holland  was 
one  of  the  first  countries  in  Europe  to  have 
public  schools ;  that  is,  schools  where  the  poor 
children  could  learn  to  read  and  write  free  of 
cost,  and  the  burghers'  sons  and  daughters  be 

o  o 

educated  for  a  small  sum  of  money;  the  sala- 
ries of  the  teachers  and  the  chief  expenses 
being  paid  out  of  the  public  treasury,  by  tax- 
ation. 

The  first  schools  were  taught  by  monks  or 
priests  who,  in  the  middle  ages,  were  almost 
the  only  people  able  to  read  and  write.  Among 
the  earliest  were  those  founded  by  Charle- 
magne, assisted  by  Alcuin,  who  revived  learn- 
ing in  many  countries. 

Nearly  all  writings  were  in  Latin  ;  for  what 

are  now  the  modern  languages  were  not  then 

114 


THE   HOUSE    OF   BURGUNDY 

fully  formed.  If  we  had  gone  into  the  places 
where  books  were  made,  we  should  have  seen 
the  brethren  busy  over  parchment,  cutting  it 
into  the  right-sized  sheets  for  documents  or 
for  books.  Then,  with  their  quill-pens  and 
ink-horns,  they  would  copy  one  text  or  writing 
from  another.  When  finished  and  bound  with 
covers  of  pig-skin  or  leather,  the  larger  books 
were  held  to  desks  by  chains  or  rods.  The 
writing-place,  where  books  were  made,  was 
called  a  scriptorium,  and  the  place  in  which 
they  were  collected  and  kept  together  was  the 
library. 

In  the  thirteenth  century,  the  school  system 
broadened  out  from  the  church  and  monastery 
in  so  far  as  to  come  in  many  places  under  the 
control  of  the  town  governments.  When  the 
Brethren  of  the  Common  Life  began  their 
work  in  the  fourteenth  century,  they  spread 
abroad  still  more  widely  the  interest  in  popular 
education. 


CHAPTER   XIII 

THE    CHARTER    OF   THE    GREAT    PRIVILEGE 

THE  new  ruler,  Charles  the  Bold,  who  was  at 
the  head  of  the  Burgundian  domain,  was  a 
very  bold  and  strong  man,  but  not  very  wise. 
In  Roman  days  he  would  have  made  a  first- 
class  gladiator,  in  later  times,  a  fierce  crusader, 
and  among  barbarians,  a  skillful  chief.  He 
could  fight,  but  he  had  little  wisdom,  and  was 
rightly  called  Charles  the  Rash.  Being  only 
a  duke,  he  wished  to  be  a  king,  and  raise  his 
dominion  to  the  rank  of  a  kingdom.  He  went 
to  England  and  married  Margaret,  sister  of 
Edward  IV.  of  England,  in  1468.  Brave, 
obstinate,  and  with  a  very  bad  temper,  he  was 
also  selfish  and  tyrannical,  loving  to  fight  and 
shed  blood.  He  followed  his  father  in  extrav- 
agant living,  and  in  helping  to  destroy  the  lib- 
erties of  the  Netherlands.  To  get  money  for 
his  foolish  ventures,  he  laid  heavy  taxes  upon 
the  people,  but  they  refused  to  bear  any  greater 
burden.  A  bloody  riot  broke  out  in  Hoorn, 


116 


CHARTER   OF   THE   GREAT   PRIVILEGE 

which  was  put  down  with  blood;  but  the  cloth 
trade  of  the  town  was  destroyed. 

Charles  the  Bold  was  the  first  ruler  in  Eu- 
rope to  keep  a  standing  army;  that  is,  men 
who  made  a  business  of  war,  and  were  soldiers 
all  the  year  round.  In  this  army  there  were 
different  corps  of  warriors,  and  among  them 
one  thousand  archers  from  England,  who  were 
the  best  in  Europe.  They  used  English  yew 
for  their  bows,  and  shot  the  cloth-yard  shaft, 
which  few  coats  of  mail  could  resist.  With  this 
army,  Charles  entered  upon  numerous  cam- 
paigns and  fought  many  battles,  usually  taking 
part  in  person.  He  waged  war  against  Louis 
XI.  of  France,  and  then  had  him  seized  at  a 
conference  and  taken  prisoner  to  Liege.  The 
purpose  of  Charles  was  to  conquer  Lorraine, 
Provence,  Dauphiny,  and  Switzerland. 

Charles  the  Bold  was  a  bully  and  a  ruffian 
wearing  a  ducal  crown.  He  hated  and  de- 
spised the  Swiss,  but  when  he  came  to  fight 
them,  he  found  that  these  people,  though  liv- 
ing in  a  rocky  country,  loved  freedom  dearly 
and  could  fight  for  it  well.  In  fighting  them, 
he  lost  two  battles  and  was  slain  at  Nancy, 
January  5,  1477. 

No   sooner   was    the   death   of    the   tyrant 

known  than  the  Dutch  people  determined  to 

117 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

get  back  their  rights  and  charters.  On  the 
other  hand,  Louis  XI.  of  France  tried  to  seize 
Burgundy  and  to  make  Mary,  the  daughter  of 
Charles,  marry  his  son.  This  gave  the  Dutch 
people  their  great  opportunity.  In  order  to 
meet  the  enemy  and  strengthen  the  country, 
the  council  of  nobles  called  a  general  assembly 
of  all  the  estates  of  the  Netherlands  to  con- 
sider the  situation.  This  was  the  first  regular 
assembly  of  the  States-General  of  the  Nether- 
lands. The  result  of  this  famous  congress  was 
the  issue  in  1477  of  the  document  called  the 
Great  Privilege,  which  became  really  the  foun- 
dation of  the  Dutch  Republic. 

This  Magna  Charta  of  the  Netherlands  con- 
firmed the  ancient  customs  and  ordered  that 
there  should  be  no  taxation  without  consent. 
The  Dutch  language  was  always  to  be  used, 
no  foreigners  were  to  be  placed  in  high  office, 
and  no  money  was  to  be  coined  or  its  value 
altered  without  vote  of  the  States-General. 
The  duchess  could  not  marry  without  con- 
sent of  the  State  and  the  great  council,  and  the 
supreme  court  of  Holland  was  reestablished. 
This  was  a  grand  and  glorious  day  for  the 
Netherlands. 

Short  and  sorrowful  was  the  life  of  Mary  of 

Burgundy.     The  crafty  old    king   of    France 

nS 


CHARTER   OF   THE   GREAT   PRIVILEGE 

wished  to  marry  his  son  the  dauphin  to  her, 
and  also  to  get  away  some  of  her  land.  While 
she  herself  was  promising  to  keep  faith  with 
the  Netherlanders,  she  deceived  them  and  told 
the  old  king,  through  two  of  her  envoys,  that 
she  would  not  live  up  to  the  charter.  When  twro 
of  these  came  back  from  France  and  showed 
her  duplicity,  the  Ghenters  condemned  the 
envoys,  Imbercourt  and  Hugonet,  to  death. 

At    this,   Mary  was  in    an  agony  of   grief. 
Dressing  herself  in  mourning,  with  her  girdle 

O  O'  O 

loosened,  her  hair  unbound,  and  her  eyes 
flooded  with  tears,  she  rushed  with  an  old 
priest  into  the  crowd  around  the  scaffold. 
With  screams  of  anguish,  she  begged  that  the 
lives  of  the  two  men  might  be  spared ;  but  in 
vain.  The  Ghent  men  refused,  and  the  heads 
of  the  two  envoys  were  taken  off.  Mary  felt 
that  their  blood  was  on  her  head.  As  the 
French  army  was  in  motion  to  march  against 
the  Dutch,  it  was  felt  that  the  Lady  Mary 
should  be  married  as  soon  as  possible.  So  she 
had  to  choose  quickly  between  her  suitors, 
Maximilian,  the  son  of  the  emperor  of  Ger- 
many, and  the  dauphin  of  France,  who  was 
only  eight  years  old,  while  she  was  twenty. 
Love  had  little,  politics  all,  to  do  with  this 

marriage.     In  August,  1477,  Maximilian  was 

119 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

made  her  husband.  Longfellow,  in  his  poem 
"  The  Belfry  of  Bruges,"  refers  to  the  ceremony, 
done  first  by  proxy.  The  richest  heiress  in  Eu- 
rope was  wedded,  without  much  show,  to  one 
of  the  poorest  of  princes.  Indeed,  the  imperial 
suitor  was  so  short  of  money  that  the  Nether- 
landers  had  to  pay  his  traveling  expenses. 

Unfortunately,  in  Holland  the  squabbles  of 
the  Hooks  and  Cods  dragged  on,  and  the  state 
of  affairs  was  most  wretched.  Families  were 
divided.  Murders,  duels,  and  riots  took  place 
daily.  Often  one  party  drove  the  other  en- 
tirely out  and  away  from  the  city.  This  went 
on  until  Maximilian  traveled  into  Holland, 
and  there  saw  that  the  municipal  party  was 
the  stronger,  and  favored  the  Cods.  In  one 
case,  the  Cods  from  Leyden  got  into  the  city 
of  Dordrecht  by  hiding  themselves  in  two 
vessels  supposed  to  be  loaded  with  rice.  The 
burgomaster  of  Dordrecht,  in  his  haste  to 
arm  himself  and  fight  the  invaders,  put  a 
copper  pot  on  his  head  instead  of  a  helmet. 
There  was  more  fun  than  blood  that  day. 

Mary  of  Burgundy  was  not  as  pretty  as 
Jacqueline ;  for  she  had  the  large,  open  mouth 
of  the  Burgundian  princes.  Her  temper  was 
hot,  and  in  her  habits  she  was  not  only  bold, 

but  very  much  like  a  rough  man.     She  was 

1 20 


CHARTER   OF   THE   GREAT   PRIVILEGE 

very  fond  of  gaming  and  hunting,  and  espe- 
cially of  hawking.  One  day  while  out  in  the 
country,  the  saddle  girth  broke  and  she  fell 
from  her  horse.  Concealing  her  injuries,  she 
became  worse  and  died  in  the  spring  of  1482, 
when  only  twenty-five  years  old.  Her  hus- 
band, the  widower  Maximilian,  was  now  an 
Austrian  archduke,  and  this,  as  we  shall  see, 
meant  to  the  Hollanders  another  change  in 
the  succession  of  their  rulers,  from  Burgundy 
to  Austria. 

The  dynasty  of  Burgundy  (Het  Huis  van 
Bourgondie),  through  two  counts  and  two 
countesses,  ruled  Holland  for  fifty  years,  from 
1429  to  1482  A.  D. 


121 


CHAPTER  XIV 

THE    DUTCH    UNDER    THE    HOUSE    OF   AUSTRIA 

MARY'S  oldest  son,  Philip,  who  succeeded  his 
mother,  was  but  four  years  old.  Again  the 
Netherlands  had  the  misfortune  of  being 
governed  by  a  child.  His  father,  Maximilian 
of  Austria,  was  acknowledged  as  guardian  of 
the  baby  count.  This  Austrian  prince  was 
also  elected  king  of  the  Romans,  or  head  of  the 
Holy  Roman  Empire.  When  again  he  came 
into  the  Netherlands,  with  German  troops,  he 
was  suspected  of  wishing  to  seize  the  whole 
power  for  himself. 

Alarmed  at  this  idea,  the  citizens  of  Bruges 
rushed  together  under  the  banners  of  their 
guilds.  They  seized  Maximilian  and  put  him 
in  prison.  This  was  the  way  the  bold  demo- 
crats used  to  treat  even  an  archduke  who 
aspired  to  be  emperor,  when  he  did  not  behave 
himself.  After  four  months,  Maximilian  was 
released,  on  promising  to  rule  justly  and  keep 
his  word.  But  as  soon  as  he  had  a  German 
army  to  come  to  his  aid,  he  broke  the  peace 

122 


DUTCH  UNDER  HOUSE  OF  AUSTRIA 

and  his  promises.  At  once  civil  war  broke 
out. 

The  Hooks,  who  had  been  driven  out  of 
Holland,  once  more  returned  and  collected  at 
Sluys,  under  the  command  of  Brederode,  with 
forty-eight  ships  and  two  thousand  men.  They 
went  up  the  river  Maas  and  landed  at  Delfs- 
haven.  Their  ships  could  not  go  further  on 
account  of  the  frozen  river,  so  they  marched 
to  Rotterdam,  and,  rushing  over  the  ice  in  the 
castle  moat,  captured  the  city.  Later  on,  they 
had  to  yield  to  Maximilian's  German  army. 
After  a  few  battles,  the  Hooks  were  completely 
defeated,  and  their  career  ended. 

Yet  there  seemed  no  rest  for  the  land.  The 
waste  of  the  long  civil  wars  and  the  heavy  taxes 
levied  to  pay  for  them  caused  riots,  and  there 
broke  out  in  1492  the  famous  "  Bread  and 
Cheese  War,"  so  called  because  it  was  carried 
on  by  the  lower  classes  of  people,  whose  daily 
food  was  bread  and  cheese.  The  seat  of  the 
disturbances  was  mainly  in  North  Holland. 
The  chief  cause  of  the  trouble  was  the  Ruyter 
Geld,  or  knight-money,  which  the  people  re- 
fused to  pay.  Dividing  themselves  into  troops 
and  companies,  under  banners  on  which  were 
painted  loaves  of  bread  and  balls  of  cheese, 

they  marched  about  crying  out  for  bread  or 

123 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

blood.  Some  of  them  even  fastened  rinds  and 
crusts  to  their  clothes. 

When  the  German  troops  entered  the  coun- 
try to  disperse  the  natives,  these  foreigners 
lived  off  the  country  and  made  it  still  poorer. 
Maximilian  came  into  Haarlem  and  had  a  gal- 
lows erected  in  the  market-place  to  hang  the 
ringleaders  of  the  "  Bread  and  Cheese  Play," 
as  it  was  also  called.  After  this  the  Frisians 
and  North  Hollanders  submitted  and  paid 
heavy  fines.  At  Alkmaar  and  other  cities,  the 
local  privileges  were  abolished,  and  the  citizens 
were  compelled  to  level  the  walls  at  their  own 
expense.  When  the  citizens  of  Amsterdam 
asked  that  they  might  be  allowed  to  build  a 
stone  wall  around  their  town,  Maximilian  sneer- 
ingly  answered  that  if  they  were  not  so  fond 
of  war  and  quarrels,  a  silken  thread  wound 
round  the  town  would  be  sufficient. 

Friesland  came  under  the  control  of  the 
duke  of  Saxony.  The  country  had  been  so 
weakened  by  long  wars  that  it  easily  yielded 
to  this  ruler  at  the  command  of  Maximilian. 
At  first  the  duke  cared  for  his  new  possessions 
and  built  dikes,  which  are  still  to  be  seen ;  but 
after  ruling  his  dominion  for  seventeen  years, 
he  sold  Friesland  to  the  house  of  Austria  for 

350,000  crowns.     Thus  we  see  that  the  last 

124 


s         •-  s-  -•   -« 

.i-r--    •      - -'  J.  ?.    "— 


w 
>< 

<! 

H 


fc. 

o 


o 
u 


o 

Q 


H 
(X 
O 


C/3 

H 
O 


TH£  NEW   YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


ASTCR,  if    '<?* 
TU.BEN  *-x^';-t 

0 


DUTCH  UNDER  HOUSE  OF  AUSTRIA 

stronghold  of  freedom  in  the  Netherlands, 
through  the  folly  of  its  own  men,  was  broken 
down.  All  parts  of  the  country  were  now 
under  the  control  of  Austria. 

When  Maximilian,  the  archduke  of  Austria, 
became  emperor  of  Germany,  his  son  Philip, 
count  of  Holland,  now  seventeen,  took  the 
active  government  of  the  Netherlands.  One  of 
his  first  acts  was  very  beneficial  to  commerce, 
for  in  1496  the  Grand  Treaty  of  commerce 
was  made  between  England  and  Holland. 
This  made  trade  much  easier  and  more  profit- 
able. One  clause  in  the  compact  was  very 
interesting.  Before  this  time  it  had  been  the 
custom  of  the  Dutch,  when  a  ship  was  wrecked 
upon  the  shores,  to  seize  it,  and,  if  there  was 
no  living  being  on  board,  to  keep  all  the  pro- 
perty, vessel  or  cargo,  but  if  a  "  man,  woman, 
child,  dog,  cat,  or  cock  "  was  found  alive,  then 
the  owner  or  heirs  could  claim  the  property. 
Now  it  was  ordered  that,  in  any  event,  the 
property  should  be  held  for  a  year  and  a  day, 
to  allow  the  lawful  owners  to  claim  it. 

America  was  discovered  in  1492,  Columbus 
having  been  helped  by  King  Ferdinand  and 
Queen  Isabella  of  Spain.  Count  Philip's  sis- 
ter Margaret,  in  April,  1496,  married  their  son 

John,  who  was  heir  to  the  Spanish  throne,  but 

125 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

her  husband  died  at  the  end  of  six  months,  and 
she  was  left  a  widow. 

In  October,  1495,  Philip,  count  of  Holland, 
had  married  Joanna,  the  daughter  of  Ferdi- 
nand and  Isabella  of  Spain,  and  in  1500  their 
son  was  born  in  Ghent.  He  afterwards  be- 
came the  great  Charles  the  Fifth,  emperor  of 
Germany  and  king  of  Spain,  who  did  so  much 
for,  as  well  as  against,  the  Netherlands.  It 
seems  very  strange  to  think  that  while  yet  in 
his  cradle,  this  baby  boy  was  engaged  to  be 
married  to  Claude,  daughter  of  Louis  XII.  of 
France.  In  the  game  of  European  royal  poli- 
tics, the  little  princes  and  princesses  were  like 
checkers  on  a  board,  with  which  politicians 
made  their  moves  and  showed  their  craft. 

Philip  made  a  journey  into  Spain  and  also 
into  England,  where  a  new  treaty  was  made, 
which  the  Dutch,  not  liking,  called  "  the  bad 
treaty." 

Philip  was  a  profligate  prince  who  had  but 
few  abilities.  He  was  handsome  in  person, 
and  was  hence  called  Philip  the  Fair.  He  was 
also  given  the  nickname  of  "  Croit  Conseil," 
because  he  usually  listened  to  men  who  flat- 
tered him.  He  foolishly  surrendered  Fries- 
land,  and  acted  with  even  more  foolishness 
toward  Gelderland ;  and  yet  he  was  not  so  bad 

126 


DUTCH  UNDER  HOUSE  OF  AUSTRIA 

as  some  of  his  predecessors.  He  was  very 
tenderly  loved  by  his  wife  Joanna,  who  was 
herself  very  homely  in  body  and  weak  in  mind. 
Through  her  great  jealousy  of  her  husband, 
who  was  not  a  pure  man,  she  was  subject  to 
fits  of  insanity.  Philip  died  in  1506,  when 
only  twenty-nine  years  old,  through  drinking 
too  much  cold  liquor  when  heated,  after  play- 
ing tennis,  a  game  that  was  a  very  popular  one 
in  the  middle  ages.  It  was  through  Philip 
that  the  houses  of  Austria  and  Spain  were 
united,  and  that  the  Netherlanders  came  under 
the  control  of  the  Spaniards. 

Charles  was  only  six  years  old  when  his 
father  died.  So  his  grandfather  Maximilian 
ordered  Margaret,  his  aunt,  the  duchess  of 
Savoy,  to  take  the  government  in  her  hands. 
The  regent  was  warmly  welcomed  at  Dordrecht. 
She  did  her  duty  as  well  as  she  knew  how, 
while  her  nephew  was  being  educated  in  Flan- 
ders. The  future  emperor  had  for  his  tutor 
the  learned  Adrian  of  Utrecht,  who  afterwards 
became  the  Pope  of  Rome  and  favored  reform. 

Charles,  having  been  born  in  the  Nether- 
lands, had  always  a  pleasant  feeling  for  the 
Dutch,  and  did  much  in  the  first  years  of  his 
reign  to  give  the  Netherlands  unity  and  pros- 
perity; but  when  his  grandfather  Ferdinand 

127 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

died,  he  became  king  of  Spain,  removed  his 
court  to  Madrid,  and  henceforth  he  had  the 
views  and  ideas  of  a  Spaniard.  In  1519  he 
was  elected  emperor  of  Germany  against  his 
rival,  Francis  I.  of  France.  These  two  men 
were  the  most  powerful  sovereigns  of  Europe. 
As  both  of  them  wished  to  rule  over  Italy,  war 
was  declared  between  them.  The  English 
became  the  allies  of  the  Spaniards.  Charles 
married  Isabella,  daughter  of  the  king  of  Portu- 
gal, and  war  broke  out  again ;  but  peace  was 
made  by  the  treaty  at  Cambrai  in  1529. 

It  was  under  the  house  of  Austria  that  the 
old  Dutch  world  of  the  middle  ages  passed 
away,  and  the  new  and  modern  age  was  ushered 
in.  Philip  the  Fair,  king  of  Castile,  who  died 
in  1506,  Charles  V.,  emperor  of  Germany  and 
king  of  Spain,  and  his  son  Philip  II.  were  in 
this  dynasty.  During  this  period  the  Spaniards 
held  many  of  the  chief  offices.  Spanish  in- 
fluences, as  seen  in  speech,  manners,  customs, 
literature,  use  of  titles,  and  forms  of  letter- 
writing,  permeated  the  Netherlands,  and  it 
seemed  at  one  time  as  if  Philip  II.  was  attempt- 
ing to  turn  the  Netherlands  into  a  sort  of  Spain 
and  to  make  Spaniards  out  of  Dutchmen. 
Why  he  failed,  and  why  the  Dutch  revolted 

and  won  independence,  must  now  be  shown. 

128 


CHAPTER   XV 

THE    OLD    WORLD    BEFORE    GUNPOWDER   AND 

PRINTING 

THE  year  1530  found  Charles  troubled  with 
persons  and  ideas  that  were  more  terrible  to 
him  than  men  and  arms.  Unfortunately  for 
him  and  for  Spain,  these  new  people  could 
think  hard,  which  was  more  than  most  soldiers 
in  the  middle  ages  ever  did ;  they  could  even 
read  and  write,  which  was  more  than  many  sol- 
diers then  could  possibly  do.  These  terrors  of 
the  emperor  and  Pope  were  the  monk  Martin 
Luther,  the  Bible  put  in  the  language  of  the 
people,  and  the  Anabaptists.  In  a  word,  the 
Reformation  was  beginning  to  make  a  new 
Europe,  and  Charles  and  the  Pope  and  the 
priest  could  not  understand  what  was  coming. 
Indeed  the  old  world,  in  which  kings  had 
full  power,  and  nobles  cared  little  for  the  rights 
of  the  people,  was  passing  away.  It  was  a 
strange  world,  as  it  now  seems  to  us.  We, 
who  live  in  an  age  in  which  conscience  is  free, 

and   when    men    elect   their  own    rulers,  can 

129 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

hardly  understand  that  such  a  world  ever  ex- 
isted. The  king  expected  not  only  to  rule 
the  people,  but  to  regulate  their  religion  also, 
and  whoever  was  lord  of  a  country  could  say 
what  the  creed  should  be.  Many  things  had 
come  down  from  feudalism,  and  government 
was  thought  to  be  for  the  benefit  of  the  gov- 
ernors, instead  of  the  governed.  The  great 
majority  of  the  inhabitants  of  Europe  were 
very  poor,  while  many  of  the  nobles  were  very 
rich. 

The  mass  of  the  people  had  no  family 
names,  but  only  personal  names.  Some  of 
them  received  names  also  from  the  trades 
which  they  followed.  If  they  were  long  or 
short  in  body,  tall  or  dwarfed,  or  had  a  big  or 
a  small  nose,  or  something  noticeable  about 
the  lips  or  ears,  or  hair  or  eyes,  they  would  be 
called  after  this  peculiarity.  Or  if  they  were 
brilliant  or  stupid,  pious  or  profane,  one  of 
these  adjectives  would  be  placed  after  their 
name.  Many  were  known  from  their  birth- 
place, while  others  added  the  word  "  son  "  to 
the  Christian  name  of  their  father  or  ancestors. 
The  noblemen  were  called  after  their  estates, 
as  Egmond,  Brederode,  Hoorn,  etc.  There 
were  many  varieties  of  John  and  William, 

Mary  and  Jane.     Thus  we  have  in  English 

130 


BEFORE   GUNPOWDER   AND    PRINTING 

not  only  William  or  Will ;  but  Wilkins,  Little 
Will ;  Wilson  or  Williamson,  son  of  Will  or 
William.  In  Netherlandish  history,  we  have 
adjectives  like  "  fat,"  "  short,"  or  "  simple."  The 
term  "clerkly"  meant  that  the  man  so  named 
could  write  well.  Thousands  designated  them- 
selves by  their  baptismal  names  with  the  prefix 
"van"  or  "ten."  Thus  Jan  Ten  Eyck  means 
John  who  lived  by  the  oak ;  Jan  Ten  Brink, 
John  who  lived  near  the  brink ;  Van  der  Poel, 
or  Van  Buren,  Van  Antwerp,  Van  Aarsdale, 
etc.,  mean  that  they  were  from  or  lived  in  or 
near  Antwerp,  etc.  In  Friesland,  there  were 
three  very  common  name-endings,  "ma,"  "ga," 
and  "stra,"  meaning  place,  ownership,  or  trade. 
In  Germany,  the  connective  "von"  can  be  used 
only  by  a  nobleman ;  but  the  Dutch  are  more 
democratic,  and  any  one  can  use  the  prefix 
"  van." 

In  'this  old  world  of  the  middle  ages,  the 
Pope  had  political  power.  He  ruled  over 
kings,  lords,  lands,  and  consciences.  The 
Church  was  above  the  State,  so  that  the  Pope 
could  hinder  people  from  being  married  or 
buried.  The  priest  had  great  power  also ;  for 
the  people  were  very  much  afraid  of  him,  ter- 
ribly so,  indeed.  They  feared,  because  they 
were  ignorant.  The  knight,  locked  up  in 


HISTORY    OF   HOLLAND 

steel,  rode  on  an  armored  horse,  so  that  with 
his  sword  and  spear  he  could  charge  into  and 
overthrow  crowds  of  poorly  armed  peasants,  or 
overcome  foot  soldiers,  even  when  \vell  drilled 
and  equipped.  So  also  the  priest  and  monk  had 
fierce  weapons  which  overawed  the  conscience 
of  the  ignorant  people.  As  the  knights  were 
clad  in  armor  of  iron,  so  the  priests  were  cased 
in  armor  of  learning,  which  scared  the  poor 
people  almost  as  much  as  the  bell,  book,  and 
candle  of  the  bishop.  In  addition  to  this,  the 
man  under  the  mitre  could  frighten  even  the 
mailed  knight ;  for  he  could  threaten  him  with 

o 

punishment,  not  only  in  this  world  but  in  the 
world  to  come. 

But  there  were  two  inventions,  both  of  them, 
perhaps,  brought  out  of  Asia,  which  overthrew 
the  old  world  and  brought  in  the  new.  They 
made  both  priest  and  knight  take  off  their 
armor  and  stand  up  in  fair  fight.  The  mix- 
ture of  sulphur,  charcoal,  and  saltpetre  called 
gunpowder  had  long  been  known  in  China 
for  firecrackers,  but  in  Europe  this  compound 
was  first  used  for  cannon,  and  then  for  guns 
and  pistols.  Its  first  use  in  the  Netherlands 
was  in  1350.  At  first  the  bullets  shot  by  the 
clumsy  guns  called  blunderbusses  could  not, 
when  fired  at  long  range,  pierce  armor,  but 


BEFORE   GUNPOWDER   AND    PRINTING 

soon  the  gun  barrels  and  the  powder  were  so 
improved  that  no  metallic  suit  that  a  man 
could  wrear,  even  on  horseback,  was  proof 
against  a  leaden  ball.  This  meant  that  knights 
were  no  better  than  foot  soldiers  in  battle. 

To  wear  heavy  armor  and  wield  a  long  spear 
or  battle  axe,  a  man  must  be  very  strong  and 
brave.  But,  when  a  plain  man,  who  need  not 
be  tall  or  strong,  but  might  be  very  short  and 
weak,  and  not  very  brave,  could  kill  a  knight 
long  before  he  could  get  near  to  use  his  sword 
or  spear,  then  the  fashion  of  war  changed.  A 
common  soldier  with  a  gun  was  not  afraid  of 
a  knight,  no  matter  how  big  or  strong,  or 
handsomely  mounted  or  armed,  he  might  be. 
Hence,  from  this  cause  and  others,  the  knights 
ceased  to  be  of  as  much  importance  as  soldiers, 
and  armor  gradually  became  a  picturesque 
ornament  rather  than  a  necessity,  and  by  and 
by  only  a  curiosity.  To-day  armor  belongs, 
with  old  spinning  wheels,  among  the  antiques, 
as  bricabrac  and  parlor  decorations. 

In  the  world  of  mind,  the  new  inventions 
that  helped  to  kill  the  power  of  the  Pope  and 
the  priest,  and  to  reduce  the  knight  and  baron 
to  harmless  gentlemen,  were  the  printing  press 
and  types.  For  centuries,  the  Chinese  had 
used  printing  by  means  of  carved  boards,  and 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

they  and  the  Koreans  had  also  separate,  or 
movable,  types.  How  printing  with  this  kind 
of  type  began  in  Europe,  nobody  knows,  but 
in  several  countries  printers  began  to  use  type 
at  about  the  same  time.  Among  the  first 
things  printed  were  playing  cards  and  a  famous 
book  called  "  The  Mirror  of  Human  Salva- 
tion," which  gave  in  outline  the  contents  of 
the  Bible  and  the  story  of  the  Christian  Church. 
In  the  Netherlands,  there  were  hundreds  of 
printing  offices,  so  that  books  and  Bibles  be- 
came cheap. 

In  the  old  days  of  writing  and  copying,  ;a 
large  book  was  equal  to  a  fortune.  Even  to 
buy  a  little  one,  that  would  now  cost  from 
a  penny  to  ten  cents,  might  require  the  wages 
of  a  workingman  for  a  whole  year.  When  it 
became  possible  to  buy  a  New  Testament  for 
only  a  few  days'  wages,  it  seemed  to  the  com- 
mon people  like  a  miracle.  As  some  people 
explain  everything  new  or  strange  by  the 
devil's  help,  so  they  thought  that  Satan  was  at 
the  bottom  of  this  new  wonder. 

Thus  the  monopoly  of  the  monks  and  priests 
was  broken.  Soon  printing  in  the  Nether- 
lands got  to  be  a  business  in  which  any  one 
could  work  and  make  money,  for  there  was  no 
tax  or  hindrance.  In  some  of  the  countries, 


BEFORE   GUNPOWDER   AND    PRINTING 

as  in  England,  printing  was  like  coinage;  it 
was  allowed  only  to  a  few  persons  and  was 
under  control  of  the  crown.  In  the  Nether- 
lands, and  especially  in  Holland,  it  was  free, 
so  that  books  soon  became  very  plentiful  and 
quite  cheap.  Before  ever  there  was  a  Bible 
printed  in  England,  there  had  been  many 
editions,  both  of  the  New  Testament  and  of 
the  whole  Bible,  printed  in  Holland,  and  plain 
people  were  reading  it  in  their  homes. 

The  Bible  is  a  very  dangerous  book  to  get 
into  the  hands  of  people  who  are  ruled  by 
wicked  kings,  or  rulers,  or  servants  of  any 
sort,  whether  bad  priests  or  bad  parsons.  For, 
often  not  knowing  any  better,  the  people  have 
no  true  idea  of  freedom.  They  imagine  that 
the  king  and  the  priests  have  some  rights  from 
God  Almighty  which  the  people  do  not  have. 
They  are  taught  that  their  rulers  in  Church 
and  State  can  do  no  wrong. 

But  as  soon  as  they  begin  to  read  the  Bible, 
which  cares  nothing  for  wicked  people,  even 
though  they  are  kings  and  priests,  but  which 
shows  how  God  punishes  the  wicked  of  every 
class,  they  begin  to  want  better  government 
and  to  believe  that  they  can  get  it.  They  find 
by  reading  Old  Testament  history  that  the 
kings  of  Israel  were  often  foolish  and  wicked, 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

and  they  learn  that  kings  may  be  no  better 
than  other  men.  The  Bible  shows  that  the 
first  government  of  Israel  was  that  of  a  repub- 
lic, and  that  the  first  Christian  churches  were 
democratic  in  form.  All  this  is  very  hurtful 
to  the  claims  of  nobles  and  tyrants,  whether  in 
Church  or  State. 

It  is  no  wonder  that  at  first  the  ruling  classes 
tried  to  stop  the  translation  of  the  Bible  into 
the  language  of  the  people,  so  that  they  could 
read  it  for  themselves.  Through  King  Henry 
VIII.  of  England,  Tyndale,  who  put  the  Bible 
into  our  English  tongue,  was  garroted  as  a 
felon,  at  Vilvoorde,  by  the  Spanish  authori- 
ties in  the  Netherlands.  In  other  places  the 
scholars  who  translated  the  Bible  into  Spanish, 
French,  Italian,  or  Dutch  were  thrown  into 
prison  or  put  to  death.  Nevertheless,  after 
Erasmus  the  Dutchman  had  gathered  the  old 
Greek  manuscripts  together  and,  in  1516,  made 
a  fresh  text,  translating  the  New  Testament 
into  elegant  Latin,  it  became  very  easy  for 
learned  men  everywhere  to  turn  this  into  the 
various  languages  of  Europe. 

When  the  common  people  read  that  in 
Christ,  God's  children  are  kings  and  priests 
unto  God,  they  believed  just  what  they  read. 

They  did  not  know  enough  to  explain  it  away, 

136 


BEFORE   GUNPOWDER   AND    PRINTING 

as  did  the  gentlemen  who  wore  crowns  and 
dressed  in  silk  and  velvet,  and  drank  wine  and 
dined  on  rich  food,  when  millions  were  sweat- 
ing at  toil,  and  often  starving.  The  Bible  is  a 
wonderful  library  of  history.  When  men  read 
in  its  books  how  wicked  the  kings  of  Israel 
were,  some  of  them  made  up  their  minds  that 
government  by  the  people  could  not  be  worse 
than  government  by  kings.  So  they  formed 
churches.  They  also  tried  to  form  societies 
where  war  and  oaths  and  state  religion  would 
no  longer  exist.  In  a  word,  they  tried  to  have 
many  things  which  the  Constitution  of  the 
United  States  of  America  secures.  They 
hoped  to  be  very  much  what  American  Chris- 
tians have  a  right  to  be  at  the  present  time. 

Most  of  these  people  were  very  quiet,  orderly, 
devout,  and  industrious.  Their  ideas  spread 
into  other  countries,  especially  into  Germany 
and  the  Netherlands.  These  people  called 
themselves  "  Brethren,"  but  their  enemies  called 
them  "  Anabaptists." 

In  that  great  movement  of  the  human  mind 
which  is  called  the  Reformation,  Luther  in 
Germany,  Zwingli  in  Switzerland,  and  Calvin 
in  France  were  leaders ;  but  among  the  very 
first  was  Erasmus,  born  in  Rotterdam,  and  a 
true  Dutchman.  To-day  his  statue  stands  in 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

his  native  city,  and  little  children,  according  to 
their  nurses'  funny  story,  watch  it  at  the  strik- 
ing of  the  clock  to  see  if  the  man  in  bronze 
turns  a  leaf  of  his  bronze  book,  while  the  birds 
twitter  around  and  alight  on  his  shoulders. 

Yet,  being  a  literary  man,  Erasmus  suffered 
the  fate  of  such  cultured  men.  The  fierce 
bigots  who  were  to  be  found  in  every  party, 
hated  him ;  for  he  was  too  liberal  for  any  of 
them.  Erasmus  did  a  very  wonderful  work  in 
opening  the  Bible  to  all.  It  was  like  sum- 
moning the  dead  to  life ;  for  Greek  to  most 
scholars  then,  and  Latin  to  the  majority  of 
European  people,  was  little  more  than  a  coffin. 

To  this  day  the  Dutch  scholarly  mind  has 
been  very  much  like  that  of  Erasmus;  that 
is,  loving  learning  and  always  open  to  light, 
whether  old  or  new,  cool  in  temper  and  judg- 
ment, and  not  often  running  to  extremes  of 
opinion. 

Silently,  quietly,  but  faster  than  priest  or  in- 
quisitor could  note,  the  "  Brethren,"  with  their 
open  Bibles,  poured  into  the  Netherlands,  and 
the  first  martyrs  in  Holland,  as  in  England, 
burnt  to  death  for  their  faith,  were  Anabaptists. 
Then  followed  the  Lutherans,  and  finally  the 
Calvinists.  Thus,  on  three  great  waves  of 
thought  and  feeling,  the  old  world  of  religion 

'38 


BEFORE   GUNPOWDER   AND    PRINTING 

passed  away  and  the  new  one  came  in. 
While  Germany  became  Lutheran,  the  Nether- 
landers  for  the  most  part  were  of  the  Reformed, 
or  Calvinistic,  form  of  faith. 

It  must  never  be  forgotten  that  for  a  long 
time,  even  after  the  Reformation  had  begun, 
all  the  great  churches  of  Europe  were  politi- 
cal ;  that  is,  they  were  united  with  the  State. 
The  "  Brethren '  first,  and  then  the  "  Sepa- 
ratists," or  Pilgrim  Fathers,  who  found  refuge 
in  Holland,  taught  that  Church  and  State 
should  be  separated.  Ultimately,  Amsterdam, 
which  sheltered  Jews  and  Christians  of  every 
creed,  became  the  richest,  as  it  was  the  most 
orderly  city  in  northern  Europe. 


'39 


CHAPTER  XVI 

THE  SEVENTEEN  STATES  UNDER  ONE  HEAD 

WHILE  king  of  Spain  and  emperor  of  Ger- 
many, Charles  was  also  duke,  count,  or  marquis 
of  every  one  of  the  seventeen  Netherland 
provinces,  in  each  of  which  he  appointed  a 
stadholder ;  that  is,  a  lieutenant,  or  lieutenant- 
governor,  who  held  power  for  the  king,  and 
governed  in  his  name.  We  shall  meet  with 
this  term  and  title  in  Dutch  history  for  cen- 
turies to  come.  It  is  often  wrongly  spelled 
stadtholder,  as.  if  this  word  meant  the  ruler  of 
a  city.  The  word  means  simply  lieutenant, 
stead,  or  place-holder  —  one  who  rules  in  the 
stead  of  the  king. 

By  Charles  V.  becoming  ruler  of  the  Nether- 
lands, the  whole  seventeen  provinces  were,  in 
1543,  united  under  one  ruler.  On  the  lion  flag 
of  the  Dutch,  and  the  coat-of-arms  of  William 
of  Orange,  one  still  sees  seventeen  dots  or  ob- 
long marks.  These  represent  turf  bricks,  and 
thus  the  soil  of  the  country.  By  giving  the 
Netherlands  a  separate  government  of  their 

140 


SEVENTEEN  STATES  UNDER  ONE  HEAD 

own,  and  thereby  the  possibility  of  being  more 
independent,  Charles  enabled  them  to  enter 
upon  a  career  of  greater  prosperity. 

Charles  V.,  emperor  of  Germany,  was  one 
of  the  ablest,  as  he  was  the  most  powerful 
of  the  monarchs  of  the  sixteenth  century ;  but 
he  found  that  the  new  ideas  and  inventions 
were  making  a  new  kind  of  people  to  be  ruled 
over.  He  had  various  wars  to  conduct  in 
France  and  Italy.  After  these,  he  fought 
against  the  Reformed  Protestant  princes ;  but 
he  was  beaten,  and  had  to  make  the  treaty  of 
Passau  in  1552,  by  which  religious  liberty  was 
secured  to  the  German  Protestants. 

Charles  issued  edicts  against  the  Christians 
of  the  Netherlands  who  read  the  Bible  for  them- 
selves, and  he  introduced  the  Spanish  Inquisi- 
tion ;  so  that  many  people  were  put  to  death 
because  they  believed  differently  from  what 
they  had  been  taught  by  the  priests  and  monks. 
He  prohibited  the  printing  of  books  and  the 
opening  of  schools,  except  under  approval  of 
the  bishops ;  and  thus  good  people  were  put 
to  death  for  doing  what  Americans  do  every 
day  of  their  lives.  He  drove  out  of  Holland 
the  Jews  who  had  fled  from  Portugal,  and  ap- 
pointed a  Grand  Inquisitor,  whose  business  it 
was  to  search  out  heretics  and  confiscate  their 

141 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

property.  In  1555,  having  tired  of  his  wars, 
and  perhaps  foreseeing  that  Luther  and  Calvin 
would  be  too  much  for  him,  he  resolved  to  give 
up  his  throne  in  favor  of  his  son  Philip. 

The  Netherlanders  were  very  sorry  to  lose 
Charles  as  their  active  ruler.  During  thirty- 
seven  years  their  governesses,  Margaret  of 
Savoy,  the  aunt  of  Charles,  from  1507  to  1530, 
and  Mary  of  Hungary,  his  sister,  from  1531  to 
1 555,  had  been  very  fair  in  their  rule  over  them, 
and  they  were  well  accustomed  to  it.  Philip, 
on  the  other  hand,  was  the  very  reverse  of  his 
aunt  and  sister,  in  both  manner  and  method. 
He  was  a  harsh  ruler,  a  terrible  bigot,  and  was 
utterly  ignorant  of  the  language  of  the  coun- 
try which  he  was  to  govern.  So  in  fear  the 
Netherlanders  waited  to  see  what  kind  of  a 
man  their  new  master  would  prove  himself 
to  be. 

It  was  on  the  25th  of  October,  1555,  that 
the  great  ceremony  of  abdication  was  held  in 
Brussels.  The  imperial  officers,  the  Knights 
of  the  Golden  Fleece,  the  deputies  of  all  the 
states  of  the  Netherlands,  and  the  nobles  in 
their  splendid  dresses  were  present  in  impos- 
ing numbers.  Charles  the  emperor  leaned, 
while  reading  his  address,  upon  the  shoulder  of 

William  of  Orange,  a  handsome  young  noble- 

142 


SEVENTEEN  STATES  UNDER  ONE  HEAD 

man.  After  this,  Philip  bent  upon  one  knee  and 
asked  his  father's  blessing.  Then  the  bishop 
of  Arras  spoke  in  French  in  behalf  of  Philip,  and 
the  governess  Mary  took  leave  of  the  emperor 
in  a  modest  and  pleasant  address. 

Philip,  son  of  Charles,  was  now  count  of 
Holland  and  king  of  Spain.  He  went  to  Eng- 
land and  married  the  princess,  generally  known 
as  "  Bloody  Mary,"  and  prevailed  upon  her  and 
the  government  of  England  to  declare  war 
against  France.  He  assembled  in  the  Nether- 

o 

lands  an  army  of  nearly  fifty  thousand  men, 
twelve  thousand  of  whom  were  cavalry.  The 
French  army  was  in  Italy,  so  Philip,  in  1558, 
quickly  laid  siege  to  the  town  of  St.  Quentin. 
Here  he  was  reenforced  by  three  thousand  Eng- 
lish soldiers.  The  French  constable,  Mont- 
morency,  marched  with  his  army  to  help  the 
garrison,  and  a  battle  ensued  outside  the  city. 
Count  Egmont,  who  was  in  command  of  the 
splendid  Dutch  cavalry,  attacked  the  enemy 
in  flank,  and  the  French  were  defeated.  Many 
noblemen  of  France  were  killed,  and  all  the 
artillery  and  baggage  and  thousands  of  pris- 
oners were  taken.  Egmont  became  the  hero 
of  the  hour  and  the  idol  of  the  army.  An- 
other battle  was  fought  at  Gravelines.  There, 

o 

Egmont  again,  by  his  boldness  of  attack,  won 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

great  glory.  The  ten  English  vessels  that  had 
arrived  in  good  season  also  helped  to  decide 
the  victory. 

To  the  surprise  of  the  Netherlanders,  the 
war  came  suddenly  to  an  end  by  the  treaty  of 
Cambrai.  The  Dutch  were  not  happy  at  this, 
and  thought  things  were  going  too  fast.  They 
believed  that  Granvelle,  bishop  of  Arras,  had 
persuaded  the  Spanish  and  French  kings  to 
bury  political  quarrels,  in  order  to  unite  their 
forces  and  begin  a  religious  war  to  put  down 
the  Huguenots  in  France  and  the  Calvinists  in 
the  Netherlands. 

Their  suspicions  were  soon  confirmed ;  for 
the  French  king  let  out  the  secret.  William 
of  Orange  had  been  sent  by  Philip,  as  one  of 
his  hostages,  to  remain  with  the  king  of  France. 
One  day  while  out  hunting,  the  king,  suppos- 
ing that,  as  a  matter  of  course,  William  knew 
all  about  the  reason  why  peace  had  been  so 
quickly  made,  told  him  that  it  was  the  royal 
purpose  to  put  all  the  heretics  to  death.  In- 
stead of  showing  great  surprise,  talking  about 
it,  or  asking  further  questions,  the  young  noble- 
man kept  perfectly  quiet.  On  account  of  this 
episode,  although  he  was  a  very  genial  and 
social  man,  and  was  able  to  talk  in  several 

languages,  he  was  called  by  some  William  the 

144 


SEVENTEEN  STATES  UNDER  ONE  HEAD 

Silent,  though  the  name  has  been  used  chiefly 
since  his  death. 

When  the  startled  Dutchmen  learned  that 
King  Philip  had  asked  the  Pope  to  have  four- 
teen new  bishoprics  erected  in  the  Netherlands, 
their  worst  fears  were  realized.  This  meant 
that  fourteen  new  rulers,  with  great  political 
power,  who  could  put  men  in  prison,  and  even 
torture  and  kill  them,  because  they  might  hold 
different  opinions  from  Philip  and  the  Pope, 
would  be  appointed.  Furthermore,  the  large 
salaries  of  the  bishops,  and  those  of  their 
hangers-on,  would  have  to  be  paid  out  of  the 
pockets  of  the  people,  as  well  as  from  the  funds 
of  the  abbeys.  Neither  the  parish  priests  nor 
the  nobles  liked  the  new  movement,  while  the 
people  felt  certain  that  the  whole  thing  was 
meant  to  increase  the  power  of  the  Inquisition, 
which  had  already  caused  the  death  of  many 
innocent  people.  The  Dutch  were  further 
angered  because  Philip  had  Spanish  nobles 
about  him,  who  looked  with  contempt  upon 
natives  of  the  Netherlands.  When  they  heard 
that  to  the  Spanish  soldiers  already  in  th'e 
country  were  to  be  added  four  thousand  more, 
the  Netherlander  were  in  real  alarm. 

As  King  Philip  \vould  soon  sail  for  Spain, 
the  people  were  very  anxious  to  know  who 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

would  be  the  king's  regent,  to  rule  them  in  his 
absence.  Among  the  nobles  two  young  men 
were  prominent:  one  was  Count  Egmont,  very 
handsome  and  popular,  and  the  soldier's  ideal ; 
the  other  was  William  of  Orange,  wiser  and 
with  far  greater  abilities  as  a  civil  ruler.  Eg- 
mont was  very  ambitious,  universally  admired 
and  beloved,  full  of  eagerness  and  enthusiasm, 
but  easily  discouraged  by  difficulties  and  ob- 
stacles. He  was  very  hasty  in  temper  and  was 
easily  made  angry,  though  usually  of  a  joyous 
and  sociable  disposition.  He  was  a  genuine 
Dutchman;  for  his  ancestors  had  lived  in  North 
Holland  even  before  that  country  had  received 
its  name.  He  was  twelve  years  older  than  the 
prince  of  Orange,  and  more  skilled  as  a  soldier, 
but  not  equal  to  him  in  education,  natural 
talent,  or  shrewdness.  His  temperament  was 
more  like  the  southern  than  the  northern 
Netherlanders. 


146 


CHAPTER   XVII 

ORANGE    AND   THE    BEGGARS 

WILLIAM  OF  ORANGE  was  at  this  time,  in  1559, 
twenty-six  years  old.  He  had  begun,  at  the 
age  of  fifteen,  to  serve  in  court  as  the  page  of 
Charles  V.  He  was  so  trusted  by  the  emperor, 
who  had  a  high  opinion  of  the  youth,  that  he 
was  allowed  to  have  part  in  all  the  secret  affairs 
of  state,  Charles  himself  often  taking  hints  and 
suggestions  from  the  young  man,  besides  giv- 
ing him  most  important  offices  and  sending 
him  on  diplomatic  missions. 

William  was  a  student  of  men,  though  he 
knew  books  well,  also.  Very  few  people  read 
his  thoughts.  He  was  never  thrown  off  his 
guard,  nor  did  he  permit  to  leak  out  what  he 
wished  to  keep  to  himself.  Without  flatter- 
ing any  one,  he  was  polite  to  all.  He  made 
warm  friends  and  kept  them.  Being  a  wealthy 
prince,  he  was  very  hospitable,  and  by  being 
so  he  gained  many  helpers  and  won  the  good 
will  of  the  people.  Instead  of  being  rosy  and 


'47 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

plump  like  Egmont,  William  was  pale  and  thin, 
showing  the  student  and  the  thinker. 

He  had  one  of  the  best  of  mothers,  Juliana 
of  Stolberg,  whose  chief  ambition  was  to  have 
her  sons  brave,  pure,  devout,  godly,  and  kind 
to  their  fellow  men.  Juliana  was  noted  for  her 
simple  and  unaffected  piety.  She  was  one  of 
the  great  women  of  the  sixteenth  century. 
She  had  many  children  and  scores  of  grand- 
children. On  his  father's  side,  William  was  de- 
scended from  the  ancient  and  powerful  family 
of  Nassau,  one  of  whom  had  been  emperor. 
At  this  time,  and  indeed  since  his  cousin 
Rene  had  died  in  1544,  William  was  prince 
of  Orange  in  his  own  ri^ht. 

o  o 

Besides  these  two  eminent  men,  there  was 
Christian,  the  niece  of  Charles  V.,  whose  daugh- 
ter William  of  Orange  expected  to  marry.  But 
Philip,  instead  of  choosing  either  of  the  three, 
Egmont,  William,  or  Christian,  summoned  his 
half-sister  Margaret,  the  duchess  of  Parma, 
from  Italy,  to  be  his  regent  in  the  Nether- 
lands. He  conducted  her  with  great  magnifi- 
cence to  Ghent,  where  the  States-General  was 
assembled.  In  making  his  farewell  speech, 
Philip  disgusted  and  alarmed  his  hearers  by 
urging  that  the  heretics  should  be  persecuted, 

saying  also  that  the  Spanish  troops  were  to  be 

148 


ORANGE   AND   THE   BEGGARS 

kept  in  the  country.  When  the  Netherlander 
petitioned  the  king  to  take  away  the  foreign 
soldiery  and  keep  foreigners  out  of  office, 
Philip  was  very  angry,  yet  he  pretended  not 
to  be  displeased.  Nevertheless,  in  his  heart 
he  boiled  with  wrath  against  Orange,  Egmont, 
and  Hoorn,  whom  he  had  appointed  to  com- 
mand the  troops.  A  few  weeks  later,  in  1559, 
after  having  visited  Rotterdam  and  The  Hague, 
he  was  about  to  take  ship  at  Flushing  to  go  to 
Spain.  When  William  of  Orange  came  to  bid 
him  good-by,  Philip  reproached  him  angrily 
for  acting  contrary  to  the  royal  wishes.  When 
William  humbly  replied  that  it  was  the  act 
of  the  states,  Philip  shook  William's  wrist  vio- 
lently and  said,  "  Not  the  states,  but  you,  you, 
you !  " 

Nominally  the  new  ruler  was  the  strong  and 
ambitious  regent  Margaret,  an  expert  horse- 
woman and  a  hunter,  tall,  and  with  much  black 
hair  upon  her  lips  and  chin,  which  made  her 
look  like  a  man.  The  real  ruler  of  the  coun- 
try, however,  was  Granvelle,  the  bishop  of 
Arras,  who  had  control  of  her  conscience.  He 
was  a  Jesuit,  and  a  pupil  of  Loyola  of  Spain. 
For  the  government  of  the  Netherlands  there 
was,  besides  the  regent  Margaret,  a  privy 

council,  a  council  of  finance,  and  a  council  of 

149 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

state,  and  in  each  province,  except  Brabant,  in 
which  the  governess  herself  lived,  the  king 
had  a  stadholder,  or  lieutenant.  The  prince 
of  Orange  was  made  stadholder  of  the  three 
provinces  of  Holland,  Zeeland,  and  Utrecht. 
Egmont  was  placed  over  Flanders. 

Granvelle  was  a  man  of  mighty  power,  both 
in  mind  and  body.  He  spoke  seven  lan- 
guages, could  toil  through  twenty  hours  of  the 
day,  and  keep  several  secretaries  busy,  all 
working  at  the  same  time.  His  first  act  was 
to  publish  the  Pope's  bull,  making  fourteen 
new  bishoprics,  or  eighteen  in  all,  while  he 
himself,  to  the  great  disgust  and  dread  of  the 
people,  was  made  a  cardinal.  However,  at  the 
earnest  plea  of  Margaret,  the  Spanish  soldiers 
were  recalled ;  for  the  Dutch  would  not  sup- 
port them.  Even  the  new  bishops  were  re- 
ceived with  opposition  and  tumult.  In  some 
towns  the  people  vowed  to  put  them  to  death, 
if  they  came  within  their  gates. 

The  unpopularity  of  Granvelle  increased 
day  by  day.  William  of  Orange  was  very 
bitter  against  him  for  preventing  the  mar- 
riage which  he  had  in  view.  Counts  Hoorn 
and  Egmont  had  private  causes  of  enmity 
against  the  cardinal.  These  noblemen  kept 
away  from  the  council  of  state  and  petitioned 

150 


ORANGE   AND   THE   BEGGARS 

the  king  that  he  might  be  removed  from  office. 
In  return,  Granvelle  heartily  hated  Orange 
and  Egmont,  and  sent  daily  reports  to  Philip 
of  what  he  saw  was  going  on  and  what  his 
spies  reported. 

The  nobles  who  disliked  the  cardinal  called 
him,  in  their  conversation,  "  the  red  fellow." 
This  was  in  allusion  to  the  scarlet  color  of  his 
hat  and  clothes.  They  named  the  house  in 
which  he  wrote  his  letters  to  the  king,  "  the 
smithy."  They  dressed  their  servants  in  dark 
colored  garments  in  order  to  show  how  nu- 
merous they  were,  and  on  their  sleeves  they 
had  sewed  a  fool's  cap  as  an  irreverent  allu- 
sion to  the  cardinal's  hat.  When  Margaret 
remonstrated  against  this  foolishness,  they  took 
off  the  symbol  of  the  hat  and  put  in  its  place 
a  bundle  of  arrows,  meaning  that  they  were 
united  in  the  service  of  the  king. 

Meanwhile  the  printing  presses  sent  forth 
lampoons  and  caricatures  against  the  cardinal. 
One  of  these  pictures  represented  him  sitting 
on  a  nest  of  eggs  which  hatched  out  bishops, 
and  over  his  head  was  Satan  saying,  "  This  is 
my  beloved  son."  At  last,  in  1564,  the  man 
in  red,  fearing  that  he  might  be  killed,  left  the 
country  for  Burgundy.  Like  foolish  school- 
boys, the  two  nobles,  Brederode  and  Hoog- 


HISTORY    OF   HOLLAND 

straiten,  mounted  one  horse,  the  former  taking 
the  saddle  and  the  latter  the  crupper.  Both 
galloped  in  hilarious  mockery  after  the  cardinal 
for  many  miles  of  his  journey. 

Then  there  was  a  chancre.     The  nobles  be- 

o 

gan  to  attend  the  councils,  the  edicts  of  torture 
became  dead  letters,  and  the  people  enjoyed 
for  a  little  while  liberty  of  conscience.  Still 
there  was  much  bribery  and  corruption  in  pub- 
lic office.  Many  of  the  charges  fell  upon  the 
patriot  party  led  by  Orange. 

It  was  finally  decided  that  a  messenger 
should  be  sent  to  King  Philip  in  Spain,  to  set 
before  him  the  many  troubles  of  the  country. 
Count  Egmont,  handsome,  frank,  credulous, 
and  confiding,  was  sent  to  Spain,  where  he  was 
received  with  many  honors.  It  was  like  a  fly 
entering  the  spider's  parlor.  All  that  Egmont 
asked  of  the  king  was  granted  in  fair  words, 
and  the  vain  man  went  away  loaded  with 
promises. 

On  coming  back  to  the  Netherlands,  he 
told  his  friends  and  the  people  that  the  king 
would  change  the  edicts  and  abolish  the  In- 
quisition. It  was  supposed  by  all,  except  the 
wise  few,  that  everything  was  to  be  better ;  but 
when  Philip's  orders  came,  they  were  different 
from  anything  that  had  been  expected.  The 


ORANGE   AND    THE    BEGGARS 

edicts  were  republished,  the  Inquisition  was  to 
be  reestablished,  and  whoever  believed  dif- 
ferently from  the  Pope's  followers  was  to  be 
put  to  death ;  but  this  was  to  be  in  secret,  and 
not  publicly. 

No  sooner  were  these  edicts  republished 
than  the  people  and  the  nobles  became  vio- 
lently angry.  The  walls  of  the  towns  were 
covered  with  placards  denouncing  the  Inquisi- 
tion and  the  Spanish  tyranny.  Catholics  and 
Protestants  were  alike  in  this  opposition. 

In  1565  the  nobles  formed  an  alliance,  or 
"  compromise,"  devoting  their  lives  and  pro- 
perty to  resist  the  Inquisition  and  to  support 
each  other.  They  assembled  together  in  Brus- 
sels, on  the  5th  of  April,  1566,  to  the  number 
of  three  or  four  hundred.  They  walked  slowly 
in  procession  four  abreast  to  the  hall  of  the 
regent,  led  by  Brederode  and  Count  Louis  of 
Nassau,  brother  of  William.  Margaret  received 
them  graciously.  Then  Brederode  delivered  an 
address,  denying  the  reports  of  their  enemies, 
asserting  their  loyalty  to  the  king,  and  asking 
that  a  messenger  be  sent  to  his  majesty  to  tell 
him  that  the  provinces  were  being  ruined  by 
the  Inquisition. 

In  order  not  to  stir  up  a  crowd  or  create  a 
riot,  the  noblemen  had  put  off  their  splendid 

'53 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

dresses  of  silk  and  velvet,  and  their  gold  and 
silver  ornaments,  and  without  horses  or  arms 
had  come  to  court  on  foot.  But  Berlaymont, 
one  of  the  officers  standing  near  the  governess, 
said  to  her,  "  Do  not  fear ;  it  is  only  a  troop  of 
beggars." 

When  the  nobles  heard  this,  instead  of  being 
angry,  or  trying  to  kill  Berlaymont,  they  took 
up  the  name  as  their  own,  and  it  became  their 
rallying  cry.  That  night  Brederode  gave  a 
dinner  at  which  were  present  about  three  hun- 
dred noblemen,  who  caught  up  the  words  and 
declared  that  it  was  no  shame  to  be  beggars 
for  their  country's  good.  "  Long  live  the  Beg- 
gars," was  their  cry.  Slipping  out  of  the  room 
for  a  few  moments,  Brederode  came  back  bring- 
ing with  him  a  wooden  bowl,  such  as  the 
begging  monks  and  pilgrims  usually  carried. 
Filling  it  with  wine,  he  drank  a  health  to  "  The 
Beggars."  Thereupon  the  wooden  cup  went 
round,  all  drinking  and  shouting,  "  Vive  les 
gueux,"  or  "  Long  live  the  Beggars." 

From  this  time  forth,  not  only  the  foes  but 
the  friends  of  Dutch  liberty  took  up  the  name. 
Soon  there  were  "  noble  "  beggars,  "  wild  "  beg- 
gars out  in  the  country  at  large,  "  water ' 
beggars  on  the  seas,  and  "mud  "  beggars  who 
walked  beyond  the  town  walls  to  hear  "  hedge 


i54 


ORANGE   AND   THE   BEGGARS 

preaching."  Indeed,  all  who  hated  Spanish 
tyranny,  whether  Catholics  or  Protestants, 
took  up  the  cry  and  put  on  the  symbol.  They 
dressed  themselves  in  the  beggar's  costume,  of 
ashen  gray  cloth,  and  hung  the  little  wooden 
bowls  or  cups  on  their  breasts  or  caps.  The 
plain  people  wore  medals  of  lead,  and  the  rich 
folk  and  nobles  the  same  design  in  gold  or 
silver,  on  which  was  engraved  on  one  side  the 
image  of  Philip  the  king,  and  on  the  other  a 
beggar's  wallet  and  two  hands  joined  over  it, 
with  the  motto,  "  Faithful  to  the  king  —  even 
to  bearing  the  beggar's  sack." 


CHAPTER  XVIII 

HEDGE  PREACHING  AND  THE  STORMING  OF 

IMAGES 

THE  answer  of  Margaret  the  regent  was  not 
satisfactory.  The  nobles  did  not  like  it.  They 
asked  that  their  petition  be  printed,  with- 
out change,  and  that  the  inquisitors  should 
stop  their  bloody  business.  Two  envoys,  both 
knights  of  the  Golden  Fleece,  were  sent  to 
Madrid  to  bear  the  nobles'  petition  to  the  king. 

It  was  now  time  for  the  spider  to  eat  up  the 
flies,  and  it  did  so. 

The  two  envoys  were  kept  in  Spain  and 
never  allowed  to  go  back  to  the  Netherlands. 
The  people  called  the  moderation  spoken  of 
in  the  king's  answer,  "  murderation ;"  for  in- 
stead of  being  burned  alive,  the  people  of  the 
Reformed  faith,  or  printers  of  anything  hostile 
to  the  king,  were  to  be  hanged. 

The  reformers,  hungering  for  the  old  truth 
in  the  fresh  forms  in  which  the  preachers  pre- 
sented it,  now  left  the  churches  and  towns  by 

the  tens  of  thousands,  to  go  out  into  the  open 

156 


HEDGE   PREACHING 

fields.  There  they  enjoyed,  for  hours  at  a  time, 
the  singing  of  psalms  in  their  native  tongue, 
and  the  sermons  and  prayers,  that  were  not 
written  down,  but  came  from  the  lips.  Thou- 
sands of  little  hymn  books  and  portions  of 
Scripture  were  printed.  At  first  the  people 
went  without  arms;  but  at  one  place,  where 
there  were  seven  thousand  o-athered  tosrether, 

O  o 

the  "  schout "  rushed  in  among  them  on  horse- 
back, dashing  toward  the  preacher  with  a  mus- 
ket in  one  hand  and  a  sword  in  the  other.  The 
people  stoned  him  and  he  had  to  retreat 

The  next  time  the  crowd  assembled  the  men 
were  armed.  They  made  a  "  laager,"  or  circle, 
with  their  wagons,  putting  guards  at  the  en- 
trance, while  a  few  outside  invited  all  passing 
by  to  buy  the  forbidden  books,  or  to  go  in  and 
hear  the  sermon.  The  pulpit  was  made  of 
planks  on  the  top  of  a  wagon.  The  women 
and  children  sat  near,  and  the  men  stood  in  a 
circle  back  of  them.  Before  and  after  the  ser- 
mon they  sang  psalms.  After  the  benediction 
they  marched  back  in  procession  into  the  towns, 
where  they  scattered.  The  singing  was  one 
of  the  important,  certainly  one  of  the  most 
rousing  parts  of  the  service ;  for  the  hymns 
were  in  Dutch,  or  in  French  for  those  who 
used  that  language.  The  verses  of  Marat,  a 


HISTORY   OF  HOLLAND 

poet  who  wrote  in  French,  were  very  popular. 
Some  of  the  old  tunes  then  used,  such  as  the 
long  metre  doxology,  are  still  sung  in  the 
Dutch  churches,  and  even  in  ours. 

In  the  smaller  towns  and  villages  the  people 
used  to  gather  for  Bible  reading,  worship,  or 
singing,  in  shady  places,  and  these  meetings 
were  spoken  of  as  "  hedge  preaching." 

At  Antwerp,  five  thousand  people  held  their 
services  within  a  quarter  of  a  mile  of  the  city. 
At  this,  Margaret  was  very  angry,  and  wished 
the  burgher-guard  to  prevent  the  meeting,  but 
the  worshipers  were  armed,  and  to  oppose  them 
would  have  been  folly.  Soon  throughout  all 
Holland  public  meetings  were  held  outside 
the  city  walls,  whether  the  magistrates  liked  it 
or  not. 

While  King  Philip  was  getting  ready  his 
army,  to  march  into  the  Netherlands  to  punish 
the  people  with  fire  and  sword,  and  his  agents 
were  buying  arms,  ammunition,  and  warlike 
stores,  there  was  a  sudden  outburst  of  what  is 
called  in  Dutch  history  "  the  image  storm." 
The  churches  at  this  time  were  filled  with 
images,  crosses,  statues,  pictures  of  the  Virgin 
and  of  the  saints,  gold  and  silver  ornaments, 
mass-books,  superb  carvings,  stained  glass,  and 

hundreds  of   other  things   which  were  never 

158 


w 

H 


H 

w 

Q 

HH 

c« 
H 
t> 
O 

O 

2 

(-H 

E 
U 
< 

w 


FHt  NfCW   Y< 

PWLIC  LIBRARY 


ASTOfl, 


HEDGE   PREACHING 

seen  in  the  early  Christian  churches.  These 
were  suddenly  despoiled  and  made  empty  by  a 
mob.  There  were  no  telegraphs  in  those  days, 
but  with  wonderful  rapidity  this  movement  of 
destruction  went  on  throughout  the  Nether- 
lands. Bands  of  fanatics,  very  few  in  number, 
but  terrible  in  their  earnestness  and  industry, 
broke  into  the  sacred  edifices,  and  with  ropes 
and  ladders,  hammers  and  pincers,  went  to 
work.  They  pulled  down  the  pictures,  images, 
and  statues,  overthrew  the  altars,  defaced  the 
monuments  and  carvings,  tore  up  or  burned 
the  mass-books,  and  smashed  the  stained  glass. 
About  four  hundred  church  buildings  were 
thus  despoiled  and  filled  with  rubbish  within  a 
few  days.  This  was  not  the  work  of  robbers 
seeking  booty,  but  of  fanatics,  who  wished  to 
end  forever  a  system  which  they  had  learned 
to  hate,  because  so  closely  associated  with 
tyranny.  In  acting  thus,  they  believed,  as  their 
persecutors  also  did,  that  they  were  doing  God 
service. 

The  effect  of  the  news  upon  the  regent  and 
the  king  was  like  red  pepper  to  the  eyes  and 
sparks  upon  gunpowder.  Hating  the  Reformed 
faith  as  bitterly  as  they  did,  and  despising  the 
Netherlanders  for  their  love  of  freedom,  they 
paid  no  attention  to  the  petition  of  the  Calvin- 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

ists  and  Lutherans,  who  had  nothing  to  do  with 
the  image-breaking,  and  who  expressed  their 
regret  at  what  had  happened. 

For  the  present,  Margaret  permitted  the 
hedge  preaching  to  go  on.  She  even  allowed 
some  churches  to  be  built  in  the  towns ;  but 
the  patriots  were  not  deceived.  They  got  hold 
of  letters  from  the  regent,  in  which  they  learned 
of  the  armies  being  raised  to  punish  them,  and 
that  Margaret  was  deceiving  them  with  fair 
promises.  When  they  met  together  to  talk 
over  the  crisis,  their  opinions  were  different. 
A  minority  wished  to  hire  Germans,  in  case 
of  need,  to  reenforce  their  own  troops,  especially 
when  they  found  out  that  the  king  was  levying 
an  army  to  invade  their  country.  Some  were 
timid  or  would  do  nothing,  while  others  took 
the  king's  side.  Egmont  made  up  his  quarrel 
with  Margaret,  and  was  pacified.  Hoorn  re- 
tired to  his  own  house  at  Weert.  William  of 
Orange  went  into  Holland. 

o 

Margaret  now  thought  she  had  broken  up 
the  league  of  nobles ;  for  about  one  third  of 
them  had  abandoned  the  patriot  cause  and 
ranged  themselves  on  her  side,  while  the  others 
were  scattered.  She  now  threw  off  the  mask, 
enlarged  the  army,  and  began  punishing  all 

who  had  taken  part  in  the  late  disorder.     The 

1 60 


HEDGE    PREACHING 

Reformed  worship  was  forbidden.  When,  in 
March,  1567,  the  people  of  Valenciennes,  a 
place  long  noted  for  its  lace,  refused  to  admit 
her  soldiers  within  their  walls,  she  ordered  the 
town  to  be  besieged.  She  now  demanded  that 
all  members  of  the  council  of  state  should  take 
oath  to  be  faithful  to  the  Roman  Church,  and 
uphold  her  in  her  politics.  Egmont  and  most 
of  the  other  nobles  took  the  oath  ;  but  Orange, 
Brederode,  Hoorn,  and  Hoogstraaten  refused. 

At  this  time  the  people  of  the  Reformed 
faith  were  divided  in  their  councils.  Anabap- 
tists, Calvinists,  and  Lutherans  often  mistrusted 
and  even  hated  each  other  as  bitterly  as  had 
the  various  orders  within  the  old  Church.  All 
this  strengthened  the  hands  of  Margaret  and 
the  followers  of  the  Pope. 

Meanwhile,  William,  prince  of  Orange,  who 
was  a  shrewd  politician,  kept  himself  informed 
of  the  secrets  of  the  Spanish  king ;  for  he  paid 
the  clerk  to  the  king's  secretary  in  Madrid 
three  hundred  crowns  a  year  for  sending  him 
copies  of  documents  taken  at  night  from  his 
royal  master's  pockets.  Orange  knew  that  he 
must  either  conform  to  the  king's  orders  or 
escape  to  some  other  country.  Egmont  became 
a  hot  royalist.  Brederode  retired  to  the  town  of 

Vianen,  and  fortified  it. 

161 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

Some  of  the  other  confederated  nobles  were 
attacked  at  Ostrawaal,  near  Antwerp,  and 
badly  defeated.  A  force  of  three  thousand 
Protestants,  who  were  marching  to  help  their 
fellow  believers  shut  up  in  Valenciennes,  was 
routed  and  scattered.  Then  the  city  surren- 
dered, after  a  siege  of  five  months.  Two  hun- 
dred of  the  people  were  brutally  murdered  in 
cold  blood. 

The  outlook  was  now  very  black  ;  for  instead 
of  Philip's  coming  to  show  mercy,  the  merci- 
less duke  of  Alva  was  rapidly  advancing  from 
the  south  with  an  army  of  Spaniards  and  Ital- 
ians. The  time  had  come  for  Egmont  and 
Orange  to  part,  one  from  the  other,  never  more 
to  look  upon  each  other's  face.  A  popular 
story  declares  that,  in  his  haste,  Orange's  head 
was  uncovered.  At  their  farewell  meeting, 
Egmont  said,  "  Good-by,  Prince  without  a  hat ; ': 
and  Orange  replied,  even  more  mournfully, 
"  Good-by,  Count  without  a  head." 

At  the  Spanish  council  in  Madrid,  three 
nobles  pleaded  for  mercy  and  methods  of  wise 
gentleness ;  but  Granvelle  the  cardinal  and 
the  duke  of  Alva  urged  a  policy  of  fire  and 
blood.  One  side  argued  that  the  Netherland- 
ers  were  quiet,  serious  people,  who  would  yield 

to  kindness  and  reason.     The  others  declared 

162 


HEDGE    PREACHING 

that  Dutchmen  were  only  "men  of  butter," 
able  to  raise  hens  and  chickens,  but  that  they 
would  not  fight. 

How  strange  that  Philip  could  not  know 
that  people  who  had  for  a  thousand  years  been 
battling  against  the  sea  were  too  brave  and 

o        o 

earnest  to  be  trifled  with ;  but  he  was  too  blind 
a  bigot  to  see  anything  very  clearly  beyond 
what  he  had  been  educated  to  believe.  He 
was  a  typical  Spaniard ;  and  his  pride  was  the 
cause  of  his  ruin. 


163 


CHAPTER   XIX 

MARCH    OF   THE    SPANIARDS FLIGHT    OF   THE 

FLEMINGS 

Now  began  the  gathering  and  the  march  of 
the  Spanish  army,  numbering  over  ten  thou- 
sand men,  and  one  of  the  finest  that  had  been 
seen  in  Europe  since  the  days  of  the  Roman 
legions.  This  army,  so  handsomely  equipped, 
did  not  stand  for  freedom,  but  for  oppression. 
It  represented  all  the  elements  of  the  old,  the 
mediaeval  world,  that  was  already  passing  away, 
though  nobles,  soldiers,  and  priests  could  not 
see  it.  Nor  could  these  splendid  warriors 
dream  that  the  sailors,  peasants,  merchants,  and 
men  of  the  new  world  —  the  new  world  of  the 
printing  press,  the  open  Bible,  and  the  free 
school —  were  in  the  end  to  triumph. 

The  Spanish  and  Italian  veterans  believed 
in  the  king  and  the  holy  corporation  called  the 
Church,  and  in  government  for  the  sake  of  the 
governors,  instead  of  the  governed ;  and  they 
believed  that  God  was  on  their  side.  To  sup- 
port Philip's  army,  even  the  clergy  and  inquisi- 

164 


MARCH   OF   THE   SPANIARDS 

tors  contributed  their  money  as  if  it  were  for  a 
crusade.  Spanish  noblemen,  eager  to  kill  here- 
tics, and  also  to  get  rich  off  their  spoil,  came 
with  the  army  as  volunteers.  Over  the  moun- 
tains of  Italy,  and  down  through  Switzerland 
and  France,  this  splendid  body  of  men  marched. 
They  were  mostly  veterans,  the  officers  in  gold 
inlaid  armor,  and  the  soldiers  with  hats  of  steel, 
and  armed  with  the  finest  weapons  of  keenest 
temper.  Large  numbers  among  them  were 
equipped  with  firearms.  When  they  reached 
the  Netherlands  and  joined  the  other  troops, 
the  united  forces  were  twenty  thousand  strong. 
When  the  news  was  confirmed  that  this  army 
of  chastisement  had  really  begun  its  march,  the 
country  seemed  paralyzed.  At  once,  from  the 
Belgian  or  southern  Netherlands  chiefly,  began 
a  great  exodus  of  the  people  to  lands  of  refuge, 
in  order  to  escape  death  and  loss  of  property. 
Hundreds  of  thousands  fled  to  England,  Hol- 
land, Germany,  and  Denmark.  Nobles,  mer- 
chants, mechanics,  peasants,  and  laborers  were 
mixed  together  in  the  great  company  that 
turned  their  backs  upon  the  homeland  and  set 
their  faces  north,  east,  and  west.  On  large  ships 
and  small,  and  on  fishing  boats,  they  fled  across 
the  channel,  making  in  all,  counting  those  of 

earlier  flight,  a  hundred  thousand  people,  who 

165 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

settled  mostly  in  the  southern  and  eastern 
towns  of  England. 

Many  of  these  emigrants  were,  in  reality,  as 
they  called  themselves,  "  beggars."  These  had 
to  be  helped  by  the  magistrates  and  the  char- 
ity of  the  people  of  the  English,  Dutch,  and 
German  towns  and  cities.  Most  of  them, 
however,  were  thrifty,  God-fearing,  and  Bible- 
reading  people,  with  enough  money  to  main- 
tain themselves  and  to  start  industries  new  to 
the  countries  in  which  they  began  life  afresh. 
They  enjoyed  family  worship  and  loved  their 
religion,  considering  conscience  more  than 
life. 

These  Netherlander  so  enriched  England 
with  their  new  trades  and  "  mysteries,"  that 
Queen  Elizabeth  was  only  too  glad  to  wel- 
come them  in  her  realm.  In  a  great  industrial 
procession  at  Norwich,  in  which  these  "  Flem- 
ings "  surprised  the  English  with  their  wonder- 
ful machines,  inventions,  and  occupations,  she 
was  present  in  great  state.  Indeed,  these  re- 
fugees changed  England  from  an  agricultural 

o  o  o  o 

country  that  raised  only  sheep  and  wool,  and 
had  little  or  no  foreign  commerce,  into  one 
that  soon,  with  manufactures  and  commerce, 
led  the  world. 

The   Belgic    Netherlands   lost,   during   the 

1 66 


MARCH    OF   THE   SPANIARDS 

seventeen  years,  from  1567  to  the  capture  of 
Antwerp  by  Parma  in  1585,  a  million  people, 
the  most  industrious  and  capable  in  the  coun- 
try; while  the  Spanish  armies,  often  unpaid 
and  mutinous,  were  like  seventeen-year  locusts, 
eating  up  the  country.  This  was  the  begin- 
ning of  that  "  eighty  years'  war,"  during  which 
350,000  Spaniards  or  their  mercenaries  were 
to  find  graves  in  the  soil  of  the  Netherlands. 

Margaret  had  feared  just  what  came  to  pass. 
The  Spanish  army,  she  thought,  would  only 
stir  up  fresh  troubles  and  depopulate  the  coun- 
try; so  she  begged  her  brother  the  king  to 
stop  the  march  of  the  troops.  Philip's  only 
reply  was  in  ordering  Alva  to  hasten  his  steps. 
When  Egmont  came  out  to  meet  Alva,  the 
latter  said,  "  Here  comes  the  arch-heretic." 
When  the  Dutch  nobles,  hoping  by  their  cour- 
tesy to  soften  the  duke,  congratulated  him,  he 
said,  "  Welcome  or  not,  it  is  all  one.  Here 
I  am." 

Margaret,  now  very  angry,  asked  her  royal 
brother  that  she  might  be  dismissed.  Alva 
soon  showed  her  what  he  had  come  for.  He 
garrisoned  the  towns  and  kept  the  keys  of  the 
gates.  He  had  Counts  Hoorn  and  Egmont 
and  other  nobles  arrested,  thrown  into  prison, 

and  their  household  effects  and  papers  seized ; 

167 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

but  Hoogstraaten  escaped.  When  Granvelle, 
"  the  red  fellow  "  in  Madrid,  heard  that  Alva 
had  seized  the  nobles,  he  asked -whether  they 
had  caught  William  the  Silent.  When  they 
told  him  no,  he  replied,  "  Ah,  then,  if  he  is  not 
in  the  nest,  Alva  has  caught  nothing." 

The  duke  of  Alva  began  to  obtain,  as  far 
as  possible,  the  charters  of  the  cities,  and  to 
break  both  their  seals  and  the  king's  promises. 
The  Pope  had  given  permission  to  the  king 
of  Spain  to  be  rid  of  his  oath,  and  to  lie  in- 
stead of  keeping  his  promises.  Alva  erected 
what  he  called  a  Council  of  Troubles,  but 
which  soon  received  the  name  from  the  peo- 
ple of  the  Council  of  Blood.  It  was  made  up 
of  twelve  members,  with  a  Spaniard  at  the 
head.  In  it  was  a  judge  named  Hessels,  who 
was  often  asleep  during  the  trials,  but  who 
usually  voted  "  To  the  gallows !  To  the  gal- 
lows ! "  It  is  not  wonderful  that,  having  hanged 
so  many  others,  Hessels  himself  was  at  last, 
eleven  years  afterwards,  hanged  to  a  tree  by 
the  people  of  Ghent. 

Margaret  soon  after  resigned  and  left  the 
country,  and  the  duke  of  Alva  became  gov- 
ernor-general. He  had  those  who  had  worn 

o 

the  Beggars'  badges,  or  drunk  their  health,  put 

to  death.     He  had  rich  people  tried  and  their 

1 68 


MARCH    OF   THE   SPANIARDS 

property  seized,  after  which  they  were  dragged 
at  the  tail  of  a  horse  to  the  gallows  and 
hanged,  while  the  poor  were  tortured  and  put 
to  death  at  once.  It  was  common  to  find 
trees  loaded  with  corpses,  and  bodies  burned, 
mangled,  and  headless,  or  fastened  to  stakes. 
Within  a  few  weeks,  hundreds  of  people  were 
put  to  death,  Alva  declaring  that  the  king 
would  rather  see  the  whole  country  a  desert 
than  allow  a  single  heretic  to  live  in  it.  All 
business  was  for  a  time  stopped.  Thousands 
of  the  fugitive  men  enlisted  in  the  army  of  the 
Huguenots  in  France,  while  the  "  Wild  Beg- 
gars '  in  the  woods  of  West  Flanders,  who 
had  to  get  food  or  starve,  became  a  terror  to 
the  country;  but  many  of  these  were  caught 
and  quickly  put  to  death  by  Alva's  soldiers. 

Alva  made  war  even  on  children.  The  son 
of  William  the  Silent,  then  a  student  at  the 
University  of  Louvain,  was  seized  and  sent  to 
Spain.  The  brothers  William  and  Louis  of 
Nassau,  and  the  nobles  Brederode  and  Hoog- 
straaten,  were  summoned  to  the  court.  Alva 
fortified  the  frontier  towns  on  the  German  as 
well  as  on  the  French  side,  and  began  to  com- 
plete a  strong  citadel  at  Antwerp. 

One  hundred  thousand  people  had  in  the 

one  year  of  1568  left  the  Netherlands  to  escape 

169 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

the  Inquisition  and  Alva.  Many  of  these  were 
seafaring  men  from  towns  on  the  coast.  As 
exiles  from  home,  these  ship  captains,  sailors, 
and  fishermen  were  not  content  to  settle  down 
quietly,  but  longed  to  be  on  the  waves  again. 
They  quickly  took  to  the  sea  to  destroy  Span- 
ish commerce  and  revenge  the  death  of  those 
whom  Alva  beheaded.  At  first  freebooters 
and  pirates,  they  became  in  time  the  liberators 
of  their  country.  We  shall  soon  hear  of  these 
"  Water  Beggars,"  or  "  Beggars  of  the  Sea." 

It  was  about  this  time  that  the  flag  of  the 
Netherlands,  the  Dutch  tri-color,  took  its  rise. 
These  brave  patriots  looked  to  the  prince  of 
Orange,  the  stadholder  of  Holland,  as  their 
leader,  and  so  they  chose  as  their  standard  the 
three  principal  colors  on  his  coat  of  arms, 
orange,  white,  and  blue.  At  first  the  common 
sailors  did  not  know  how  to  arrange  them  in 
their  proper  order,  and  those  who  had  charge 
of  the  ship's  flag  would  sometimes  put  the 
blue  or  white  topmost.  Then  the  captain 
would  roar  out,  "  Oranje  boven,"  —  the  orange 
color  first,  on  top,  or  "  Up  with  the  orange." 
Thus  it  came  to  pass  that  orange,  white,  and 
blue  became  the  national  colors  for  a  century 
or  more,  and  the  cry  "  Oranje  boven '  con- 
tinues to  this  day. 

170 


CHAPTER   XX 

THE    BATTLE    OF    HEILIGERLEE 

WILLIAM  OF  ORANGE,  now  feeling  that  there 
was  no  hope  of  reconciliation  with  the  king, 
published,  in  1568,  in  several  languages,  a  de- 
fense of  his  conduct,  and  reviewed  the  events 
of  the  last  few  years.  He  then  began  to  raise 
an  army.  He  declared  that  the  penal  edicts 
had  been  enacted  for  the  purpose  of  rooting 
out  the  pure  word  and  service  of  God. 

On  his  banners  were  his  own  ancestral  coat 
of  arms.  It  was  rich  in  the  colors  orange, 
white,  and  blue,  and  in  lion  emblems.  One  of 
the  four  large  quarterings  bore  seventeen  turf- 
brick  marks,  representing  the  seventeen  pro- 
vinces of  the  Netherlands.  The  smaller  shield 
overlapping  the  quarterings  had  on  it  the  hunt- 
ing-horns of  his  ancestor,  a  grandson  of  Charle- 
magne. On  the  heart,  and  in  the  centre  of  all, 
he  set  the  cross  of  Geneva,  the  city  of  Calvin, 
in  token  of  his  own  faith  founded  on  the  Bible. 
On  another  banner  was  the  emblem  of  the 

mother  pelican  in  the  nest,  feeding  her  young 

171 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

with  blood  from  her  own  breast,  with  the 
motto,  Pro  rege,  pro  lege,  pro  grege  ;  that  is, 
"  For  the  king,  for  the  law,  for  the  common- 
wealth." Still  other  banners  were  embroidered 
with  the  emblem  of  the  beggar's  bowl  and 
sack.  In  those  days  there  was  scarcely  any 
idea  of  government  without  a  king  or  prince 
of  some  sort,  and  so,  although  Philip  was  the 
chief  enemy  of  the  people,  and  William  was 
fighting  against  him,  yet,  since  he  was  a  ruler 
undeposed,  William's  motto  was  Pro  rege ;  that 
is,  "  For  the  king."  He  was  fighting  in  Philip's 
name,  just  as  our  fathers,  before  July  4,  1776, 
fought  the  battle  of  Lexington  and  marched  to 

o  o 

Bunker  Hill  in  the  name  of  King  George  III. 

William  was  slow  and  deliberate ;  of  his 
four  brothers,  Henry  was  the  youngest,  Louis 
was  the  most  impulsive  and  hasty,  Adolph  was 
the  most  eager,  and  John,  the  next  oldest  to 
William,  was  the  most  statesmanlike. 

Hastily  gathering  a  few  hundred  soldiers, 
Louis  invaded  Groningen.  At  a  place  called 
Heiligerlee,  and  meaning  the  Holy  Lea,  or  the 
Holy  Lion,  he  met  the  Spanish,  Italian,  and 
German  troops  which  Alva  had  sent  to  meet 
him.  The  Spaniards  had  a  battery  of  field 
pieces  which  were  named  do,  re,  mi,  fa,  sol, 

etc.,  after  the  notes  in  the  musical  scale. 

172 


THE   BATTLE    OF   HEILIGERLEE 

On  May  23,  1568,  the  patriots  pretending 
to  retreat,  the  Spanish  soldiers  gave  hot  pur- 
suit, and  Louis,  thus  luring  the  enemy  into 
swampy  ground,  won  a  great  victory.  Six 
hundred  of  the  enemy  were  slain  and  their 
baggage  and  cannon  captured,  but  alas!  the 
brave  young  Count  Adolph  was  killed.  Three 
hundred  years  after  this  event,  a  monument 
was  erected  on  the  spot  to  his  memory.  It 
shows  the  angry  lion  of  Holland  and  mother 
Batavia  holding  a  shield  of  defense  over  her 
son. 

When  Alva  heard  the  news  of  this  victory 
of  the  Beggars,  he  was  infuriated.  He  im- 
mediately ordered  eighteen  noblemen,  then  in 
prison,  to  be  brought  forth  into  the  horse  mar- 
ket at  Brussels,  where  their  heads  were  cut  off. 
The  bodies  of  seven  of  them  were  left  on  the 
highway  to  rot.  Egmont  and  Hoorn  were  tried, 
as  it  now  seems  in  mockery,  and  were  con- 
demned to  death.  On  June  5,  1568,  they  were 
conducted  by  two  thousand  soldiers  to  the 
scaffold  in  the  same  horse  market  at  Brussels. 
The  people  could  hardly  believe  that  two  noble- 
men of  ancient  families,  who  had  served  the 
king  so  long  and  well,  could  be  so  cruelly  put 
to  death.  They  gathered  in  such  crowds  that 
Alva  feared  a  rescue.  The  axemen  severed 

'73 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

their  heads.  These  were  then  stuck  on  iron 
poles  and  exposed  during  two  hours. 

After  the  soldiers  had  gone  away,  thousands 
rushed  to  the  scaffold  to  dip  their  handker- 
chiefs in  the  count's  blood,  to  keep  as  memen- 
toes, while  many  a  stalwart  man  there  vowed 
not  to  cut  his  hair,  nails,  or  beard,  till  the 
blood  of  these  martyrs  was  avenged.  Indeed, 
for  years  afterwards,  the  fierce  fighting  Beggars 
were  noted  for  the  long  hair  on  their  faces 
and  heads.  One  man's  beard  grew  down  to  his 
feet  and  had  to  be  carried  on  his  shoulders. 
While  patriots  swore  vengeance,  even  Spanish 
soldiers  shed  tears.  To-day,  in  Brussels,  two 
marble  statues  of  these  unhappy  men,  set 
over  a  fountain,  commemorate  Egmont  and 
Hoorn. 

Having  thus  struck  terror  into  the  hearts  of 
all,  Alva  marched  at  the  head  of  his  own  best 
troops  into  Groningen.  The  soldiers  of  Count 
Louis  were  mostly  Germans  who  served  only 
for  pay.  He  had  no  money  for  their  wages, 
and  when  Alva  appeared,  they  mutinied,  broke 
ranks,  and  fled.  In  the  battle  which  ensued 
at  Jemmingen,  the  Spaniards,  led  by  Alva  in 
person,  slaughtered  thousands  of  them.  From 
the  battle,  or  rather  massacre,  Louis  escaped 
only  by  leaping  into  the  river  Ems  and  swim- 


THE   BATTLE    OF    HEILIGERLEE 

i 

ming  lustily.  He  reached  the  opposite  shore, 
nearly  naked,  and  alone  in  a  foreign  land. 

Yet  without  bating  a  jot  of  heart  or  hope, 
Louis  rallied  his  forces  and  moved  on  to  join 
his  brother  William  in  Germany,  who  had  sold 
his  family  plate  and  jewels  to  raise  funds,  and 
had  now  over  twelve  thousand  men  and  ten 
pieces  of  artillery.  They  marched  southward 
against  the  duke  of  Alva,  at  Maastricht,  where 
were  now  over  twenty-one  thousand  men  in 
waiting.  Orange  crossed  the  river  Maas  Oc- 

O  O 

tober  5,  by  night,  under  the  light  of  the  moon, 
and  camped  on  the  opposite  shore ;  but  Alva 
would  not  fire  a  shot.  He  fought  him,  only 
with  the  weapons  of  time,  patience,  and  retreat 
These,  strange  to  say,  completely  defeated  the 
prince  of  Orange.  Alva  garrisoned  the  towns 
so  that  no  one  could  help  the  patriot  cause 
with  men,  money,  or  food.  He  cut  off  all 
William's  supplies,  knowing  that  he  would 
soon  have  his  money  spent  and  could  not  pay 
his  troops,  who  were  Germans,  and  that  these 
mercenaries  would  mutiny. 

The  shrewd  old  Spanish  veteran,  who  was 
great  in  that  he  could  conquer  himself,  was 
right  in  his  ideas.  William  was  unable  to  get 
further  supplies,  and,  with  an  empty  treasury, 
he  was  obliged  to  disband  his  army  at  Stras- 

'75 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

burg.  Alva,  overjoyed  at  his  bloodless  vic- 
tory, reared  a  bronze  statue  of  himself  in 
Antwerp,  made  of  the  cannon  which  he  had 
captured  from  Louis  at  Jemmingen.  He  then 
distributed  his  troops  throughout  the  cities, 
but  Amsterdam  was  excused  from  quartering 
a  garrison,  by  paying  two  hundred  thousand 
guilders. 

Alva,  at  the  point  of  the  sword,  forced  the 
new  bishops  and  the  decrees  of  the  Council  of 
Trent  upon  the  people.  He  demanded  from 
each  city  its  charter,  but  the  great  council  of 
Leyden  refused  to  obey  the  order.  There- 
upon this  city  was  marked  for  vengeance. 
Meanwhile,  the  hanging,  burning,  and  behead- 
ing went  on. 

The  Pope  was  so  pleased  with  Alva's  work 
that  he  sent  him  a  holy  hat  and  sword.  At 
the  same  time  he  excommunicated  Queen 
Elizabeth,  but  this  only  inclined  her  to  help 
the  Netherlanders.  When,  further,  Elizabeth 
seized  the  money  found  in  some  Spanish  ships 
at  Southampton,  Alva  arrested  the  English 
merchants  in  the  Netherlands,  and  all  trade 
was  stopped  between  the  two  countries  for 
nearly  four  years.  Nevertheless,  Alva  had  no 
cash  on  hand  to  pay  his  troops  and  soon  found 

himself  in  deep  trouble.     He  had  promised, 

176 


THE    BATTLE    OF   HEILIGERLEE 

when  he  left  Spain,  that  he  would  make  a 
stream  of  silver  a  yard  deep  flow  into  the 
king's  coffers.  Knowing  very  little  about  busi- 
ness matters,  he  levied  a  tax  of  ten  per  cent, 
on  all  things  bought  and  sold.  This  roused 
first  the  hatred,  and  then  the  defiance  of  the 
Dutch,  to  an  uncontrollable  degree.  In  Zee- 
land  and  Holland  especially,  the  feeling  was 
intense. 

Paul  Buys,  pensionary  of  Leyden,  went  into 
Germany.  There  he  met  the  prince  of  Orange 
and  told  him  the  state  of  affairs,  how  that  the 
whole  people,  without  regard  to  their  religious 
opinions,  were  bitter  against  Alva  and  the  new 
tax.  At  once  William  saw  his  opportunity. 
He  determined  to  make  use  of  the  brave  sailors, 
so  numerous  in  Zeeland  and  Holland.  He 
gave  commissions  to  the  privateers,  who  were 
at  once  called  the  Water  Beggars.  These  men 
strapped  across  their  breast,  or  fastened  on 
their  hats,  a  silver  crescent  with  the  words, 
"  Better  Turk  than  Papist."  They  also  hoisted 
the  orange,  white,  and  blue  flag  of  freedom, 
and  put  the  arms  of  the  prince  on  their  ban- 
ners. Prince  William  arranged  also  to  receive 
aid  and  gifts  through  his  agents  in  the  dif- 
ferent towns,  hoping  soon  to  lead  another 
army.  Before  he  could  do  anything,  a  great 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

flood  of  water  rolled  over  part  of  the  coun- 
try, in  November,  1570,  breaking  the  dikes 
and  sweeping  away  houses,  trees,  cattle,  and 
human  beings  in  one  ruin.  So  nothing  could 
be  done  that  year.  Meanwhile,  he  gave  com- 
mand of  his  little  navy  to  William  Van  der 
Mark,  of  whom  we  shall  hear  again. 


178 


CHAPTER  XXI 

THE    VICTORIES    OF    THE    WATER    BEGGARS 

WILLIAM  OF  ORANGE  had  hard  work  to  find 
some  place  on  the  earth's  surface  where  his 
little  navy  would  be  welcome.  The  Water 
Beggars  were  desperate  men,  led  by  Van  der 
Mark,  one  of  many  who  had  sworn  not  to  cut 
hair  or  beard  till  Egmont's  death  was  avenged. 
The  Beggars  of  the  Sea  were  not  popular 
anywhere ;  for  they  failed  to  be  particular  whose 
vessels  they  seized.  All  the  Dutch  ports  were 
in  control  of  the  officers  of  Philip  II.,  and  the 
kings  of  Denmark  and  Sweden  would  not 
allow  them  to  enter  their  harbors,  so  the 
havens  of  England  were  the  only  ones  in 
which  they  could  cast  anchor.  When  Alva 
heard  of  their  being  received  by  the  English, 
he  sent  word  to  Elizabeth  not  to  welcome 
pirates  and  rebels  from  the  king  of  Spain's 
dominions.  So  the  English  queen,  who  feared 
a  war  with  Spain,  ordered  the  Beggars  to  quit 
her  dominion.  Then  the  fleet,  flaunting  the 
tri-color  flas:  of  freedom,  was  driven  out  to  sea. 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

Nevertheless,  this  harsh  treatment  gave  them 
their  opportunity,  and  an  unexpected  victory 
on  land. 

These  Sea  Beggars,  under  William  Van  der 
Mark  and  Treslong,  moved  out  into  the  Eng- 
lish Channel  and  the  North  Sea.  They  cap- 
tured two  ships  under  the  Spanish  flag  almost 
as  soon  as  they  started.  They  then  sailed  into 
the  Texel,  and  attacked  the  Spanish  ships  ly- 
ing there,  but  a  great  storm  came  on  and  drove 
them  back.  Unable  to  go  north,  they  boldly 
dashed  into  the  river  Maas  April  i,  1572,  and 
came  to  the  town  of  Briel,  from  which  the 
garrison  had  gone  to  Utrecht  to  collect  "  the 
tenth  penny." 

Briel  was  the  seaport  for  trade  and  passen- 
gers for  England.  The  Beggars  quickly  seized 
the  place  and  hoisted  the  colors  of  Orange 
on  the  lofty  church  tower,  whence  they  could 
be  descried  by  the  people  for  miles  around. 
Maddened  by  previous  Spanish  cruelties,  they 
smashed  the  images  in  the  churches.  After 
hanging  thirteen  of  the  priests,  they  dressed 
themselves  in  their  splendid  robes  and  strutted 
about  in  mockery  of  their  office. 

This  bold  and  brave  exploit  of  the  Water 
Beggars  at  Briel  sent  a  thrill  of  courage 

throughout  the  country.     Their  example  was 

i  So 


VICTORIES   OF   THE   WATER   BEGGARS 

quickly  followed.  The  towns  of  Veer,  Hoorn, 
and  others  defiantly  raised  the  colors  of  the 
prince  of  Orange. 

The  duke  of  Alva  was  in  a  rage  when  he 
heard  the  news.  The  word  "  brill,"  or  "  briel," 
in  Dutch,  means  a  pair  of  spectacles,  and  the 
funny  men  made  a  verse  in  rhyme,  which  peo- 
ple sang  on  the  streets.  It  ran  as  follows :  — 

"  Op  den  eersten  April 
Vierloor  Alva  zyn  brill ;  " 

or,  as  Motley  puts  it  in  English :  — 

"  On  April  Fool's  Day 
Duke  Alva's  spectacles 
Were  stolen  away,"  — 

though  the  Dutch  know  nothing  of  an  April 
Fool's  Day. 

Alva  had  already  punished  the  cities  of 
Utrecht  and  Brussels  for  not  approving  of  his 
policy.  The  first  had  refused  to  consent  to 
the  tax  of  the  tenth  penny.  When  the  citi- 
zens appealed  to  the  king,  he,  to  vex  them, 
further  ordered  out  the  Spanish  garrisons  from 
Leyden,  Haarlem,  Delft,  and  Briel,  and  quar- 
tered them  all  in  Utrecht.  By  doing  this,  he 
gave  the  Beggars  the  chance  which  they  im- 
proved at  Briel.  Amsterdam  was  fined  heavily 
for  not  publishing  Alva's  tax  decree.  In  Brus- 
sels, the  people  shut  their  shops  and  refused 

181 


HISTORY    OF   HOLLAND 

to  do  any  business.  The  duke  then  prepared 
seventy  ladders  and  ropes,  in  order  to  hang 
seventy  of  the  principal  shopkeepers  before 
their  own  doors  on  the  next  night.  But  when 
the  news  of  the  capture  of  Briel  came,  Alva 
saw  his  folly,  and  went  no  further  in  the  matter. 
Count  Bossu,  at  Utrecht,  went  back,  hoping  to 
recapture  the  town  he  had  left. 

He  and  his  Spaniards  took  ship  and  came 
down  the  river  Maas  to  Briel,  where  the  Beg- 
gars had  fortified  themselves.  At  the  right 
time,  when  the  enemy  was  in  sight,  one  brave 
fellow  named  Rochus  Meeuwsen,  holding  an 
axe,  climbed  out  over  the  sluice  gates,  hacked 
away  the  timbers,  and  opened  the  sluices,  so 
that  the  whole  country  was  laid  under  water. 
On  account  of  this,  the  Spaniards  could  not 
march  along  the  road,  but  had  to  step  in 
single  file  along  the  top  of  the  dike.  Mean- 
while the  cannon  from  the  city  walls  played 
on  them,  and  their  vessels  in  the  river  were  all 
set  on  fire  or  captured.  Finding  the  flood 
rising  higher  and  higher,  Bossu's  men,  in  much 
lessened  numbers,  retreated  by  wading,  swim- 
ming, or  groping  through  marshes,  and  got 
back  to  Dordrecht  very  wet,  very  tired,  and 
very  hungry.  As  maddened  as  wounded  tigers, 

they  thirsted  for  any  and  all  Dutchmen's  blood. 

182 


VICTORIES   OF   THE   WATER   BEGGARS 

Later  obtaining  ships  and  boats,  they  dropped 
down  the  Maas  to  Rotterdam. 

Bossu  informed  the  city  authorities  that  he 
was  on  his  way  to  The  Hague,  and  wished  to 
pass  peacefully  through  Rotterdam.  After 
promising  to  go  through  the  city,  marching 
only  one  file  of  men  at  a  time,  the  Spaniards 
were  admitted.  Immediately  breaking  their 
promise,  they  rushed  through  the  streets, 
slaughtering  men,  women,  and  children.  They 
behaved  more  like  devils  than  human  beings. 
At  one  house,  a  clever  woman  saved  the  lives 
of  the  people  inside.  She  quickly  killed  a  cat, 
and  shook  or  smeared  its  blood  over  the  steps 
and  doorposts.  The  Spaniards,  thinking  that 
the  people  in  that  house  had  been  already 
murdered,  did  not  go  in.  Thus  the  inmates, 
though  long  in  terror  while  hiding  in  the 
cellar,  saved  their  lives.  Ever  afterwards,  this 
house  was  called  the  House  of  a  Thousand 
Fears.  The  hero  of  this  Rotterdam  episode 
was  Black  John,  who  laid  about  with  his  ham- 
mer and  killed  a  number  of  Spaniards.  To- 
day, one  reads  on  the  street  cars  the  name  of 
this  local  hero,  Swarte  Jan;  for  there  is  a  street 
named  after  him.  The  Spaniards  left  Rotter- 
dam looking  like  a  slaughter  house  and  then 
moved  on  to  The  Hague.  On  the  eastern 

183 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

gate  of  Holland's  second  city  is  inscribed  the 
date  of  this  awful  episode,  April  9,  1572. 

A  great  river  is  like  a  door  opening  into  a 
country,  and  a  seaport  near  its  mouth  is  the 
key  which  opens  or  shuts  the  door.  Briel  was 
the  key  to  the  river  Maas,  and  Alva  had  lost 
it.  He  now  determined  to  make  sure  of  Flush- 
ing, the  key  to  the  river  Scheldt.  He  ordered 
the  citadel  to  be  completed,  and  sent  fifteen 
hundred  Spaniards  to  garrison  the  city.  But 
the  people  rose  up  in  arms,  and,  getting  help 
from  the  Water  Beggars  and  from  England, 
they  drove  out  the  Spaniards  and  hanged  the 
Italian  engineer  Pacheco,  in  revenge  for  the 
death  of  Treslong's  brother,  whom  Alva  had 
put  to  death  in  1568.  In  the  Flushing  mu- 
seum, we  may  still  see  the  unfortunate  man's 
helmet  preserved  among  the  many  curiosities 
there. 

Soon  after  this,  a  fleet  of  forty  ships,  with 
twenty-five  hundred  soldiers  on  board  and 
many  hundred  barrels  of  money,  arrived  at 
Flushing  from  Spain.  Not  knowing  that  the 
city  had  been  taken,  all  the  Spaniards  were 
captured  by  the  combined  forces  of  the  Flush- 
ing men  and  the  Water  Beggars.  Because 
Alva  had  hanged  his  prisoners  taken  in  battle, 

the  Dutchmen  were  determined  to  make  him 

184 


VICTORIES    OF   THE   WATER   BEGGARS 

fight  more  humanely,  and  so,  in  retaliation, 
they  threw  their  prisoners  overboard. 

Alva  still  expected  to  smother  the  Dutch- 
men in  their  own  smoke,  but  he  had  another 
thorn  in  his  side  when  the  news  came  of  a 
great  victory  of  the  Beggars  in  the  south  — 
the  capture,  on  May  24,  of  Mons  in  Hainault, 
by  Louis  of  Nassau,  who  had  obtained  French 
aid.  Alva  could  hardly  believe  this  news,  be- 
cause his  spies  had  seen  Louis  only  a  few  days 
before  playing  tennis  in  Paris.  He  at  once 
called  his  troops  out  of  Holland  to  recover 
Mons,  and  this  gave  the  Beggars  or  patriots 
in  Walcheren,  the  largest  of  the  islands  of 
Zeeland,  in  which  the  cities  of  Flushing,  Mid- 
delburg,  and  Goes  are  situated,  time  to  organ- 
ize their  forces. 

By  this  time  thousands  of  Englishmen,  feel- 
ing that  the  Dutch  cause  was  theirs,  and  that 
if  little  Holland  went  down  before  giant  Spain 
England  would  go  next,  began  to  stream  over 
into  the  Netherlands  as  volunteers.  About  two 
hundred  of  them  were  already  in  Walcheren, 
under  Sir  Humphrey  Gilbert  and  Sir  Thomas 
Morgan.  In  the  north,  the  people  of  Enkhui- 
zen  raised  the  Orange  banner  under  the  leader- 

o 

ship  of    Sonoy.     Other  towns  followed  their 

example.     In   South    Holland,  the  little   city 

185 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

republics  of  Oudewater,  Gouda,  Delft,  Leyden, 
and  Dordrecht  hoisted  the  Orange  colors.  So 
it  came  to  pass  that,  within  three  months,  the 
only  important  town  in  Holland  held,  in  1572, 
by  the  Spaniards  was  Amsterdam.  In  Fries- 
land,  the  party  of  the  Beggars  was  very  strong. 
Sneek,  Bolsward,  Franeker,  and  Dokkum  joined 
the  patriots,  and  the  Spanish  garrisons  in  Sta- 
voren  and  Leeuwarden  were  besieged  by  the 
men  under  the  orange,  white,  and  blue  flag. 

All  this  compelled  Alva  to  do  what  he 
ought  to  have  done  months  before ;  that  is,  to 
take  off  the  taxes  which  the  Dutch  had  not 
voted,  especially  the  odious  "  tenth  penny." 
The  Dutch  congress,  made  up  of  nobles  and 
delegates  from  a  dozen  cities,  met  at  Dord- 
recht, acknowledged  the  prince  of  Orange  as 
their  stadholder,  and  voted  plenty  of  money  for 
the  support  of  the  war  against  the  Spaniards. 
They  were  led  by  Philip  Van  Marnix  de  Sainte- 
Aldegonde,  of  whom  we  shall  hear  more,  who 
was  a  great  and  good  man,  and  who  wrote  the 
"  Wilhelmus  Lied,"  the  national  hymn  of  Hol- 
land. They  also  appointed  William  Van  der 
Mark  as  captain-general. 

In  the  south,  Alva  sent  first  his  son  Don 
Frederic,  and  then  went  himself,  with  a  large 

army,  to  capture  Mons.     William  of  Orange 

1 86 


VICTORIES    OF   THE   WATER   BEGGARS 

marched  from  Germany  to  the  same  place,  but 
Alva  was  again  very  shrewd,  and  refused  to 
give  Orange  battle.  While  helpless  in  this 
condition,  "  Father  William  "  heard  the  awful 
news  of  the  massacre  of  St.  Bartholomew,  in 
which  nearly  all  the  French  Huguenot  friends 
of  the  Netherlands  had  perished  at  the  hands 
of  assassins.  After  nearly  fifteen  thousand 
cannon  balls  had  been  fired  into  the  city  of 
Mons,  Louis  had  to  surrender,  on  September 
25.  He  rose  from  a  sick  bed  to  offer  his  sword. 
On  his  way  back  to  Brussels,  Alva  allowed  his 
soldiers  to  rob  and  pillage  Mechlin  and  other 
cities. 

William  of   Orange  was  obliged  to  retreat 

o  o 

again  into  Germany  and  dismiss  his  army ;  for 
his  men  were  clamoring  for  their  pay.  They 
even  threatened  to  seize  his  body  as  security. 
We  shall  see  that  until  a  regular  army  of  native 
Dutch  patriots  was  formed,  no  progress  was 
made  in  field  warfare  ;  for  no  dependence  could 
be  placed  upon  mercenaries. 


187 


CHAPTER   XXII 

NAARDEN,  HAARLEM,  ALKMAAR,  AND  LEYDEN 

THE  Beggars  had  not  succeeded  very  well  in 
Zeeland.  After  failing  to  take  Middelburg, 
they,  with  their  British  and  French  allies,  tried 
to  capture  the  pretty  little  city  of  Goes,  in 
which  Jacqueline  of  Bavaria  used  to  live,  and 
which  was  now  held  by  the  Spaniards. 

Alva,  being  able  to  spare  some  of  his  best 
men,  sent  three  thousand  of  them,  led  by  the 
brave  old  Colonel  Mondragon,  —  who  lived  to 
be  ninety-three  years  old,  —  across  the  water 
into  Walcheren,  to  help  the  garrison.  In  this 
march,  with  only  their  heads  above  water,  the 
Spaniards  performed  one  of  the  most  daring  ex- 
ploits of  the  war.  For  lack  of  boats,  they  could 
not  cross  over  to  the  island  in  the  ordinary 
way ;  but  led  by  a  skillful  guide  who  knew  of  a 
narrow,  slippery  path  under  water,  these  brave 
fellows  waded  six  miles.  Putting  their  pro- 
visions and  ammunition  on  their  heads,  they 
moved  on,  up  to  their  necks  in  water. 

During  all  the  time  of   their  passage,  the 

1 88 


NAARDEN,  HAARLEM,  ALKMAAR,  LEYDEN 

Water  Beggars  in  their  ships  fired  with  can- 
non and  muskets,  or  killed  their  enemies  with 
oars  or  boat-hooks.  Yet  they  could  not  stop 
the  determined  Spaniards,  who  pressed  on, 
drove  the  besiegers  into  their  ships,  and  held 
not  only  Goes  but  most  of  Zeeland,  though 
Zierikzee  and  the  island  of  Schouwen  still 
held  out  for  the  prince  of  Orange.  To-day,  in 
Spain,  the  sword  of-  Mondragon  is  used  as  a 
lightning  rod,  and  his  descendants  are  honored 
as  those  of  the  "  Marquis  of  the  Honorable 
Passage." 

In  spite  of  all  his  failures  in  war,  William  of 
Orange  was  beloved  and  trusted  by  the  peo- 
ple. Coming  back  from  Germany,  he  landed 
at  Enkhuizen,  and  went  to  Haarlem  to  meet 
the  Dutch  congress.  One  of  the  first  things 
done  was  to  reform  the  army  and  navy  ;  for 
in  robbing  and  insulting  the  people,  Van  der 
Mark  and  his  soldiers  were  almost  as  bad  as 
the  Spaniards. 

Old  Alva  went  to  Nymegen  to  rest.  His 
son,  Don  Frederic,  marched  to  Zutphen,  which 
he  entered,  and  then  treated  the  people  as  if 
they  had  been  besieged ;  for  he  ordered  five 
hundred  of  them  to  be  drowned.  This  was  like 
savagery;  but  the  worst  Spanish  outrages  were 

at  Naarden,  to  which  Count  Bossu  was  dis- 

189 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

patched  to  demand  its  surrender.  The  dele- 
gates sent  from  the  town,  December,  1572,  to 
treat  with  the  Spaniards  received  a  promise 
that  the  lives  and  property  of  the  people  should 
be  preserved,  both  parties  joining  hands  to  the 
compact.  The  city  gates  were  then  opened, 
and  the  Spaniards  marched  in. 

While  the  citizens  went  unarmed  to  take 
oath  to  the  king,  the  women  prepared  a  good 
dinner  for  the  king's  soldiers.  After  this,  all 
the  people  were  told  to  go  into  the  little  Gast- 
huis  church,  which  they  did.  Then  the  signal 
was  given,  a  fearful  massacre  began,  and  in  a 
few  minutes  hundreds  of  people  were  slaugh- 
tered. One  brave  fellow,  Hubert  Williamson, 
defended  himself.  Seizing  a  three-legged  stool 
in  his  left  hand  and  using  it  as  a  shield,  and 
holding  a  sword  in  his  right  hand,  he  stood  in 
front  of  his  house  and  fought  a  whole  troop  of 
Spaniards,  killing  several  of  them.  At  length 
he  was  wounded  and  overpowered  by  numbers. 
When  his  daughter  pleaded  for  her  fathers  life, 
the  Spaniards  picked  up  his  fingers,  cut  off 
by  grasping  their  swords,  and  flung  them  in 
her  face.  The  town  was  completely  stripped, 
and,  as  it  was  forbidden  to  bury  the  dead,  the 
corpses  were  left  in  the  streets  during  the 

winter. 

190 


H 

Cfi 


o 

fc 

Q 

Pi 
< 
oa 

S 
o 

w 

ffi 
u 
^ 

w 


W 
PC 
H 


PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


NAARDEN,  HAARLEM,  ALKMAAR,  LEYDEN 

Alva's  purpose  in  this  brutality  was  to 
frighten  the  people  of  the  other  towns ;  but  in- 
stead, the  Spanish  outrages  only  roused  the 
Dutchmen  to  fresh  fury.  Turning  his  back 
on  Naarden,  Don  Frederic  laid  siege  to  Haar- 
lem. All  who  favored  Philip  and  the  Pope 
were  sent  out  of  the  city,  and  the  patriots  de- 
termined to  fight  to  the  last.  They  established 
the  Reformed  religion,  and  took  the  statues 
out  of  the  churches  to  make  breastworks  of 
them.  The  garrison  consisted  chiefly  of  Eng- 
lish, Scottish,  and  German  soldiers,  with  five 
hundred  and  fifty  Netherlanders.  On  December 
10,  1572,  Don  Frederic  began  his  march,  and 
the  siege  on  the  same  day.  It  was  intensely 
cold,  but  he  expected  to  capture  the  city  in  a 
week.  Planting  fifteen  pieces  of  cannon  near 
the  Cross  Gate,  he  made  a  breach ;  but  the 
Haarlemmers  built  a  new  inside  wall.  Such  a 
fort,  crescent-shaped,  was  called  a  Half  Moon, 
which  the  bold  sailors  of  Henry  Hudson  and 
other  navigators  afterwards  took  as  the  lucky 
name  of  their  ships. 

The  women  and  children  of  Haarlem  helped 
in  the  work  of  the  defense  of  the  city.  The 
famous  widow,  Kenau  Van  Hasselaer,  a  woman 
of  rank  and  fortune,  formed  a  battalion  of  three 

hundred  women  and  drilled  them  in  the  use 

191 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

of  the  musket  and  sword,  the  pick  and  the 
spade.  These  brave  women  kept  guard  and 
fought  on  the  walls.  The  lake  of  Haarlem 
being  frozen  over,  the  people  of  Leyden  were 
able  to  furnish  food  and  ammunition  on  sledges, 
and  aid  was  sent  also  from  Delft.  On  the  last 
day  of  January,  1573,  the  Spaniards  made  an- 
other  determined  assault,  but  were  blown  up 
with  gunpowder  stored  in  mines,  or  were  driven 
back.  Angry  at  their  defeat,  they  cut  off  the 
head  of  one  of  the  men  from  Delft  who  were 
trying  to  reenforce  Haarlem,  and  flung  it  over 
the  walls. 

To  revenge  this  insult,  the  Haarlemmers 
beheaded  eleven  Spanish  prisoners,  packed  a 
barrel  with  the  bloody  produce,  and  rolled  it 
toward  the  Spanish  camp.  Inside  was  a  paper 
telling  the  besiegers  that  Alva  could  have  his 
ten  pence,  with  one  for  interest.  Other  savage 
acts  were  done  on  both  sides. 

The  intense  cold,  the  general  sickness  pre- 
vailing in  the  camp,  and  the  desertion  of  so 
many  of  his  troops,  made  Don  Frederic  want 
to  give  up  the  siege ;  but  his  stern  father  said 
that  if  his  son  was  unable,  he  would  send  for 
his  son's  mother,  in  Spain,  to  take  his  place. 
When  the  frost  broke  up,  Count  Bossu,  having 

cut  a  dike  and   let   in  water  over  the  fields, 

192 


w 


o 

W 

Q 
O 

W 

O 

£ 

w 


THE  NEW   YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


ASTOR,  LENOX  AND 

TILOEN  FOUNDATIONS. 

C  L. 


NAARDEN,  HAARLEM,  ALKMAAR,  LEYDEN 

opened  a  passage  for  a  fleet  of  sixty  vessels 
from  A  msterdam.  After  this,  the  Leyden  peo- 
ple could  not  help  their  friends  in  Haarlem. 
When  carrier  pigeons  were  used,  they  were 
brought  down  by  the  Spanish  sharpshooters, 
so  that  the  besiegers'  plans  and  those  of  their 
friends  were  made  known  to  the  enemy. 

The  winter  was  over,  but  there  was  no  food. 
The  spring  of  1573  had  well  advanced,  and 
the  people  inside  the  walls  were  eating  cats, 
dogs,  and  rats  to  sustain  life.  The  Spaniards 
had  received  fresh  reinforcements.  A  force 
of  patriots  marching  from  Delft,  Leyden,  and 
Rotterdam,  to  aid  their  countrymen,  was  am- 
bushed and  cut  to  pieces.  The  streets  of 
Haarlem  were  crowded  with  the  sick:  and  dy- 
ing. Don  Frederic,  fearing  those  inside  would 
set  the  city  on  fire,  sent  a  trumpeter  to  promise 
mercy.  A  conference  was  held,  and  after  seven 
months'  siege  the  city  surrendered,  July  12, 
1573.  The  Spaniards  had  lost  twelve  thou- 
sand men.  Once  inside  the  city,  as  one  of  their 
own  authors  says,  they  hanged,  beheaded,  or 
drowned  two  thousand  people. 

Thus  closed  one  of  the  darkest  days  for 
Holland.  Further  resistance  seemed  hope- 
less ;  for  there  was  no  way  of  raising  any  more 
money  or  men  to  fight.  The  Hollanders  were 

'93 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

peaceful  people,  who  had  for  generations  known 
next  to  nothing  about  war.  Their  towns  were 
poorly  fortified,  and  were  without  arsenal  stores 
or  provisions. 

Yet  all  this  time  the  courage  of  William  of 
Orange  did  not  fail ;  for  he  trusted  in  God  and 
lived  up  to  his  motto,  "  Always  tranquil  amid 
the  waves."  One  great  benefit  came  to  his 
side  from  the  enemy,  in  that  the  Spanish  sol- 
diers were  paid  very  irregularly.  Usually,  after 
every  victory,  there  was  a  great  mutiny.  Such 
an  episode,  which  always  helped  the  Dutch 
cause,  happened  after  the  siege  of  Haarlem, 
and  delayed  progress  for  many  weeks.  Don 
Frederic's  troops,  being  nearly  two  years  and 
a  half  behind  in  their  wages,  rebelled ;  but  as 
soon  as  this  matter  was  settled,  and  they  had 
their  money  in  hand,  their  leader  marched  to 
Alkmaar  to  besiege  and  storm  the  little  town. 

Again  fresh  surprises  awaited  Don  Frederic. 
Sonoy's  soldiers,  though  out  in  the  country 
and  busy  in  cutting  off  supplies,  were  unable 
to  reenforce  the  garrison.  Yet  the  plain  citi- 
zens, men,  women,  and  children,  fought  with 
such  valor  and  energy  that  the  Spaniards  were 
driven  back,  and  some  of  them  even  refused  to 
fight  such  brave  people.  After  a  month,  they 
met  a  new  enemy.  What  happened  at  Briel 

194 


NAARDEN,  HAARLEM,  ALKMAAR,  LEYDEN 

took  place  here,  as  it  afterwards  did  at  Leyden. 
The  Dutch  made  the  waters  their  friends  and 
rolled  them  over  the  Spanish  camps,  washing 
these  out.  Sonoy's  men  chopped  away  the 
wooden  locks  in  the  canals,  opened  the  sluices, 
and  let  in  the  water  all  over  the  country.  Soon 
the  Spaniards  in  their  camps  were  up  to  their 
ankles  in  it,  with  the  prospect  that  before  long 
the  water  would  be  up  to  their  knees,  and  even 
their  thighs.  All  their  fires  were  put  out,  so 
that  they  could  not  cook  their  food,  not  even 
their  hodge-podge  of  meat  and  vegetables. 
Afraid  of  being  drowned,  they  broke  camp  Oc- 
tober 8,  1573,  and  hastily  fled  to  Amsterdam, 
looking  like  a  crowd  of  "  Mud  Beggars." 

Soon  after  this,  a  great  naval  victory  took 
place  in  the  Zuyder  Zee.  A  fleet  of  twenty- 
four  armed  vessels,  under  Admiral  Dirkson, 
was  cruising  about  to  meet  the  fleet  of  Admi- 
ral Bossu.  Catching  sight  of  them,  but  not 
having  much  powder,  the  Hollanders  ran  their 
little  ships  in  among  those  of  the  Spaniards. 
Dirkson  brought  his  own  prow  close  to  the 
big  Spanish  flagship,  which  carried  thirty-two 
guns  and  was  manned  by  three  hundred  and 
fifty  men.  A  daring  Dutchman,  John  Harik, 
from  Hoorn,  sprang  up  the  Spanish  rigging. 
Climbing  up  as  swiftly  as  a  monkey,  he  tore 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

down  the  admiral's  flag.  A  Spaniard  instantly 
shot  him  dead,  but  the  episode  cheered  the 
Dutchmen  and  chilled  the  Spaniards'  ardor. 
The  battle  lasted  from  the  afternoon  of  the 
nth  of  October  until  noon  the  next  day,  when, 
three  Spanish  vessels  being  sunk  or  captured, 
the  others  escaped  by  throwing  their  cannon 
overboard.  Bossu  was  captured  and  kept  a 
prisoner  in  Hoorn  for  three  years,  when  he 
was  exchanged  for  Marnix,  of  whom  we  shall 
hear  again. 

By  this  time  Alva  needed  a  new  pair  of 
spectacles  to  see  affairs  in  their  proper  light. 
Nearly  all  North  Holland  was  under  the  con- 
trol of  Orange.  In  all  of  the  towns,  magistrates 
and  people  determined  to  perish,  man  by  man, 
rather  than  be  slaves.  Tired  out  with  his  hard 
and  bloody  work  in  trying  to  exterminate  such 
obstinate  people,  Alva  left  Amsterdam  by 
night,  without  even  paying  his  debts.  He 
then  gave  up  his  command  and  went  back  to 
Spain.  He  left  behind  him  a  reputation  that 
has  become  a  proverb  for  villainy,  brutality, 
and  the  butchery  of  Christian  people.  Never- 
theless, after  leaving  Holland,  he  served  his 
king  again  with  success  in  southern  Europe. 
In  ten  weeks  he  conquered  Portugal,  which 

was  united  with  the  crown  of  Spain. 

196 


w 
w 

N 


W 
Q 


N 

W 
X 
H 


W 

I— ( 

H 
H 
< 
CQ 


THE  NEW  YORK 

FUBLIC'LIBRARY 


ASTOR, 

TK.OE.N  h- 

c 


NAARDEN,  HAARLEM,  ALKMAAR,  LEYDEN 

Philip  appointed  a  new  commander  of  the 
Spanish  army,  Don  Luis  de  Requesens,  who 
had  won  fame  in  fighting  the  Turks  at  the 
battle  of  Lepanto.  Great  things  were  expected 
of  him.  His  first  work  was  to  collect  at  Ant- 
werp a  fleet  of  forty  vessels  in  order  to  relieve 
old  Colonel  Mondragon,  who  had  been  shut 
up  by  the  patriots  in  Middelburg  for  two 
years.  Half  of  the  fleet  of  Requesens  was  met 
by  the  Water  Beggars,  led  by  Admiral  Boisot, 
who  attacked  so  fiercely  that  while  Don  Luis 
stood  on  the  top  of  a  dike  to  watch  the  battle, 
ten  of  his  largest  ships  were  destroyed.  The 
others  sailed  back  to  Antwerp.  Again  the 
Beggars  were  masters  of  Zeeland  and  of  the 
sea.  It  had  cost  the  king  of  Spain  seven 
million  florins  to  hold  Middelburg.  Now,  both 
the  city  and  the  money  were  gone. 

Nevertheless,  it  was  hard  for  the  Water 
Beggars  to  keep  alive ;  for  they  had  no  wages. 
They  had  to  live  upon  what  the  people  could 
give  them,  or  what  they  could  get  in  their 
captured  prizes.  For  weeks  together,  they 
had  often  nothing  but  hard  bread  and  salted 
herring.  Yet  they  were  no  more  afraid  of 
death  than  they  were  of  hunger  or  hardships. 
When  one  of  their  own  ships  was  likely  to 

be  captured,  they  were  pretty  sure  to  thrust 

197 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

a  torch  into  the  powder  magazine  and  blow 
the  vessel  and  themselves  to  pieces,  rather 
than  be  made  prisoners.  Gaunt,  hairy,  and 
terribly  scarred  and  mutilated  were  these  des- 
perate fellows.  Many  of  their  long  beards 
were  now  months  old,  because  of  their  oath 
not  to  shave  or  cut  their  hair  till  Egmont  was 
avenged.  We  shall  hear  of  these  Water  Beg- 
gars again  and  of  Boisot,  their  commander,  at 
Leyden,  which  city  was  now  being  surrounded 
by  the  Spaniards.  The  siege  began  October 

3i>  1573- 

Louis  of  Nassau,  brother  of  William,  was 

not  very  successful  in  his  military  movements, 
and  again  he  was  doomed  to  defeat.  He 
raised  an  army  of  nearly  ten  thousand  men, 
mostly  French,  but  with  some  Germans.  He 
crossed  the  Rhine  from  Germany  and  marched 
to  meet  his  brother  William  at  Bommelwart, 
with  the  idea  of  a  joint  movement  for  the  relief 
of  Leyden,  but  on  reaching  the  desolate  heath 
of  Mook,  the  Spaniards,  under  Commander 
Avila,  met  him.  In  the  battle,  which  took 
place  April  14,  1574,  the  generous  blood  of 
the  Nassau  princes  again  dyed  red  the  soil  of 
the  Netherlands.  After  his  men  had  been 
driven  back  by  the  lancers  and  musket-men 
of  Avila,  Louis  and  Henry,  the  two  brothers 

198 


NAARDEN,  HAARLEM,  ALKMAAR,  LEYDEN 

of  William  the  Silent,  headed  a  desperate 
cavalry  charge  and  plunged  into  a  whirlwind 
of  dust  and  blood.  They  were  never  again 
seen,  nor  were  their  bodies  found.  It  is  be- 
lieved that  these  were  so  trampled  in  the  mire 
by  the  horses'  hoofs  that  they  could  not  be 
recognized.  Not  until  a  few  years  ago  was  a 
monument  erected  to  their  memory,  in  the 
little  church  of  Mook  near  the  battlefield. 

In  1898,  at  the  festivities  at  Queen  Wil- 
helmina's  coronation,  the  people  sang  in  the 
Begijn  Hof  in  Amsterdam,  — 

"  For  us  the  Nassau  princes 
Died  on  battlefield ;"- 

recalling  the  sad  memories  of  Mookerheide. 

Again  Spanish  bad  management  helped  the 
patriot  cause.  Philip's  soldiers,  who  had  not 
been  paid  for  three  years,  broke  out  into 
mutiny  and  marched  back  to  Antwerp,  where 
they  lived  on  the  citizens.  While  they  were 
there,  Admiral  Boisot  dashed  upon  the  Span- 
ish fleet,  captured  five  and  burned  three  ves- 
sels, seizing  a  large  quantity  of  silver,  which 
had  been  put  on  the  ship  to  save  it  from  the 
pillage  of  the  Spanish  soldiers. 

From  the  26th  of  March,  1574,  when  the 
Spaniards  left  the  forts  in  front  of  Leyden 

to  march  south  and    fight   Louis  of    Nassau 

199 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

at  Mook,  the  siege  was  interrupted  for  two 
months.  But  on  May  26,  the  people  of  Leyden 
saw  in  the  distance  the  blue  and  white  ban- 
ners of  Alva,  and  the  victorious  Spaniards,  led 
by  Valdez,  reappeared.  The  Leyden  people 
had  been  so  very  glad  to  see  their  tormentors 
gone  that,  during  the  two  months'  respite, 
they  had  neglected  to  lay  up  stores  of  food 
or  to  destroy  the  Spanish  forts.  Don  Luis  de 
Requesens,  knowing  this,  promptly  sent  back 
eight  thousand  men  to  besiege  the  city,  which 
had  no  garrison  except  its  own  burgher  guards. 
The  Spanish  commander  sent  a  letter,  promis- 
ing pardon  to  the  Leydeners;  but  they  an- 
swered with  a  sheet  of  paper  on  which  was 
written  :  "  The  fowler  plays  sweet  notes  on  his 
pipe,  while  he  spreads  his  net  for  the  birds." 
Valdez,  in  charge  of  the  besieging  force,  built 
sixty-two  forts  around  the  town,  not  only  to 
reduce  the  city  by  cannonading  the  walls,  but 
to  prevent  relief  by  any  attack  in  the  rear. 

The  prospect  became  very  dark  for  the 
Dutch,  but  they  had  one  friend  in  reserve  all 
ready  to  fight  for  them.  The  ocean  waves 
were  made  to  be  allies  with  the  Dutch  against 
the  Spaniards.  William  of  Orange,  at  Rotter- 
dam, summoned  Admiral  Boisot  with  his  ter- 
rible band  of  Water  Beggars,  numbering  nearly 

200 


NAARDEN,  HAARLEM,  ALKMAAR,  LEYDEN 

a  thousand  scarred  and  maimed  men,  who 
hated  the  Spaniards  with  a  frenzy  of  passion 
and  were  under  oath  to  die  rather  than  sub- 
mit to  the  Pope  or  the  Inquisition.  One  of 
them,  Captain  Hoen,  had  with  only  eighteen 
men,  handling  muskets  and  their  long  sharp- 
pronged  poles  used  in  leaping  ditches,  killed 
1 20  Spaniards  on  a  narrow  dike.  The  sea- 
men manned  two  hundred  flat-bottomed  boats, 
built  at  Delft,  Schiedam,  or  Rotterdam,  each 
one  being  armed  with  a  cannon  at  the  bow. 
One  was  an  ironclad.  Another  was  moved  by 
a  wheel  turned  by  twelve  men. 

When  these  boats  were  all  ready,  bands  of 
men  were  sent  forward  to  cut  the  dikes.  Be- 
ginning at  the  sea,  on  the  Hook  of  Holland, 
and  running  westward  forty  miles  through  the 
country  is  a  great  dike,  in  some  places  thirty 
or  forty  feet  high  and  thick  enough  to  have  a 
wagon  road,  or  street,  on  the  top.  This  wall  of 
earth  protects  South  Holland  from  the  ocean 
and  river  floods,  but  now  necessity  required 
it  to  be  broken  through.  At  Rotterdam  and 
Delfshaven,  great  breaches  many  feet  wide 
were  now  cut  into  this  dike,  and  through  them 
the  waters  rolled  in,  making  a  lake  all  the  way 
to  Leyden.  "  Better  a  drowned  land  than  a 
lost  land  "  was  the  Dutch  motto.  Meanwhile, 

2OI 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

inside  the  city  the  people  were  feeding  on 
roots,  leaves,  chaff,  and  boiled  hides,  while  the 
ladies  ate  their  pet  dogs.  The  plague  broke 
out,  and,  with  disease  and  famine,  over  six 
thousand  people  had  died ;  yet  still  the  burgo- 
master, Van  der  Werf,  refused  to  surrender. 

At  first  the  wind  was  unfavorable  and  there 
was  not  enough  water  to  float  the  rescuing 
boats  northward,  but  just  at  the  end  of  the  five 
months,  the  wind  changed  to  the  northwest. 
The  waters  of  the  river  Maas  rolled  over  the 
country,  covering  it  so  that  only  tall  trees  and 
house-tops  stuck  up  out  of  the  water.  The 
boats  of  the  Water  Beggars  dashed  in,  and, 
after  terrible  fighting,  all  the  forts  were  taken, 
except  Lammen,  the  largest  of  all.  Admiral 
Boisot  sent  a  message  by  a  carrier  pigeon  to 
the  Leydenese,  telling  them  to  make  a  sally 
next  morning,  but  that  night,  October  2,  1574, 
several  wonderful  things  happened.  A  large 
part  of  the  city  wall  fell  down  into  the  ditch, 
and  the  Spaniards  evacuated  their  fort,, leaving 
it  so  suddenly  that  they  did  not  take  time  to 
eat  their  supper,  but  left  the  pot  boiling  over 
the  fire,  with  the  hodge-podge  of  meat  and 
vegetables  cooking  in  it. 

Early   in    the    morning,  October   3,  a  boy 

named  Gijsbert   Cornellisen  climbed  up   the 

202 


55 

W 

Q 


Cn 

o 


w 


I 

H 


THE  NEW  YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


ASTOR,  LENOX  AND 
TILOEN  FOUNDATIONS. 


NAARDEN,  HAARLEM,  ALKMAAR,  LEYDEN 

city  walls.  Seeing  the  Spanish  fort  deserted, 
he  waded  and  swam  out  to  it.  Standing  on 
the  rampart,  he  waved  his  cap  to  the  Water 
Beggars,  telling  them  the  fort  was  empty. 
Then  he  took  the  Spanish  cooking  pot  into 
the  city,  as  proof  that  Leyden  was  saved.  The 
Water  Beggars  now  drove  their  boats  along 
the  canals  leading  into  the  city  and  were  soon 
within.  As  the  men,  women,  and  children, 
gaunt,  pale,  and  tottering,  came  down  to  the 
side  of  the  quay,  the  rescuers  tossed  up  loaves 
of  bread  and  bundles  of  herring. 

As  soon  as  most  of  the  people  had  satisfied 
their  hunger,  Admiral  Boisot  and  Burgomaster 
Van  der  Werf  led  the  procession,  and  all  went 
to  the  great  church  of  St.  Peter's  to  give 
thanks  to  God  who  had  made  a  sea  upon  the 
dry  land,  and  rescued  them,  his  way  being 
upon  the  deep  and  his  path  upon  the  great 
waters.  By  a  wonderful  Providence,  the  wind 
soon  changed  to  the  northeast,  drove  back  the 
waters  into  the  ocean  again,  and  dried  up  the 
floods.  The  dikes  were  again  repaired  and 
the  land  was  ready  for  seed.  The  admiral 
was  presented  with  a  chain  of  gold,  and  the 
poor  were  given  more  money  and  provisions. 
Even  the  carrier  pigeons  were  kept  with  great 

care  while  they  lived,  and,  after  their  death, 

203 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

were  stuffed  and  put  in  the  town  hall.  There, 
doubtless,  years  afterwards,  the  Pilgrim  boys 
and  girls,  founders  of  Massachusetts,  who  lived 
in  Leyden  from  1610  to  1620,  enjoyed  seeing 
them.  The  Spanish  cooking  pot  and  battle 
flags  are  still  kept  in  the  city  museum. 

To  reward  the  Leyden  people  for  their 
bravery,  a  fair  was  established,  in  addition  to 
the  Kermis,  to  be  held  every  year  on  the  first 
of  October,  and  a  university  was  established 
and  endowed  with  land.  The  third  of  Oc- 
tober, the  day  of  the  rescue,  was  ever  after- 
wards Thanksgiving  Day,  and  here  the  Pil- 
grims first  kept,  with  the  Dutch,  this  annual 
festival.  Only  instead  of  eating  turkey  and 
cranberry  sauce,  it  was  the  custom  of  the 
Leydenese  to  have  "  huts-pot "  or  hodge-podge 
of  stewed  meat  and  vegetables  as  the  main 
dish.  The  city  museum  of  Leyden  still  con- 
tains many  relics  of  the  great  siege  and  of  the 
war  for  freedom.  Merchants  came  from  all 
parts  of  the  world  to  show  their  goods  at  the 
annual  fair.  Leyden  became  even  a  greater 
centre  of  the  wool  trade  and  clothmakine 

o 

than  it  had  been  before,  and  its  wealth  in- 
creased. The  city  was  enlarged  and  the  uni- 
versity grew  to  be  one  of  the  most  famous  in 

the  world.     In  it  some  of  the  Pilgrim  Fathers 

204 


NAARDEN,  HAARLEM,  ALKMAAR,  LEYDEN 

were  educated,  as  well  as  the  sons  of  John 
Adams,  besides  hundreds  of  Americans,  and 
nearly  five  thousand  young  men  from  the 
British  Isles. 


205 


CHAPTER   XXIII 

ENGLAND  HELPS  HOLLAND 

IT  seemed  impossible  that  brave  little  Holland, 
with  only  six  thousand  square  miles  of  solid 
land  and  less  than  a  million  people,  could 
maintain  the  long  battle  against  so  powerful 
a  monarch  as  Philip  and  so  rich  a  kingdom 
as  Spain.  The  Dutch  therefore  looked  about 
for  some  sovereign  who  would  defend  them. 
But  to  whom  should  they  apply  —  to  Germany, 
England,  or  France  ?  For  the  best  of  reasons 
they  turned  to  England,  whose  queen  was  a 
descendant  of  the  ancient  counts  of  Holland. 
Through  Philippa,  wife  of  Edward  III.,  the 
Virgin  Queen  Elizabeth  was  a  kinswoman  to 
the  Dutch,  who  now  wished  her  to  become 
the  countess  of  Holland  and  the  ruler  of  the 
Netherlands. 

On  the  other  side,  the  Spaniards  dispatched 
a  high  lord  to  Elizabeth,  begging  her  not  to 
help  the  Dutch  rebels.  Thus  the  English 
queen  was  placed,  as  it  were,  between  two  fires. 
She  did  not  want  a  war  with  Spain,  nor  did 

206 


ENGLAND  HELPS  HOLLAND 

she  altogether  approve  of  subjects  rebelling 
against  their  sovereign.  So  the  envoys  from 
both  countries  were  kept  waiting  a  good  while 
in  London,  and  given  many  flatteries  and  pro- 
mises ;  for  Elizabeth  was  a  coquette,  in  both 
love  and  politics. 

Meanwhile  the  Spaniards  were  successful  in 
South  Holland  on  land,  but  the  Water  Beggars 
kept  the  orange,  white,  and  blue  flag  afloat 
on  the  sea.  In  order  to  stop  their  successes, 
Requesens  gathered  a  fine  army  of  soldiers 
and  once  more  bade  them  plunge  like  spaniels 
into  the  water. 

The  bold  and  fierce  Spaniards,  hoping  to 
capture  the  defiant  little  city  of  Zierikzee,  fol- 
lowed at  night  time  a  slippery  submarine  path, 
which  had  been  shown  them  by  some  Dutch 
deserters.  With  powder  and  provisions  for 
three  days  tied  about  their  necks,  and  with 
their  muskets  held  above  their  heads,  they 
marched  across  the  wide  Zype  waters  by 
night.  Their  path  was  lighted  only  by  the 
flashes  of  lightning  during  a  terrible  storm. 
After  beating  the  French,  Scotch,  and  Eng- 
lish allies  at  the  top  of  the  dike,  the  Spaniards 
laid  sieofe  to  the  towrn  of  Bommenede ;  but 

o 

not  until  three  weeks  had  passed  could  they 

take  it,  and  then  only  by  assault.     When  they 

207 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

moved  on  Zierikzee,  the  people  cut  the  dikes 
and  so  flooded  the  country  that  the  Spaniards 
could  encamp  only  on  the  tops  of  the  dikes  or 
stay  in  their  forts.  Consequently,  the  work  of 
the  blockade  was  both  tedious  and  costly. 

In  North  Holland,  the  Spaniards  made  very 
little  progress,  and  on  the  fifth  of  March,  1576, 
they  lost  their  leader,  Don  Luis  de  Requesens, 
who  did  one  good  thing  before  he  died.  He 
introduced  into  the  Netherlands  the  custom 
of  reckoning  the  beginning  of  the  year,  or 
New  Year's  Day,  from  January  first,  instead 
of  from  Easter  eve.  The  successor  of  Reque- 
sens was  Don  John  of  Austria. 

All  hope  of  help  from  England  having 
ceased,  Zierikzee  surrendered,  June  21,  1576, 
but  the  Spaniards  again  lost  ground  by  a  mu- 
tiny among  the  troops.  Although  the  Hol- 
landers were  so  poor,  they  were  honest.  Their 
credit  in  the  money  market  was  good,  and  the 
faith  which  they  kept  one  with  the  other  en- 
abled them  to  continue  the  war,  \vhile  the  king 
of  Spain,  with  all  the  wealth  of  the  new  world 
at  his  back,  could  not  pay  his  soldiers.  When 
he  was  heavily  in  debt  to  the  Spanish  and 
Genoese  merchants  and  bankers,  he  found  a 
new  way  of  getting  rid  of  them.  He  did  not 
abscond,  as  Alva  did  from  Amsterdam,  but  he 

208 


ENGLAND  HELPS  HOLLAND 

obtained  from  the  Pope  permission  to  break 
his  promises.  So  the  poor  money-lenders  got 
only  thanks  and  compliments,  but  no  coin. 
Is  it  any  wonder  that  the  Spaniards,  notwith- 
standing their  tremendous  army  and  navy, 
could  make  very  little  progress  ? 

After  Zierikzee,  the  Spanish  mutineers 
wasted  the  open  country,  marched  into  Brabant, 
and  seized  the  town  of  Alost.  In  two  or  three 
battles,  during  the  year  1576,  they  beat  the 
patriot  troops  and  then  stormed  and  pillaged 
Maastricht.  Knowing  that  Antwerp  would  be 
the  next  place  to  which  the  mutineers  would 
go,  twenty-one  new  regiments  of  raw  troops 
were  sent  into  the  city  as  its  garrison.  The 
Spaniards,  with  that  sense  of  power  which 
came  from  their  superb  discipline,  did  not 
hesitate  to  attack  the  rich  city.  They  cap- 
tured the  entrenchments,  drove  back  the  raw 
troops,  and  at  midday  began  the  loot.  They 
burned  the  town  hall,  with  its  archives  of  pre- 
cious documents,  and  five  hundred  houses  in 
the  richest  quarter  of  the  city.  By  dark  they 
had  obtained  entire  possession  of  Antwerp. 
They  rushed  into  the  houses,  murdering  men, 
women,  and  children,  Catholics  and  Protestants 
alike,  until  about  twenty-five  hundred  corpses 

of  the  citizens  strewed  the  streets. 

209 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

For  three  days,  November  2,  3,  and  4, 1576, 
the  city  was  given  up  to  what  was  ever  after- 
wards known  as  the  "  Spanish  Fury."  The 
robbers,  after  seizing  two  million  crowns  worth 
of  money,  besides  jewels,  plate,  and  furniture, 
squandered  most  of  it  in  gambling  and  de- 
bauchery. The  wretches  could  not  carry  their 
booty  with  them,  so,  in  order  to  keep  their 
gold,  they  had  much  of  it  melted  up  into  sword 
hilts  and  breastplates ;  but  the  goldsmiths 
showed  that  the  biters  could  be  bit,  for  they 
alloyed  the  gold  one  half  with  copper. 

This  horrible  sack  of  a  friendly  city  and 
the  murder  of  so  many  Catholics  led  to  good 
results.  It  stirred  up  England  and  her  mighty 
queen,  and  they  became  allies  of  the  Dutch. 
It  gave  the  great  statesman  William  the  oppor- 
tunity for  which  he  had  long  waited,  and  which 
he  quickly  improved.  Within  four  days,  under 
his  influence,  there  was  formed,  and  signed 
November  8,  what  is  called  the  Pacification  of 
Ghent,  which  bound  the  Netherland  provinces 
together  in  union  against  their  enemy.  Im- 
mediately there  was  great  joy  throughout  all 
the  Low  Countries.  The  seventeen  provinces 
of  the  Netherlands  were  now  united  together 

o 

as  one. 

When  Don  John  of  Austria,  the  new  com- 

2IO 


ENGLAND  HELPS  HOLLAND 

mander,  arrived,  the  Netherlanders  compelled 
him  to  accept  the  terms  of  the  new  constitu- 
tion. This  young  man  was  thirty  years  of  age 
and  had  been  at  the  battle  of  Lepanto.  Many 
people  thought  that  he  would  be  the  deliverer 
of  the  country,  but  William  of  Orange  thor- 
oughly mistrusted  him,  and  soon  he  showed 
himself  to  be  a  traitor;  for  he  seized  Namur 
by  fraud  and  force.  The  States  found  that  he 
could  not  be  trusted.  The  people  turned  to 
William  of  Orange  as  their  leader,  and  he  was 
elected  "  ruward,"  or  governor,  of  Brabant,  one 
of  the  highest  posts  of  honor  and  power  in 
the  land. 

The  Flemish  noblemen,  however,  were  very 
jealous  of  William ;  for  they  considered  him 
a  German  rather  than  a  Dutchman,  and  his 
course  offended  the  duke  of  Aarschot,  who, 
with  some  other  young  men,  had  invited  Mat- 
thias, the  archduke  of  Austria,  and  brother  of 
the  emperor  of  Germany,  to  be  the  governor 
of  the  United  Netherlands. 

The  cause  of  William  of  Orange  was  the 
cause  of  the  Dutch  people.  It  was  soon  greatly 
strengthened  by  the  queen  of  England  making 
a  treaty  with  the  Netherlands  as  an  independ- 
ent power.  She  promised  to  send  ten  thou- 
sand horse  and  five  thousand  foot  soldiers,  and 

211 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

to  supply  another  loan  of  about  half  a  million 
dollars.  Not  long  after,  in  1578,  Amsterdam 
left  the  side  of  the  king,  embraced  the  Reformed 
religion,  and  helped  the  patriot  cause.  On  the 
other  hand,  the  king  of  Spain  sent  reenforce- 
ments  under  the  control  of  the  prince  of  Parma, 
so  that  the  royalist  army  amounted  to  16,000 
infantry  and  7000  cavalry.  To  excite  the 
consciences  of  those  Catholics  who  were  Dutch 
patriots,  the  Pope  proclaimed  a  crusade  against 
the  heretics.  He  blessed  the  banner  of  Don 
John,  which  had  on  it  a  crucifix  with  the  le- 
gend, "  By  this  sign  I  have  conquered  the 
Turks,  and  by  this  sign  I  will  conquer  the 
heretics." 

William  of  Orange  stirred  up  the  congress 
to  raise  an  army  to  meet  that  of  Don  John 
and  Parma ;  but  the  states  were  slow,  being  di- 
vided by  personal  jealousy,  and  disaster  again 
visited  them.  A  battle  was  fought  at  Gem- 
blours,  in  which  the  Spaniards  killed  6000  of 
the  patriots,  though  they  lost  only  a  dozen 
themselves,  while  Parma  gained  a  great  repu- 
tation as  a  soldier. 

Moved  to  action,  the  Netherlands  states  called 
for  an  army  of  20,000  men,  but  the  condition 
of  the  country  still  continued  to  be  wretched. 
There  were  constant  quarrels  between  the 

212 


ENGLAND  HELPS  HOLLAND 

Protestants  and  Catholics,  and  the  campaign 
of  the  States'  army  yielded  nothing. 

The  root  of  the  difficulty  was  in  religion. 
The  far-seeing  William,  prince  of  Orange,  had 
long  doubted  whether  the  people  of  the  free 
churches,  which  were  governed  by  themselves, 
and  those  of  the  churches  ruled  from  Rome, 
could  or  would  work  well  together.  He  him- 

o 

self  had  been  a  Catholic,  a  Lutheran,  and  a 
Calvinist  in  succession.  But  whatever  form 
of  the  Christian  faith  he  professed,  he  would 
have  nothing  to  do  with  persecution  of  others. 
He  was  tolerant  and  believed  in  freedom  of 
conscience.  He  was  the  first  of  modern  rulers 
to  protect  the  Anabaptists,  whom  other  rulers 
were  torturing  or  murdering.  He  wondered 
why  good  men  did  not  believe  with  himself  in 
soul  liberty. 

He  now  began  to  plan  a  new  and  more  per- 
fect union  of  those  states  which  had  most  fully 
and  heartily  accepted  the  principles  of  the 
Reformation.  With  the  help  of  his  brother, 
John  of  Nassau,  he  secured  a  federation  of  the 
seven  northern  provinces  of  the  Netherlands, 
in  which,  since  the  majority  of  the  people  were 
of  the  Reformed  faith,  toleration  for  all  kinds 
of  belief  might  be  secured. 

The  delegates  assembled  for  conference  at 

213 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

Utrecht,  and  after  long  discussion  the  federa- 
tion of  the  states  was  accomplished.  This  was 
the  celebrated  Union  of  Utrecht,  signed  Janu- 
ary 23,  1579,  by  which  the  United  States  of  the 
Netherlands  came  into  being,  with  a  written 
constitution,  and  under  the  red,  white,  and  blue 
flag,  a  union  that  was  to  last  for  over  two  hun- 
dred years,  and  on  which  the  Dutch  republic 
was  to  be  built.  This  event  is  a  landmark  in 
the  history  of  freedom ;  for  it  exerted  a  power- 
ful influence  in  the  making  of  the  English 
commonwealth  and  the  American  republic. 

On  the  military  side,  the  cause  of  freedom 
made  slow  progress.  Maastricht  was  besieged 
and  taken  by  the  Spaniards.  Renneburg,  the 
stadholder  of  Friesland,  in  1580,  turned  traitor 
and  joined  the  ranks  of  the  enemy.  He  was 
the  Arnold  of  the  Dutch  cause.  Yet  the  king 
of  Spain  did  not  keep  his  promises,  and  the 
foolish  and  wicked  man,  Renneburg,  lost  doubly 
by  this  perfidy.  There  was  an  insurrection  of 
the  Frisian  peasantry  against  the  state  troops, 
who  were  brutal,  exacting,  and  licentious. 
These  peasants  carried  as  a  banner  the  half  of 
an  egg  shell,  to  show  that  they  had  nothing  to 
fight  for  but  a  shell ;  for  they  had  been  robbed 
of  everything  else.  The  active  Spaniards  be- 
sieged Steenwijk  and  captured  Breda. 

214 


ENGLAND  HELPS  HOLLAND 

The  prince  of  Parma  blockaded  Cambrai, 
which  was  soon  in  desperate  straits  for  pro- 
visions. One  historian  tells  of  a  wedding  feast 
given  there  during  the  siege.  This,  in  the  first 
course,  was  a  salad  dressed  with  vinegar,  with- 
out oil  or  salt.  Next  came  a  dish  of  hash, 
made  of  horse  flesh,  which  was  set  at  the  top 
of  the  table,  while  at  the  bottom  was  the  boiled 
joint  of  an  ass.  In  the  middle  were  roasts  of 
horse  rib  on  one  side  and  two  roasted  cats  on 
the  other,  with  a  potpie  made  of  cats  in  the 
middle.  The  dessert  was  radishes  and  onions, 
without  salt.  Yet  Parma  did  not  take  Cam- 
brai and  had  to  retreat ;  for  the  duke  of  Anjou 
had  come  from  France  to  its  relief,  and  to  him 
the  states  of  the  Netherlands  had  offered  the 
countship,  or  sovereignty. 

Hitherto  the  states  had  issued  their  com- 
missions to  their  officers  in  the  name  of  the 
king  of  Spain ;  but  being  convinced  that  he 
would  never  grant  liberty  of  conscience,  they 
dropped  the  fiction  and  faced  the  reality.  In 
July,  1581,  the  United  Netherlands  published 
their  declaration  of  independence.  They  de- 
posed Philip,  and  declared  themselves  sov- 
ereign states.  They  resolved  never  again  to 
come  under  the  control  of  the  Spanish  mon- 
arch, no  matter  what  should  happen.  Besides 

215 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

a  defeat  of  the  Dutch  troops  and  allies  under 
the  English  commander,  Sir  John  Norris,  Wil- 
liam of  Orange  lost  this  year  the  services  of 
his  spy  in  Madrid,  who,  as  secretary  of  the 
king  of  Spain,  had  for  ten  years  supplied  him 
with  secret  information.  This  man,  Andreas, 
was  discovered,  tried,  and  condemned.  Each 
of  his  hands  and  legs  was  tied  to  a  wild  horse. 
The  four  animals  were  then  driven  with  w7hips, 
and  the  unfortunate  sufferer  was  pulled  to 
pieces. 

While  the  duke  of  Anjou  was  being  installed 
at  Antwerp  as  duke  of  Brabant,  February  18, 
1582,  an  attempt  was  made  to  assassinate  Wil- 
liam of  Orange.  This  was  but  one  of  several 
efforts  to  get  the  Dutch  leader  out  of  the  way. 
The  fanatic  fired  a  pistol  into  William's  face, 
being  so  near  that  the  skin  was  burned.  The 
bullet  went  into  the  jaw,  but  William  recovered. 
The  assassin,  who  was  a  Spaniard  twenty-three 
years  old,  was  instantly  put  to  death.  During 
William's  illness  he  was  tenderly  nursed  by 
his  wife,  Charlotte  of  Bourbon,  a  lady  of  very 
romantic  history,  who  died  soon  after  her  hus- 
band recovered,  the  shock  being  too  great  for 
her.  She  left  six  daughters,  all  of  whom  grew 
up  to  be  good  and  noble  women,  and  prin- 
cesses of  fame. 

216 


ENGLAND  HELPS  HOLLAND 

The  poor  Netherlands  were  still  in  a  sad 
plight ;  for  while  Philip  prepared  to  push  the 
war  with  greater  vigor,  the  soldiers  of  Anjou 
harmed  rather  than  helped  the  cause  of  free- 
dom. At  Antwerp,  on  January  18,  1583,  there 
was  a  "  French  fury ;  "  that  is,  the  French  sol- 
diers rushed  into  the  city  expecting  to  kill, 
burn,  and  rob,  as  the  Spaniards  had  already 
done  before  them ;  but  in  this  case  the  citizens 
acted  with  such  energy  and  defended  them- 
selves so  bravely,  that  the  whole  affair  miser- 
ably failed.  By  this  time,  the  Dutchmen  had 
had  enough  of  foreign  help.  They  were  tired 
of  seeking  princes  from  other  lands,  and  dis- 
gusted with  them.  From  this  day  forth,  they 
depended  upon  themselves,  raising  up  both 
soldiers  and  rulers  at  home. 

But  just  when  they  were  about  to  decide  to 
make  William  of  Orange,  who  had  long  de- 
clined the  honor,  count  of  Holland,  in  place 
of  their  deposed  prince,  Philip  of  Spain,  the 
great  man  was  slain  by  an  assassin.  Balthazar 
Gerard,  a  young  man  only  twenty-six  years 
old,  pretending  to  be  the  son  of  a  martyr  of 
the  Reformed  faith,  secured  entrance  into  the 
chamber  of  William,  in  Delft,  and  actually 
got  from  him  some  money.  With  this  he 
bought  two  pistols,  loading  one  with  three  bul- 

217 


HISTORY    OF   HOLLAND 

lets.  The  next  day,  July  10,  1584,  coming  to 
get  his  passport,  he  fired  at  the  prince  just 
after  he  had  risen  from  the  dinner  table  and 
was  mounting  the  stairway,  and  killed  him. 
The  assassin  was  put  to  death  with  horrible 
tortures,  such  as  are  now  employed  only  by 
savages,  but  which  were  then  used  by  all  Eu- 
ropean nations. 

William  was  buried  with  unique  honors  in 
the  great  church  at  Delft,  in  which  all  the 
princes  of  the  house  of  Orange  have  since 
been  laid,  and  where  to-day  his  splendid  tomb 
may  be  seen.  He  was  the  fourth  of  the  five 
sons  of  his  mother,  w7ho,  for  their  adopted 
country,  had  poured  out  blood  as  well  as  for- 
tune. William  had  been  four  times  married. 
His  first  wife  was  Anne  of  Egmont ;  his  sec- 
ond, Anne  of  Saxony ;  his  third,  Charlotte  de 
Bourbon ;  and  his  fourth,  Louise  de  Coligny. 
At  his  death,  he  left  ten  daughters  and  three 
sons.  Of  the  latter,  one  had  been  kept  in 
Spain  and  made  a  Jesuit,  Maurice  was  the 
young  general,  and  the  baby,  Frederick  Henry, 
lived  to  become  the  stadholder.  William's 
great  and  good  wife,  who  survived  him,  Louise 
de  Coligny,  brought  up  her  own  son,  Frederick 
Henry,  and  married  all  the  daughters  into 

princely  houses,  so  that  the  blood  of  William 

218 


ENGLAND  HELPS  HOLLAND 

the  Silent  runs  in  the  veins  of  nearly  all  the 
royal  families  of  Europe,  making  a  most  won- 
derful "  Orange  tree." 

o 

William  was  the  leader  of  the  great  popular 
movement  which  brought  independence  of 
Spain  and  secured  the  rise  of  the  Dutch  Re- 
public. He  has  always  been  called  Pater 
Patriae,  the  Father  of  his  Country,  or  the 
Father  of  the  Fatherland.  All  over  the  Nether- 
lands, the  friends  of  Spain  celebrated  the 
assassination  with  joy,  and  kindled  bonfires  to 
show  their  delight.  At  Bois  le  Due,  in  the 
morning,  the  priests  sang  a  Te  Deum,  but  at 
night  the  lightning  struck  the  church  belfry 
and  destroyed  it,  the  rest  of  the  town  being 
unhurt.  It  is  one  of  the  strange  things  in  his- 
tory that  sweet  and  tender  hymns  of  praise  to 
God,  like  the  Te  Deum,  should  be  so  often 
chosen  to  celebrate  murder  and  bloodshed  and 
the  triumph  of  force  and  fraud. 

The  Spaniards  thought  that  now  the  Dutch, 
having  lost  their  leader,  would  yield,  but  in- 
stead of  this,  they  began  to  improve  their  army 
and  to  fight  more  earnestly.  The  statesman, 
John  of  Barneveldt,  was  especially  active  in 
providing  money  and  supplies.  Under  the 
new  treaty  made  with  England,  Queen  Eliza- 
beth sent  over,  late  in  1585,  a  large  fleet  and 

219 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

army,  with  the  earl  of  Leicester  as  governor- 
general  of  the  English  forces.  His  arrival  at 
Flushing  was  celebrated  with  great  splendor. 

Parma  besieged  Antwerp,  then  under  com- 
mand of  Marnix,  and  by  building  a  bridge 
across  the  river  Scheldt,  succeeded  after  some 
months  in  capturing  the  once  rich  city.  He 
made  his  triumphal  entry  on  August  30,  1585. 
After  this,  the  Belgian  provinces  became  obedi- 
ent to  the  king  of  Spain,  and  henceforth  took 
no  further  part  in  the  struggle  for  liberty. 
Antwerp  lost  its  best  citizens,  mostly  men  of 
the  Reformed  faith,  who  emigrated  to  England 
or  went  to  live  in  Holland,  so  that  Amsterdam 
soon  became  the  richest  city  in  Europe. 

The  English  earl  of  Leicester  made  himself 
very  unpopular  in  the  Netherlands.  His  fail- 
ures were  more  frequent  than  his  successes, 
and  his  blunders  were  very  disastrous.  Soon 
there  were  quarrels  between  him  and  his  sover- 
eign, and  between  him  and  the  States-General. 
At  Warnsveld,  near  Zutphen,  the  popular 
knight  and  scholarly  soldier,  Sir  Philip  Sidney, 
was  wounded,  and  afterwards  died  in  the  same 
year,  1586,  which  saw  the  decease  of  Cardinal 
Granvelle  and  the  parents  of  Parma.  Sluys 
was  besieged  and  Leicester  was  recalled. 

For  years  the  great  Spanish  Armada  had 

220 


ENGLAND  HELPS  HOLLAND 

been  preparing  to  invade  England,  conquer  its 
people,  and  annex  the  country  to  Spain.  The 
army  of  the  duke  of  Parma  was  to  cooperate 
with  this  fleet,  land,  and  govern  England ;  but 
Parma  had  no  ships,  only  boats,  and  these 
were  blockaded  by  the  Water  Beggars,  so  that 
they  could  not  get  out  to  cross  the  channel. 
The  Invincible  Armada  was  destroyed  in  Brit- 
ish waters  in  1588,  many  of  the  Dutch  ships 
assisting  the  English,  and  Spain  was  again 
humbled.  Parma  could  not  even  invade  Hol- 
land ;  for  just  when  he  had  his  soldiers  ready 
to  do  so,  they  broke  out  into  mutiny.  The 
Dutch  and  English,  uniting  together,  sent  a 
fleet  southward  to  "  singe  the  king  of  Spain's 
beard,"  and  captured  Lisbon  in  Portugal. 


221 


CHAPTER   XXIV 

PRINCE    MAURICE    THE    UNION   GENERAL 

THE  young  Prince  Maurice,  first  son  of  William 
of  Orange,  was  made  captain-general  of  the 
union  of  the  states.  He  began  his  brilliant 
career  in  1590,  by  capturing  Breda  through  a 
stratagem.  Picking  out  sixty-eight  brave  boys 
and  young  men,  he  packed  them  under  the 
deck  of  a  loaded  turf-boat.  The  vessel  was 
brought  by  the  master  up  to  the  walls  of  the 
city.  Then  the  Spanish  soldiers  took  hold  of 
the  rope  and  pulled  the  craft  along  the  canal 
into  the  city.  It  being  very  cold,  the  turf  was 
much  wanted,  so  that  part  of  the  cargo  was 
unloaded  very  fast.  At  dark,  the  skipper,  giv- 
ing the  soldiers  some  money  for  drink,  bade 
them  good-evening,  telling  them  to  come  in 
the  morning.  At  midnight,  the  brave  Dutch- 
men crept  out  noiselessly,  seized  the  citadel, 
and  signaled  to  the  Dutch  and  English  troops 
outside.  These  were  soon  thundering  at  the 
gates,  and  the  town  was  captured.  Barneveldt, 
who  suggested  the  enterprise,  was  handsomely 
rewarded. 

222 


PRINCE   MAURICE   THE   UNION  GENERAL 

The  young  soldier,  Maurice,  was  made  stad- 
holder.  He  was  not  a  great  statesman,  like  his 
father,  but  he  was  a  much  more  skillful  soldier 
and  engineer.  William  had  never  won  a  battle. 
Maurice  was  to  be  victor  in  many  of  them.  He 
had  the  invaluable  assistance  of  the  civilian, 
John  of  Barneveldt,  one  of  the  greatest  states- 
men in  all  the  history  of  Holland.  Working 
together  hand  in  hand,  the  man  of  the  sword 
and  the  man  of  the  pen  created  a  native  army 
which  became  the  finest  in  Europe.  These 
soldiers  of  the  republic  were  not  aliens,  fight- 
ing for  pay,  but  young  and  brave  patriots  full 
of  zeal  and  hope  for  their  country.  They  were 
well  clothed,  well  fed,  and  moral  in  their  habits 
of  life.  They  were  governed  by  a  code  which 
required  strict  obedience  to  the  laws  of  God 
and  man.  As  they  received  their  wages  regu- 
larly, there  were  no  mutinies  in  the  Dutch 
army,  nor  anything  like  the  disgraceful  scenes 
from  which  even  the  friends  of  the  Spaniards 
suffered.  This  code  of  military  laws  was  after- 
wards borrowed,  with  improvements,  for  use  in 
Virginia,  and  under  Governor  Dale  made  the 
settlement  of  Jamestown  a  success.  It  also 
became  a  basis  of  the  new  model  army  in 
the  English  Commonwealth,  under  which  the 


223 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

soldiers  of  Lord  Fairfax  and  Cromwell  were 
trained. 

Money  is  the  sinews  of  war.  No  nation  can 
have  or  hold  very  long  a  good  army,  unless  the 
war  chest  is  kept  full.  To  get  coin  by  borrow- 
ing, there  must  first  be  credit.  To  raise  cash 
from  the  people,  there  must  be  a  good  system 
of  taxes.  Barneveldt  was  the  great  and  wise 
statesman  who  kept  up  the  credit  of  Holland. 
He  carefully  calculated  what  the  people  were 
able  to  pay.  Almost  everything  was  taxed  — 
houses,  lands,  horses,  dogs,  carriages,  chim- 
neys, and  windows,  besides  beer,  wine,  tobacco, 
starch,  and  other  luxuries  and  necessities.  In 
the  main,  the  people  paid  their  taxes  cheer- 
fully, because  they  themselves  had  voted  them. 
It  is  astonishing  what  a  large  revenue  was 
raised  from  starch,  but  all  kinds  of  ruffs,  cuffs, 
quilted  linen,  wide,  flat  collars,  caps  and  capes, 
aprons,  and  everything  that  could  show  a  glis- 
tening, snow-white  surface  were  in  fashion,  and 
the  Dutch  had  more  underclothing,  better  laun- 
dries, and  used  more  soap  and  water  than  any 
other  people  in  Europe. 

There  was  not  much  fighting  in  the  open, 
but  a  great  deal  was  done  by  means  of  sieges 
and  defense.  War  became  more  a  matter  of 

science  and  mathematics.    Campaigns  seemed 

224 


PRINCE   MAURICE   THE   UNION   GENERAL 

rather  like  games  of  chess,  in  which  the  walled 
cities  stood  for  so  many  pieces,  to  be  moved  on 
or  off  the  board.  In  the  whole  of  the  Nether- 
lands, in  the  time  of  Alva,  there  were  208 
walled  cities,  150  chartered  towns,  and  6300 
villages,  with  their  watch  towers  and  steeples, 
besides  many  more  hamlets.  To  guard  the 
country,  there  were  sixty  great  fortresses.  Yet 
it  must  be  remembered  that  the  greater  popu- 
lation and  the  larger  number  of  cities  were  in 
the  southern,  or  Belgic  Netherlands,  and  that 
the  seven  Dutch  united  states,  formed  by  the 
Union  of  Utrecht,  did  not  have,  all  together,  a 
million  people.  Probably  there  were  not  as 
many  as  fifty  walled  cities,  though  among  these 
latter  were  some  very  strong  fortresses. 

The  usual  method  in  war,  when  Maurice 
first  took  command,  was  for  an  army  to  invest 
a  city,  dig  intrenchments,  and  set  up  lines  of 
fortifications,  making  forts  with  earth  walls 
or  redoubts  of  sandbags.  Gabions,  made  by 
weaving  osiers  or  the  branches  of  trees  around 
poles  —  high,  hollow  structures,  looking  like 
baskets  —  were  much  used.  These  were  filled 
with  earth  and  the  cannon  posted  behind  them. 
After  the  artillery  had  pounded  the  walls  and 
made  a  breach,  an  assault  was  ordered,  and  the 

town  was  Stormed.    Ladders,  hooks,  and  ropes 

225 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

having  been  made  ready,  the  nimble  men  scaled 
parts  of  the  walls,  usually  at  an  angle,  while 
the  most  of  the  garrison  were  massed  at  the 
breach,  to  resist  the  main  attack.  The  gates 
once  opened,  the  cavalry  rushed  in. 

Maurice,  by  using  new  plans,  developed  the 
art  of  war.  His  cannon,  both  for  field  and 
siege,  were  heavier  than  had  been  known  be- 

O     ' 

fore,  and  his  work  was  more  speedy.  In  a  bril- 
liant and  successful  campaign  of  five  months, 
in  1591,  he  captured  Zutphen,  Deventer,  Hulst, 
Nymegen,  beside  Delfzyl  and  many  smaller 
forts.  Then,  as  the  winter  rains  were  coming 
on  and  Barneveldt  was  ill,  he  put  his  troops 
into  comfortable  quarters  and  went  to  The 
Hague.  There  he  was  welcomed  by  the  peo- 
ple with  the  highest  joy.  Maurice  had  taken 
for  his  blazon  a  young  sapling  growing  from 
beside  the  stump  of  a  tree,  which  had  been  cut 
down,  with  the  motto,  "  At  length  the  sprout 
becomes  the  tree."  All  the  people  felt  that  the 
promise  had  been  redeemed,  and  the  prophecy 
fulfilled. 

The  next  year,  1592,  the  same  in  which  the 
duke  of  Parma  died,  Maurice  captured  Steen- 
wijk  and  Coevorden.  In  1593,  the  famous  siege 
and  capture  of  Geertruydenburg  took  place, 
and  following  this  the  city  of  Groningen.  In 

226 


THE  NEW 

PUBLIC  LIB; 


TILL 


COEVORDEN 


PRINCE   MAURICE   THE   UNION   GENERAL 

1597  he  gained  a  brilliant  victory  at  Turnhout, 
and  then  captured  a  line  of  forts,  one  after  an- 
other, at  Aplen,  Thynberg,  Meurs,  Grol,  etc. 
In  this  campaign,  the  youngest  son  of  William 
of  Orange,  Frederick  Henry,  though  only  thir- 
teen years  of  age,  took  part.  Then  still  another 
line  of  fortresses  fell  into  his  hands. 

Various  attempts  were  made  by  different 
envoys  to  bring  about  peace  between  Spain 
and  the  Netherlands,  but  the  Dutch  insisted 
on  freedom  of  conscience,  which  the  Spanish 
king  would  not  grant.  When  in  the  Belgian, 
or  southern  provinces,  a  woman  was  put  to 
death  by  being  buried  alive  for  heresy,  which 
meant  being  a  Protestant,  the  detestation  and 
horror  of  the  Spanish  system  increased. 

Meanwhile  the  Dutch,  beginning  with  Com- 
mander Houtman  in  1595,  sent  their  explorers 
into  all  parts  of  the  world  and  opened  the  com- 
merce of  Java,  the  Spice  Islands,  and  the  Far 
East.  One  day,  while  Maurice  was  before  his 
camp  at  Grave,  in  1602,  two  envoys  from  the 
Malay  state  of  Atjeh  came  to  him,  bringing 
presents  and  asking  for  his  friendship.  Soon 
the  Japanese  and  Chinese  became  regular  and 
profitable  customers.  They  did  not  care  for 
butter  or  cheese,  with  which  the  Dutch  at  first 

tried  them,  but   they  were  glad  to  exchange 

227 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

their  silk,  tea,  and  metals  for  Dutch  manufac- 
tures. The  Dutch  prospered  in  the  trade,  mak- 
ing from  the  spices  and  fruits,  gems  and  gold, 
and  various  products,  millions  of  guilders,  by 
which  they  could  keep  up  their  army  and  navy. 
Thus  they  were  enabled  to  pay  their  great  war 
debts  as  they  went  along,  and  to  win  their 
Asiatic  empire  of  Insulinde,  or  Island  India. 

The  States-General  became  so  exultant  over 
their  brightening  prospects  that  the  invasion 
of  Flanders  was  determined  upon.  Maurice 
did  not  believe  this  was  the  thing  to  be 
done ;  but,  like  a  good  soldier,  he  obeyed.  At 
Newport,  July  i,  1600,  he  won  a  tremendous 
victory  over  the  enemy.  It  was  a  stoutly  con- 
tested conflict  in  the  open  field,  with  infantry, 
cavalry,  and  artillery,  the  English  allies  taking 
a  noble  part  in  it.  Over  one  hundred  battle 
flags,  taken  from  the  Spaniards,  were  hung  up 
in  the  great  Hall  of  the  Knights,  at  The  Hague, 
where  the  States-General  met. 

Notwithstanding  the  glory  of  this  great  vic- 
tory of  the  republican  army,  trouble  arose  at 
this  time,  which  continued  for  many  years,  be- 
tween the  young  general  and  the  older  states- 
man Barneveldt.  Maurice  was  often  obliged 

o 

to  take  orders  from  his  civilian  superiors  that 

were  against  his  judgment  as  a  soldier,  and  by 

228 

*j  —  o 


PRINCE   MAURICE   THE   UNION   GENERAL 

obeying  them,  he  failed  to  win  the  victories 
which  he  believed  he  could  gain  if  left  to  carry 
out  his  own  ideas. 

A  town  on  the  seashore  named  Ostend  was 
besieged  by  the  enemy,  and  thousands  of  men 
were  slaughtered.  It  seemed  hardly  worth 
while  to  waste  so  many  human  lives  and  so 
much  money  on  this  wretched  little  fishing  vil- 
lage among  the  sandhills.  First  surrounded 
with  palisades  and  a  wooden  gate  to  keep  sol- 
diers from  marching  through  it,  it  was  gradually 
fortified  by  William  of  Orange,  until  it  became 
one  of  the  strong  places  of  the  Netherlands, 
and  in  1601  it  had  a  garrison  of  five  thousand 
men.  A  siege  was  then  begun  by  the  Span- 
iards. For  three  years,  from  1601  to  1604,  fight- 
ing went  on,  with  an  enormous  loss  on  both 
sides ;  for  the  Zeeland  patriots  from  the  outside 
were  able  to  supply  the  garrison  with  plenty  of 
bread,  beef,  beer,  fish,  and  vegetables.  The  be- 
siegers poured  in  storms  of  cannon  balls  and 
red-hot  shot,  but  the  townspeople  covered  their 
houses  with  sod,  making  them  fireproof  against 
the  red-hot  balls.  Bomb  shells,  which  were 
new  inventions,  first  made  in  1587,  by  a  man 
in  Venlo,  were  rained  in  ;  but  as  each  month 
passed  by,  the  place  seemed  fresher  and 
stronger  than  ever. 

229 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

The  States-General  resolved  that  the  defense 
should  be  continued,  no  matter  how  many  years 
it  might  be  necessary ;  for  their  purpose  was  to 
keep  the  Spanish  army  employed  at  Ostend, 
so  that  they  would  not  invade  the  Netherlands. 
Consequently,  the  siege  continued  for  nearly 
four  years.  When  surrender  was  made,  the 
garrison  marched  out  with  the  honors  of  war. 

o 

The  Spaniards  entered  it  at  last,  to  find  no- 
thing but  ruins.  Four  million  guilders  and  fifty 
thousand  men  had  been  spent  by  the  Dutch, 
and  more  by  the  Spaniards.  It  was  a  long 
while  before  the  town  was  built  up  again.  To- 
day it  is  a  bright  and  smiling  watering-place, 
where  children  play  in  the  sand,  and  multitudes 
who  love  fun  rest,  bathe,  chat,  and  enjoy  them- 
selves. 

At  sea  the  Dutch  sailors  won  as  many  naval 
victories  as  the  soldiers  on  land,  so  that  at  last 
the  king  of  Spain  (not  Philip  II.,  who  had  died 
in  1598,  but  Philip  III.)  sent  envoys  to  talk  of 
peace.  Met  by  Maurice  and  the  Dutch  en- 
voys, and  riding  in  sleighs  over  the  frozen 
canals,  the  Spaniards  came  to  The  Hague  as 
guests  and  sat  as  friends  in  council  with  their 

o 

late  enemies. 

A  truce  for  twelve  years  was  agreed  upon. 
During  this  time,  from  1609  to  1621,  there  was 

to  be  no  fighting. 

230 


PRINCE   MAURICE   THE   UNION   GENERAL 

With  a  dozen  years  of  uninterrupted  com- 
merce in  view,  a  great  revival  of  business  and 
manufactures  began.  Many  Walloons,  or  peo- 
ple from  the  southern  or  Belgian  Netherlands, 
not  liking  Spanish  or  priestly  rule,  settled  in 
Holland.  Thousands  of  Englishmen,  not  en- 
joying life  under  King  James  I.,  were  attracted 
to  the  republic.  They  came  to  make  money, 
to  study  in  the  universities,  to  print  books,  as 
they  were  free  to  do,  or  to  worship  God  in  the 
way  they  desired.  Among  these  people,  mostly 
from  the  eastern  counties,  were  many  from 
London,  and  even  from  the  Yorkshire,  Notting- 
ham, and  Lincolnshire  region,  who  afterwards 
became  the  founders  and  settlers  of  New  Eng- 
land. 

Holland's  enemies  had  agreed  to  the  truce 
because  they  were  hoping  that  the  Dutch 
would,  as  soon  as  they  were  free  from  a  foreign 
war,  fight  and  quarrel  among  themselves,  and 
thus  tear  each  other  to  pieces.  They  knew  that 
Maurice  and  Barneveldt  had  disagreed,  and 
that  the  Christians  called  Calvinists  and  Ar- 
minians  wasted  no  love  on  each  other. 

The  Spaniards  were  partly  right.  As  poli- 
tics and  religion  were  still  mixed  together,  as 
in  the  older  time,  the  quarrel  broke  out  only 

too  soon.    There  were  many  Dutch  people  who 

231 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

held  that  "  the  Christian  religion  "  meant  only 
that  form  of  it  which  Calvin  had  taught;  but 
a  minority  thought  that  their  kind  of  Chris- 
tianity, which  Professor  Arminius  defended, 
was  the  best.  Religiously,  the  parties  came  to 
be  known  as  Remonstrants  or  Arminians,  and 
Contra-Remonstrants  or  Calvinists. 

Politically,  there  was  the  feeling  among  some 
that  Maurice  wanted  to  be  king,  while  the 
partisans  of  Maurice  thought  that  Barneveldt 
and  his  party  favored  Spain,  and  were  receiv- 
ing presents  in  gold  from  Philip  III.  The 
proud  and  wealthy  city  people,  who  held  most 
of  the  offices,  seemed  to  be  on  one  side  with 
Barneveldt,  while  the  military  men,  and  most 
of  the  common  people,  seemed  to  be  on  the 
other  with  Maurice.  A  great  many  hard  names 
were  called  and  bitter  feelings  gendered.  The 
parties  seemed  to  be  anti-Orange  and  Orange, 
or,  as  the  Orange  partisans  put  it  in  Dutch, 
"  Spanje  Oranje  "  —  Spain  or  Orange ! 

As  passions  waxed  hotter,  some  of  the  states 
and  cities  began  to  raise  militia  and  to  build 
forts.  This  stirred  up  Maurice,  the  stadholder 
and  captain-general,  who,  with  the  union  army, 
changed  many  of  the  city  governments,  and 
compelled  the  militia  to  lay  down  their  arms. 

At  one  time  it  looked  as  though  there  would 

232 


PRINCE   MAURICE   THE   UNION   GENERAL 

be  a  secession  of  the  two  richest  states,  Hol- 
land and  Utrecht,  from  the  union.  In  1600 
Groningen  had  refused  to  pay  its  taxes  and 
furnish  its  share  of  soldiers,  and  had  nullified 
the  national  law.  Then  the  Congress,  or  States- 
General,  had  sent  union  soldiers  to  coerce  the 
state,  and  the  danger  of  secession  passed  by. 
Now,  in  1618,  in  much  the  same  form,  a  greater 
danger  confronted  the  nation.  Barneveldt, 
Grotius  the  great  lawyer  and  scholar,  and 
Hoogerbeets,  pensionary  of  Rotterdam,  were 
arrested  and  imprisoned. 

To  settle  the  religious  questions,  a  national 
synod  was  called  by  the  States-General,  which 
was  held  at  Dordrecht  in  1618  and  1619.  It 
is  sometimes  called  the  First  Protestant  Ecu- 
menical Council.  This  was  made  up  of  sixty- 
six  delegates  from  various  Reformed  countries. 
The  Arminians  were  not  present  as  members, 
but  were  cited  to  appear  as  offenders.  After 
1 54  sessions,  lasting  through  six  months,  from 
November  13,  1618,  to  May  6,  1619,  the  doc- 
trinal statements  of  the  Reformed  religion  in 
the  Netherlands  were  fixed.  The  Arminians 
were  condemned,  but  the  salaries  of  their  minis- 
ters were  paid,  and  they  were  treated  well  when 
they  did  not  resist. 

This  "  Synod  of  Dort "  also  did  a  good  deal 

233 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

to  improve  popular  education  and  ordered  a 
new  translation  of  the  Bible  to  be  made.  This, 
called  the  "  States-General  Version,"  is  still  the 
standard  one  in  Dutch,  being  one  of  the  very 
best  ever  made  in  any  European  language.  It 
is  used  by  the  boers,  or  farmers,  and  the  peo- 
ple generally,  throughout  the  Netherlands,  and 
is  the  one  book  above  all  others  amonor  the 

o 

Boers  of  South  Africa  and  the  Dutch  colonists 
everywhere. 

Nevertheless,  the  synod  was  almost  entirely 
under  political  influence.  It  was  arranged  and 
directed  by  politicians.  Five  days  after  its  ad- 
journment, May  13,  1619,  Barneveldt  was  con- 
demned to  death.  He  was  beheaded  in  the 
Binnen  Hof  at  The  Hague.  Grotius,  impris- 
oned at  the  castle  of  Loevenstein,  got  free  by 
a  clever  stratagem  of  his  wife.  She  took  his 

o 

place  at  the  table,  \vith  his  manuscripts,  while 
he  was  packed  into  a  big  box,  which  had  been 
used  from  time  to  time  for  brin^in^  in  and 

o      o 

carrying  out  books.  Although  he  was  nearly 
smothered  while  in  the  chest,  he  got  safely  to 
Gorkum,  a  half  hour's  sail  distant  down  the 
river,  and  thence  traveled  to  Paris.  There  he 
wrote  that  wonderful  book,  on  war  and  peace 
and  the  laws  of  nations,  which  first  roused  the 
conscience  of  the  civilized  world,  and  which 

234 


THE    GREAT   SYN< 


!)D  OF   DORT 


THE    NEW    YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


ASTOR,  LENOX  AND 

TILDEN  FOUNDATIONS. 

C  I- 


PRINCE   MAURICE   THE   UNION   GENERAL 

has  probably  done  more  public  good  among 
nations  than  any  other  book  except  the  Bible. 
'Jt  was  one  of  the  results  of  Grotius's  work 
that  the  International  Peace  Congress  was 
held  at  The  Hague.  At  Delft  a  monument 
and  statue  of  Grotius  show  how  his  country- 
men now  honor  him.  On  the  4th  of  July, 
1899,  the  United  States,  by  order  of  the  gov- 
ernment at  Washington,  laid  a  costly  wreath 
upon  his  grave  in  the  great  church,  and  cele- 
brated his  work  by  appropriate  exercises,  in- 
cluding worship,  oration,  and  a  public  dinner 
in  the  city  hall. 

The  war  broke  out  again  in  1621,  and 
Spinola,  the  new  Spanish  commander,  laid 
siege  to  Bergen-op-Zoon,  but  Maurice  enlarged 
the  garrison  and  Spinola  retreated.  When 
the  Spanish  silver  fleet  from  the  West  Indies 
reached  Spain  and  .there  was  more  money  to 
pay  the  army,  Spinola  laid  siege  to  Breda, 
while  Maurice  was  busy  in  other  places.  Bar- 
neveldt  was  no  longer  living  to  furnish  the 

o  o 

ready  money  to  keep  the  Dutch  war  chest 
full.  Maurice  found  it  hard  work  to  get  what 
he  had  lost,  —  not  only  popularity,  but  also 
some  of  his  former  skill.  Disappointed  and 
vexed,  he  died  in  1625.  He  was  never  mar- 
ried. Maurice  was  one  of  the  ablest  generals 

235 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

of  Europe,  but  was  not  a  man  of  pure  life,  and 
there  is  to-day  in  Holland  no  monument  to 
his  memory. 

It  was  in  the  time  of  the  great  truce, 
1609-1621,  and  around  the  historic  figures  of 
Maurice  and  Barneveldt,  that  the  two  politi- 
cal parties  formed  which  have  existed  to  the 
present  time  in  the  Netherlands.  They  pre- 
serve the  balance  of  power  held  by  the  national 
government  at  the  centre  and  locally  in  the 
provinces,  or  between  the  union  and  the  sepa- 
rate states,  the  king  and  the  people. 


236 


CHAPTER  XXV 

THE    BLOOM    OF   THE    REPUBLIC 

ALTHOUGH  Prince  Maurice,  the  mighty  gen- 
eral, was  dead,  and  Spain  was  still  determined 
to  fight  and  subdue  them,  the  Dutch  people 
were  quite  happy.  This  period,  the  middle  of 
the  seventeenth  century,  stands  out  as  one  of 
the  most  glorious  in  their  history,  and  the 
Dutch  call  it  "  our  golden  era."  It  was  a  time 
of  discoveries,  inventions,  and  fine  art.  Com- 
merce was  flourishing  and  luxury  abounded. 
The  Bank  of  Amsterdam,  one  of  the  first  in 
northern  Europe,  was  established.  Besides 
the  herring  fisheries,  there  was  great  wealth 
gained  in  hunting  the  whale.  During  the 
summer  months  of  the  year,  a  Dutch  city, 
well  called  Smeerenburg,  for  it  was  a  greasy 
place,  with  nearly  ten  thousand  persons,  ex- 
isted on  Spitzbergen,  the  islands  of  the  pointed 
hills,  so  named  by  the  Dutch.  The  red,  white, 
and  blue  flag  floated  on  all  seas.  The  bold 
explorers  and  daring  sailors  were  in  all  the 
oceans,  railing  to  the  East  Indies  and  trying 

237 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

to  find  a  passage  thither  around  the  north  of 
Europe  or  America,  discovering  Cape  Horn 
and  the  Hudson  river,  while  the  great  trading- 
corporation  called  the  West  India  Company, 
jestingly  called  "  John  Company,"  formed  in 
1602,  was  making  fortunes  for  its  stockholders. 
The  East  India  Company  was  even  more  suc- 
cessful, enriching  those  who  held  stock  in  it, 
and  building  up  a  great  colonial  empire,  now 
called  Insulinde,  or  Island  India,  in  which 
dwell  thirty-five  million  subjects  of  the  queen 
of  the  Netherlands. 

Before  he  died,  Maurice  had  seen  the  mar- 
riage of  his  brother  and  companion,  Fred- 
erick Henry,  now  become  stadholder,  to  a  very 
lovely  and  capable  woman,  Amalia  Van  Solms. 
Frederick  took  the  field,  at  the  head  of  his 
army,  in  1627,  and  won  a  brilliant  victory  by 
capturing  Grol.  Breda  had  surrendered  to  the 
Spaniards,  but  then  they  were  so  exhausted 
that  they  could  do  little  against  the  Dutch, 
and  after  a  while  Breda  was  recaptured.  The 
year  1632  was  a  brilliant  one  for  Frederick 
Henry.  In  1639  Tromp  destroyed  the  new 
Spanish  fleet.  In  1645  Hulst  was  taken.  The 
Spaniards  were  now  anxious  for  peace. 

During  this  golden  era,  the  Dutch  artists 

were  painting  those  great  pictures  that  still  de- 

238 


THE  BLOOM   OF   THE   REPUBLIC 

light  the  world.  Rembrandt  and  Franz  Hals, 
Paul  Potter  and  Jan  Steen,  with  scores  of 
others,  were  picturing  comedy  and  tragedy, 
telling  stories  or  making  jokes  on  canvasses  ; 
for  those  pictures  of  Dutch  life  which  still 
charm  us  were  the  novels  of  that  time.  The 
country  became  famous  for  its  new  and  beau- 
tiful flowers  brought  from  the  Far  East,  as 
well  as  for  its  hothouses  and  flower  farms. 
The  tulips  were  of  many  colors,  but  new  va- 
rieties were  constantly  called  for.  The  peo- 
ple being  rich  and  luxurious,  there  were  many 
curious  fads  and  fashions.  In  1637  the  price 
of  tulips  rose  very  high.  Several  persons 
made  large  fortunes  in  the  trade  of  bulbs,  but 
thousands  more  lost  a  great  deal  of  money. 
For  many  months  even  boys  and  girls,  as  well 
as  grown  men  and  women,  thought  of  nothing 
else  but  of  buying  and  selling  tulips  and  of 
trying  to  get  rich  in  the  business  of  gam- 
bling with  flowers.  This  tulipomania,  as  it 
was  called,  finally  died  out,  and  the  "  wind 
trade  "  was  over. 

Prince  Frederick  Henry  died  in  1647,  at  the 
age  of  sixty-three.  He  had  been  a  good  sol- 
dier, an  able  ruler,  and  a  generous  and  sincere 
man.  His  favorite  book  was  Caesar's  "  Com- 
mentaries," and  he  left  behind  him  a  volume  of 

239 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

memoirs.  He  almost  worshiped  the  memory 
of  his  father,  and  his  motto  was  Patriczque, 
patrique ;  that  is,  "both  for  country  and  for 
father."  He  was  a  man  of  peace,  even  more 
than  of  war.  He  did  much  to  heal  the  quar- 
rels between  the  Calvinists  and  Arminians. 
His  widow  built  the  pretty  House  in  the 
Wood,  that  cosy  little  palace  which  Ameri- 
cans like  to  visit,  in  which  the  Peace  Con- 
gress of  1899  held  its  sessions. 

During  Prince  Henry's  rule,  the  intellect  of 
the  Dutch  bloomed  brilliantly  like  their  own 
gardens.  The  arts,  both  of  use  and  of  beauty, 
especially  in  glass  staining,  music,  science, 
learning,  and  literature,  during  this  period, 
have  never  been  excelled.  Beginning  with 
1625,  we  may  say  that  the  golden  era  was 
closed  in  1648,  by  the  great  peace  of  Munster, 
which  meant  the  compliance  of  Spain  with 
such  terms  as  the  Dutch  states  dictated.  This 
treaty  ended  the  long  Eighty  Years'  War, 
which  had  so  exhausted  Spain.  In  1609,  the 
united  efforts  of  France  and  England  had  not 
been  able  to  obtain  what  the  Dutch  now  re- 
ceived easily ;  namely,  recognition  by  Spain  of 
the  fact  that  the  United  Netherlands  consti- 
tuted a  free  and  sovereign  state,  to  which  the 

Spanish  king,  for  himself  and  his  successors, 

240 


THE   BLOOM    OF    THE    REPUBLIC 

renounced  all  title  or  claim  forever.  The  river 
Scheldt  was  to  be  kept  closed,  so  that  Holland 
might,  but  Belgium  could  not  profit  by  foreign 
commerce. 

This  was  an  ungenerous  clause,  which  dried 
up  Antwerp  as  a  port  and  caused  the  Belgians 
to  remain  for  two  hundred  years  an  agricul- 
tural and  manufacturing,  but  not  a  commer- 
cial people.  For  two  centuries  the  southern 
Netherlands,  now  called  Belgium,  was  little 
more  than  a  piece  of  private  property  in  the 
pocket  of  the  king  of  Spain  or  of  Austria, 
without  any  of  the  glorious  history  which 
the  free  republic  of  the  Netherlands  enjoyed. 
When  the  river  Scheldt  was,  in  the  last  cen- 
tury, opened  to  commerce,  Antwerp  thrived 
like  a  tree  planted  by  the  rivers  of  water. 

When  Prince  Frederick  Henry's  son  grew 
up,  he  married  the  princess  royal  of  England, 
though  the  bride  was  only  eleven  years  old. 
The  marriage  took  place  at  the  chapel  of 
Whitehall  in  London,  on  the  first  of  May, 
1641.  Although  this  seemed  a  very  pretty 
thing  to  do,  yet  it  was  bad  for  the  Dutch 
nation,  and  the  beginning  of  a  great  many 
troubles  to  the  Dutch  people ;  for  theirs  being 
a  free  republic  without  a  court,  and  the  stad- 

holder  being  a  president  and  not  a  king,  he 

241 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

was  expected  to  be  what  he  was  and  nothing 
else,  that  is,  holding  power  for  the  benefit  of 
the  people.  Each  of  the  stadholders  was  "  the 
first  servant  of  the  States-General,"  but  by 
marrying  into  royal  families  they  were  tempted 
to  take  more  authority  than  belonged  to  them. 
They  were  liable  to  be  filled  with  ambitions 
wrhich  have  no  place  in  the  mind  of  the  true 
servant  of  a  republic.  William  II.  became 
stadholder  in  1647,  but  died  in  1650. 

In  fact,  this  policy  of  marrying  into  the 
royal  family  of  England,  especially  into  the 
family  of  the  Stuarts,  was  one  of  the  chief 
causes  of  the  ruin  of  the  Dutch  republic. 
When  civil  war  broke  out  in  England  between 

o 

the  Cavaliers  and  the  Roundheads,  it  was  very 
hard  for  the  Dutch  to  preserve  peace.  Not  a 
few  of  the  quarrels,  and  much  of  the  bloodshed 
belonging  properly  to  England,  were  trans- 
ferred to  Dutch  soil.  Among  other  outrages 
was  the  assassination,  in  1649,  at  The  Hague, 
of  Dorislaus,  Cromwell's  advocate-general,  who 
was  murdered  by  some  followers  of  the  earl 
of  Montrose. 

Up  to  the  middle  of  the  seventeenth  cen- 
tury, the  Dutch  ships  had  been  the  common 
carriers  on  the  ocean  for  pretty  much  all  Eu- 
rope, if  not  the  whole  world.  They  took  not 

242 


THE   BLOOM   OF   THE   REPUBLIC 

only  their  butter,  cheese,  and  other  products 
into  England,  France,  America,  and  the  Far 
East,  but  they  carried  English  wool,  French 
wine,  Norway  timber,  and  German  wheat  from 
one  country  to  another.  The  English  looked 
with  jealous  eyes  upon  this  Dutch  enterprise, 
and  upon  the  prosperity  which  it  brought,  and 
resolved  to  enter  upon  the  one  and  gain  the 
other.  They  set  themselves  not  only  to  imi- 
tate the  Dutch  in  fisheries,  in  whale  hunting, 
and  manufactures,  but  also  to  get  the  trade  of 
the  sea.  With  this  object  in  view,  Parliament 
in  1651  passed  what  is  called  the  Act  of  Navi- 
gation. This  act  required  that  the  produc- 
tions of  Asia,  Africa,  and  America  should  be 
brought  into  England  only  in  English  ships, 
on  which  the  greater  part  of  the  crew  must  be 
English.  Only  silk  and  the  precious  metals 
—  gold  and  silver  —  brought  from  Italy  were 
excepted.  Other  European  productions  must 
be  imported  only  in  ships  belonging  to  the 
country  which  produced  these  articles. 

One  could  see  in  a  moment  that  this  Act  of 
Navigation  was  directed  against  the  Dutch. 
Salted  fish,  whales,  and  whale  oil,  which  only 
the  Dutch  exported,  were  forbidden  to  be  car- 
ried into  England  except  in  English  vessels. 
British  men-of-war  enforced  these  laws  very 

243 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

roughly.  Their  commanders  also  rigidly  com- 
pelled all  ships,  as  they  had  done  before,  to 
lower  their  topsails  when  meeting  an  English 
war  vessel  in  the  seas  immediately  surround- 
ing Great  Britain. 

Such  aggressive  politics  led  to  a  naval  war 
between  the  Dutch  and  English.  Terrible 
battles  were  fought  near  Plymouth,  at  Dover, 
and  at  Folkestone,  in  which  Admiral  Tromp, 
whom  the  British  call  "  Van '  Tromp,  won 
great  glory.  Dutch  commerce  seemed  to  be 
nearly  ruined  for  a  while,  and  the  American 
colonies  were  also  much  affected  for  the  worse. 
Indeed,  the  colonists  were  nearly  as  bitterly 
angered  at  the  Navigation  Act  as  were  the 
Dutchmen.  In  the  end,  this  legislation  proved 
to  be  one  great  cause  of  the  American  Revo- 
lution. British  greed  outstripped  itself.  The 
gun  kicked  and  hurt  the  gunner. 

The  Dutch  were  now  enjoying  the  blessings 
and  suffering  the  woes  of  government  by  party. 
While  they  had  one  ruler  or  sovereign,  their 
joys  and  sorrows  were  of  another  sort.  Now 
that  they  were  free,  they  had  the  difficult  task 
of  governing  themselves.  During  the  Great 
Truce  of  1609-1621,  what  with  the  problems 
of  state  sovereignty  and  national  supremacy, 

the  union  and  secession,  mixed  up  with  theo- 

244 


THE   BLOOM   OF   THE   REPUBLIC 

logical  questions  of  Calvinism  and  Arminian- 
ism,  their  brains  and  hearts  were  well  occupied. 
"  Spanje  Oranje  "  was  then  the  cry.  In  general 
the  plain  people  were  with  the  house  of  Orange, 
and  the  more  aristocratic  with  the  regents  or 
city  politicians,  the  former  laying  emphasis  on 
having  a  strong  central  government,  the  latter 
standing  up  stoutly  for  local  freedom  in  state 
and  city. 

For  a  number  of  years  after  the  death  of  the 
stadholder,  William  II.,  in  1650,  and  after  long 
and  bitter  quarrels  between  the  Orange  party 
and  the  regents'  party,  or  between  the  central- 
izing and  the  municipal  partisans,  the  Dutch 
went  without  a  stadholder  and  Holland  be- 
came a  parliamentary  republic.  Increasingly 
the  politics  of  the  Netherlands  seemed  to  turn 
on  the  question  of  Orange  and  anti-Orange, 
and  we  shall  see  the  results. 


245 


CHAPTER   XXVI 

THE    PARLIAMENTARY    REPUBLIC 

FOR  over  twenty  years,  from  1650  to  1672,  the 
government  of  the  Netherlands  was  without  a 
stadholder,  or  president.  The  officer  at  the 
head  of  the  government  was  called  a  pension- 
ary, which  means  simply  one  who  receives  a 
salary.  His  name  was  John  DeWitt.  A  man 
of  marked  abilities,  he  lived  in  simple  style. 
He  was  always  patriotic  and  faithful  to  his 
duties.  Those  who  had  been  jealous  of  the 
power  and  influence  of  the  house  of  Orange 
were  very  glad  to  see  the  republic  so  well  gov- 
erned without  any  prince,  but  with  only  an 
ordinary  gentleman  at  the  head  of  it. 

During  this  time  the  English  people,  who 
tolerate  royalty  only  as  long  as  royalty  behaves 
itself,  had,  on  January  30,  1649,  cut  °ff  tne 
head  of  their  foolish  and  wicked  ruler,  Charles 
I.,  and  were  doing  without  crowns  and  kings. 
One  would  have  supposed  that  the  two  repub- 
lics on  opposite  sides  of  the  North  Sea,  Eng- 
lish and  Dutch,  would  have  been  very  friendly; 

246 


THE   PARLIAMENTARY   REPUBLIC 

but  it  requires  something  else  than  similar 
forms  of  government  to  make  friendship  be- 
tween nations,  especially  when  one  wants  to 
make  more  money  than  the  other  and  get  away 
a  lucrative  business.  At  the  bottom  of  most 
wars  is  that  love  of  money,  which  is  "  a  root  of 
all  kinds  of  evil." 

So  after  the  English  laws,  which  destroyed 
the  Dutch  sea  trade,  had  been  passed,  bitter- 
ness and  jealousy  sprang  up.  This  was  espe- 
cially so  when  the  English  seized  the  Dutch 
ships.  Admiral  Martin  Tromp,  whose  name 
means  a  trumpet,  and  which  has  no  "  van ' 
before  it,  was  sent  to  fight  the  English  admiral, 
Blake,  who  was  beaten  in  a  great  battle.  Ac- 
cording to  the  story,  Tromp  nailed  a  broom 
to  his  topmast,  to  show  that  he  had  swept  the 
English  off  the  seas.  Although  it  is  not  at  all 
certain  that  this  ever  happened,  the  nailing  of 
brooms  to  the  mast  after  a  victory,  or  the  wear- 
ing of  little  toy  brooms  after  triumph  in  a  boat 
race,  has  since  become  a  common  custom. 

Cromwell  did  not  like  to  fight  the  Dutch,  but 
he  had  been  told  that  they  had  insulted  some 
English  sailors,  which  was  not  true.  More 
battles  were  fought,  and  in  one  of  them, 

O         ' 

August  8,  1653,  the  great  Admiral  Tromp  was 
slain.  Other  causes  of  bad  feeling  between  the 

247 


HISTORY    OF    HOLLAND 

two  countries  sprang  up,  but  the  war  was  on 
the  water  only,  and  after  a  while  envoys  of  the 
two  nations  came  together  in  London  and  made 
a  treaty  of  peace  at  Westminster.  The  chief 
ambassador  was  Jacob  Cats,  whose  wise,  witty, 
and  funny  sayings  and  poetry,  much  like  Benja- 
min Franklin's,  are  known  all  over  Holland. 

In  1660,  after  both  Cromwell  and  his  son 
Richard  had  died,  the  English  commonwealth 
collapsed,  and  Charles  II.  became  king.  Al- 
though Charles  had  been  kindly  treated  in 
Holland,  he  disliked  the  Dutch  because  of  their 
republican  ideas  and  ways.  He  even  forced 
them  to  deliver  up  three  of  the  judges  who  had 
tried  his  father  and  sentenced  him  to  death. 
The  king's  brother,  James,  the  duke  of  York, 
went  around  like  a  pirate,  capturing  Dutch 
ships  wherever  he  could  lay  his  hands  on  them. 
Although  it  was  a  time  of  peace,  in  1664,  when 
Governor  Stuyvesant  had  no  soldiers,  he  sent 
warships  and  soldiers  into  the  harbor  of  New 
York,  seized  New  Netherland,  and  made  it 
English  territory. 

In  Holland,  the  partisans  of  Orange  and  of 
DeWitt  were  very  bitter  against  each  other. 
Their  quarrels  extended  not  only  all  over  the 
country,  but  even  the  sailors  of  the  fleet  were 

divided  in  their  opinions  and  sympathies.    To 

248 


THE   PARLIAMENTARY   REPUBLIC 

strengthen  the  Dutch  republic  in  the  naval 
war  against  England,  called  the  "  Second  Eng- 
lish Sea  War,"  John  DeWitt  made  an  alliance 
with  France ;  but  in  a  great  naval  battle,  off 
North  Foreland,  in  1665,  the  Dutch  lost  nine- 
teen ships.  One  of  the  sad  results  of  this 
disaster  to  the  Dutch  was  the  lono:  and  bitter 

o 

quarrel  between  young  Tromp,  son  of  the  dead 
admiral,  and  the  gallant  DeRuyter,  who  con- 
ducted the  retreat  so  admirably. 

Then  indeed  it  looked  dark  for  Holland,  but 
the  outlook  became  brighter  when  Admiral 
Michael  DeRuyter  took  command  of  the  new 
fleet  of  eighty-five  men-of-war  and  sixteen  fire- 
ships.  At  first  it  was  feared  that  his  vessels 
could  not  get  out  of  the  Zuyder  Zee,  on  the 
shores  of  which  they  had  been  built  and  pro- 
visioned ;  for  the  wind  was  blowing  southwest- 
wardly.  There  was  a  narrow  and  shallow  pas- 
sage called  the  "  Spaniards'  Hole,"  through 
which  the  fleet  might  possibly  go,  but  the 
sailors  hesitated,  and  even  the  pilot  said  that 
they  could  not  get  through. 

Then  John  DeWitt,  though  only  a  lawyer 
and  not  a  seaman,  went  out  in  a  boat  with  lead 
and  line,  sounding  the  way  through  the  Span- 
iards' Hole.  He  found  that  there  was  water 
deep  enough,  and  that  DeRuyter's  fleet  could 

249 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

quickly  get  out  to  sea.  So  the  long  line  of 
vessels  sailed  gallantly  out,  moved  over  the 
North  Sea,  and  then  steered  southwardly,  meet- 
ing the  English  fleet.  In  1666,  a  battle  last- 
ing four  days  took  place  under  the  chalk  cliffs 
of  Kent,  in  which,  after  tremendous  bravery  on 
both  sides,  the  Dutch  were  victorious.  For 
the  first  time  in  war,  chain-shot,  which  cut  up 
the  ship's  rigging  terribly,  was  used.  DeWitt 
is  said  to  have  invented  it. 

The  Dutch  proved  the  truth  of  the  saying, 
"  United  we  stand,  divided  we  fall."  The 
Orangeists  and  Anti-Orangeists  still  quarreled. 
When  the  campaign  opened  again,  on  July  25, 
1666,  Tromp  and  DeRuyter  were  not  yet 
reconciled,  and  the  British  gained  the  advan- 

o 

tage.  The  next  year,  1667,  Admiral  DeRuyter 
took  his  fleet  of  ships  across  the  North  Sea 
and  actually  got  into  the  river  Thames,  burn- 
ing English  ships  and  making  the  people  in 
London  fear  that  he  might  come  up  further 
and  capture  London.  At  last  the  foolish  Eng- 
lish king,  Charles  II.,  who  had  wickedly  made 
war  against  Holland,  sought  for  peace,  which 
was  signed  July  i,  1667,  at  Breda,  the  city  of 
the  beautiful  spire. 

In  1652,  a  change  had  been  made  in  the 
Dutch  flag,  so  that  the  colors  should  always  be 

250 


THE    PARLIAMENTARY   REPUBLIC 

the  same.  Sometimes  in  the  past  they  had 
been  orange,  white,  and  blue,  sometimes  red, 
white,  and  blue ;  but  hereafter  only  the  simple 
colors  red,  white,  and  blue  were  used. 

In  France,  Louis  XIV.  was  the  mighty 
king,  whose  ambition  was  to  make  all  Europe 
French.  He  sent  his  armies  to  America  and 
India,  and  his  fleets  into  the  Mediterranean,  to 
carry  out  his  plans  of  conquest.  A  triple  alli- 
ance was  formed  in  1668  between  Great  Brit- 
ain, the  Netherlands,  and  Sweden  to  curb  the 
French  king's  power,  and  keep  the  peace  of 
Europe.  Yet  soon  after  this,  the  English  king, 
Charles  II.,  always  treacherous,  made  alliance 
with  Louis  XIV.  to  destroy  the  Dutch  repub- 
lic. Sweden  also  withdrew  from  the  compact, 
so  that  little  Holland  was  left  alone  to  fight  the 
greatest  of  European  monarchies  and  kings. 
The  cause  of  liberty  seemed  under  hopeless 
eclipse. 

It  was  a  bad  time  for  the  Hollanders ;  for 
through  DeWitt's  influence,  the  two  offices  of 
stadholder,  or  president,  and  of  the  commander- 
in-chief  of  the  army  of  the  union,  hitherto  held 
by  the  prince  of  Orange,  were  separated.  This 
was  done  under  a  law,  passed  in  1667,  called 
the  "  Perpetual  Edict,"  which  prevented  any 
army  or  naval  officer  from  ever  receiving  the 

251 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

appointment.  This  action  made  the  Orange 
party  intensely  angry. 

The  country  being  thus  divided  by  party 
strife,  Louis  XIV.  saw  his  opportunity  and 
resolved  to  crush  out  the  little  republic  and 
make  Holland  a  part  of  France.  He  moved 
promptly,  with  a  great  army,  across  the  Rhine 
and  invaded  the  Netherlands  in  1672,  occupy- 
ing city  after  city.  But  when  near  Amsterdam, 
the  Frenchmen  had  to  stop ;  for  the  city  peo- 
ple threatened  to  cut  the  dikes,  let  in  the  sea 
water,  and  drown  out  the  invaders.  If  neces- 
sary, the  Amsterdammers  proposed  to  fight 
the  French  tyrant  single-handed,  rather  than 
surrender.  During  this  time  of  the  French 

o 

invasion,  many  Dutch  farmers,  or  boers,  emi- 
grated to  South  Africa  and  began  the  Dutch 
republics  there. 

William  III.,  the  young  prince  of  Orange, 
who  had  been  born  November  4,  1650,  eight 
days  after  the  death  of  his  father,  came  into 
public  notice,  and  high  hopes  of  his  abilities 
arose  in  the  Dutch  nation.  The  states  of  Hol- 
land repealed  the  Perpetual  Edict,  and,  with 
Zeeland,  elected  William  III.  stadholder  and 
commander-in-chief  of  the  union,  so  that  the 
two  offices  of  civil  executive  and  commander 

of  the  army  and  navy  were  united  in  the  per- 

252 


THE   PARLIAMENTARY   REPUBLIC 

son  of  William  III.,  very  much  as  they  are 
in  the  office  of  the  President  of  the  United 
States. 

In  The-  Hague  a  terrific  riot  broke  out 
Thousands  of  the  country  people,  who  favored 
the  house  of  Orange,  came  into  the  city  on 
the  2oth  of  August,  1672,  and  joined  with  the 
mob  which  rushed  to  the  gate  called  the  Ge- 
vangepoort.  Within  the  prison,  and  very  ill, 
lay  Cornelius  DeWitt,  whose  brother  John 
came  in  a  carriage  to  visit  him.  The  rioters 
dragged  out  the  two  brothers  into  the  street, 
where  they  first  murdered  them,  and  then  tore 
their  bodies  to  pieces.  Thus  perished  miser- 
ably two  good  men,  among  the  noblest  in 
Dutch  history.  It  was  proved  again  that  the 
rage  of  the  mob  and  popular  villainy  and 
cruelty  were  equal  to  those  of  kings  and  des- 
pots. 


253 


CHAPTER  XXVII 

DUTCH    STADHOLDER   AND    BRITISH    KING 

IT  was  a  dark  time  for  young  William  III., 
who  hated  tyrants  and  loved  freedom  and 
government  in  which  the  people  had  at  least 
some  voice.  He  knew  that  tribes  and  nations 
had  existed  before  kings  were  heard  of,  that 
the  Dutch  had  been  free  men  and  proud  of 
their  liberty  when  such  royal  families  as  the 
Stuarts  and  Bourbons  were  nobodies.  William 
was  determined  to  save  his  country. 

Yet  what  could  he  do  ?  It  looked  as  though 
the  tyrants  of  England  and  France  had  com- 
bined to  strangle  the  liberty-loving  Nether- 
lands, and  that  both  the  house  of  Orange  and 
the  Dutch  republic  were  to  be  swept  off  the 
earth.  At  home,  his  two  admirals,  DeRuyter 
and  Tromp,  were  estranged,  and  the  two  po- 
litical parties  were  divided  and  bitter  against 
each  other. 

Then  William  showed  himself  the  man  for 
the  hour,  the  reconciler,  and  the  restorer  of 
strength  and  union.  By  his  wisdom  and  tact, 

254 


DUTCH  STADHOLDER  AND  BRITISH  KING 

Tromp  and  DeRuyter  were  made  friends.  In 
one  great  naval  battle  off  the  coast  of  Zeeland, 
and  in  another  off  the  Helder,  the  Dutch  won 
two  victories  at  home.  Across  the  Atlantic, 
in  1674,  New  York  was  captured  by  Admiral 
Evertson.  Nearly  three  thousand  prize-ships 
were  taken  by  the  Dutch  privateers.  In  one 
of  the  combats  in  this  war,  when  the  English 
admiral,  Sprague,  tried  to  go  in  the  open  water 
from  one  vessel  to  another,  his  boat  was  struck 
by  a  cannon  ball  and  he  was  drowned.  As  the 
final  result -of  this  naval  war,  the  Parliament  of 
England  compelled  Charles  II.  to  stop  fight- 
ing, France  gave  up  the  three  Netherland 
provinces  which  had  been  conquered,  and  the 
Dutch  republic  was  safe  once  more. 

In  the  reaction  from  having  no  stadholder, 
the  Dutch  now  went  to  the  other  extreme. 
They  wanted  to  make  the  stadholderate,  or 
presidency,  hereditary.  This  would  have  given 
the  republic  a  ruler  very  much  like  a  king, 
instead  of  one  with  an  office  like  that  of 
President  of  the  United  States,  which  is  elec- 
tive, impeachable,  and  not  hereditary.  When 
twenty-five  years  old,  Prince  William  of  Orange 
married  Mary,  the  daughter  of  the  duke  of 
York,  who  afterwards  became  King  James  II. 
He  did  not  marry  her  because  he  loved  her, 

255 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

but  because  she  was  the  possible  heir  to  the 
British  throne,  and  William  wanted  the  alli- 
ance of  Great  Britain  to  prevent  Louis  XIV. 
from  carrying  out  his  design  of  conquering 
the  Netherlands.  His  was  a  political  mar- 
riage. Yet  he  later  learned  to  love  Mary  very 
tenderly  for  her  own  sake. 

A  new  triple  alliance  was  formed  in  1686, 
and  William  became  the  head  of  it.  The 
German  empire,  the  Dutch  republic,  and  Savoy 
joined  forces  against  France.  To  these  coun- 
tries and  to  England,  thousands  of  French 
people  of  the  Reformed  religion  had  fled  and 
were  ready  to  fight  against  the  Bourbon  king, 
Louis.  When  the  duke  of  York  became  King 
James  II.,  he  proved  himself  the  worst  king 
England  ever  had.  His  unlawful  acts  encour- 
aged the  people  to  revolt  against  him  and  his 
heirs.  When  William  saw  that  King  James 
was  becoming  an  ally  of  Louis  XIV.,  he  took 
the  side  of  the  English  people  and  maintained 
the  rights  of  his  wife  to  the  British  throne. 
By  the  year  1688,  the  English  people  were 
ready  to  drive  their  king  out  of  the  country. 
They  therefore  invited  the  Dutch  William  to 
come  over  and  be  their  deliverer.  Gathering 
a  fine  army  of  Huguenot  and  Dutch  troops, 

William  crossed  over  the  sea,  landed  at  Tor- 

256 


DUTCH  STADHOLDER  AND  BRITISH  KING 

bay,  and  marched  to  London,  while  James  II. 
fled  the  country  to  France.  The  English  peo- 
ple now  excluded  all  Catholic  Stuarts  from 
the  government,  which  they  placed  in  the 
hands  of  the  royal  pair,  William  and  Mary. 

England  received  great  benefit  from  a  king 
who  had  republican  ideas.  The  English  did 
not  like  William  personally,  and  they  thought 
he  put  too  many  Dutchmen  into  high  offices, 
but  they  admired  his  character.  William,  like 
his  ancestor  the  Silent,  was  not  much  of  a 
soldier,  but  a  most  excellent  ruler.  At  sea, 
the  Dutch  and  English  men-of-war  drove  off 
the  French  fleet  which  was  trying  to  carry  an 
army,  led  by  King  James,  into  Ireland.  The 
enemies  of  Britain  and  Holland  were  com- 
pelled to  seek  peace.  In  1697,  at  Ryswick, 
near  The  Hague,  a  great  treaty  was  made 
which  ended  the  war  of  nine  years. 

William  was  never  very  strong  in  body.  He 
broke  down  from  overwork,  and  a  fall  from 
his  horse  caused  his  death  on  March  8,  1702  ; 
but  the  Dutch  still  kept  up  an  army,  which 
fought  with  the  English  in  the  war  called  the 
Spanish  Succession. 

No  children  were  born  of  William  III.  and 
Queen  Mary,  so  the  direct  male  line  of  the 
house  of  Orange,  from  William  the  Silent, 

257 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

came  to  an  end.     In  England,  George  I.,  great 
grandson  of  James  I.,  became  king  in  1714. 

The  headship  of  the  house  of  Orange-Nassau 
now  passed  over  to  John  William  Friso,  stad- 
holder  of  Friesland.  A  grandson  of  Count 
John  of  Nassau,  brother  of  William  the  Silent, 
had  married  Albertina  Agnes,  the  daughter  of 
Prince  Frederick  Henry,  and  thus  the  grand- 
daughter of  William.  The  result  of  this  union 
was  the  son  who  now  became  the  head  of  the 
house  of  Orange,  and  it  is  from  him  that  the 
royal  family  of  the  modern  Netherlands  and 
Queen  Wilhelmina  are  descended.  In  1711, 
when  but  twenty-four  years  old,  he  was  drowned 
at  Moerdyk.  His  son,  William  Charles  Henry 
Friso,  was  born  a  few  weeks  after  his  father's 
death.  At  seven  years  of  age,  he  became  the 
hereditary  stadholder  of  Friesland,  and  later, 
through  the  zeal  of  the  partisans  of  the  house 
of  Orange,  was  made  stadholder  of  Groningen 
and  Drenthe  when  only  eleven  years  old.  In 
1733,  the  prince,  then  twenty-three  years  old, 
took  as  his  bride  Anne,  daughter  of  George  II., 
from  the  royal  house  of  Great  Britain,  which 
at  this  time  was  not  French  or  Dutch,  but 
German  and  from  Hanover.  'Thus  in  the 
prince  of  Orange  and  his  wife  Dutch  and 

German  became  one,  reuniting  two  ancestral 

258 


WILLIAM    V.,    HEREDITARY   STADHOLDER 


THE  NEW  YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


fcSTOR,   LENOX   AND 
TILDEN   FOUNDATIONS. 


DUTCH  STADHOLDER  AND  BRITISH  KING 

lines  originally  from  the  German  fatherland. 
In  Holland  many  people  were  very  much 
afraid  that  the  prince  would,  by  fair  means  or 
foul,  make  himself  stadholder  of  all  the  pro- 
vinces and  be  virtually  a  king. 

During  this  period,  there  were  wars  in  other 
parts  of  Europe,  and  the  Belgic  Netherlands, 
then  under  the  rule  of  Maria  Theresa  of  Aus- 
tria, were  invaded.  Holland  joined  the  quad- 
ruple alliance  of  the  Emperor,  Great  Britain, 
and  France  against  the  designs  of  Spain. 
Later  in  1747,  when  parties  had  changed  and 
the  king  of  France  was  about  to  invade  Dutch 
territory,  the  partisans  of  the  house  of  Orange 
succeeded  in  getting  the  prince  of  Orange 
proclaimed  stadholder,  first  of  Zeeland,  then 
of  Holland,  and  finally  of  all  the  united  pro- 
vinces. 

There  had  been  no  stadholder  of  all  the 
United  States  of  the  Netherlands  from  1702 
to  1747,  and  now  wThen  the  office  was  resumed, 
it  became  a  menace  to  the  liberties  of  the 
nation. 

Many  patriotic  Netherlander  grieved  that 
their  prince,  William  IV.,  had  married  into  a 
royal  family ;  for  he  began  to  put  on  all  the 
airs  and  to  assume  the  powers  of  a  king.  In 
1 747,  his  office  was  made  hereditary,  and  very 


HISTORY    OF   HOLLAND 

soon  the  republic  of  the  Netherlands  was  one 
only  in  name.  Yet  he  himself  was  so  devoted 
to  good  plans  and  purposes  for  the  benefit  of 
the  people  that  when  he  died  in  1751,  only 
forty  years  of  age,  the  people  grieved  deeply 
and  sincerely  over  him,  because  they  felt  that 
in  him  they  had  lost  a  good  friend. 

The  new  ruler,  William  V.,  became  such 
when  he  was  a  little  boy  only  three  years  old. 
He  was  destined  to  be  the  last  stadholder  of 
the  Netherlands  and  to  live  to  see  the  republic 
pass  away.  His  lifetime  was  one  of  great 
interest  to  all  English-speaking  people ;  for  it 
touched  American  and  British  history,  as  we 
shall  see.  Within  it  occurred  the  events  of 
Braddock's  defeat,  the  capture  of  Louisburg, 
the  rise  of  George  Washington,  the  battle  of 
Lake  George,  the  capture  of  Forts  DuQuesne, 
Niagara,  Crown  Point,  and  Ticonderoga  from 
the  French,  and  that  victory  of  General  Wolfe 
over  Montcalm,  on  the  Heights  of  Abraham, 
which  decided  that  North  America  was  to  be 
English  speaking  and  follow  the  ideas  of  Teu- 
tonic, and  not  of  Latin  civilization. 

In  the  war  between  Great  Britain  and  Spain, 
many  battles  were  fought  in  the  southern  or 
Belgian  Netherlands,  and  there  were  great 
naval  campaigns  in  the  West  Indies  under 

260 


DUTCH  STADHOLDER  AND  BRITISH  KING 

Admiral  Vernon.  As  many  American  young 
men  were  educated  in  England,  those  who 
expected  to  follow  a  military  career  served 
with  the  British  army  in  Flanders  and  gained 
much  experience  which  fitted  them  afterwards 
for  the  War  of  the  Revolution. 

In  the  West  Indies,  several  companies  of 
Virginians  fought,  with  the  British  sailors  and 
soldiers,  against  the  Spaniards,  in  some  cases 
landing  at  the  same  spots  made  famous  in  the 
Spanish-American  war  of  1898.  Among  the 
Virginia  officers  was  Lawrence  Washington, 
who  named  his  home  on  the  Potomac,  after 
the  admiral,  Mount  Vernon.  He  brought 
home  with  him,  also,  a  Dutch  officer,  Jacob 
Van  Braam,  who  became  young  George  Wash- 
ington's military  instructor,  and  marched  with 
him  into  Pennsylvania  and  Ohio. 


261 


CHAPTER  XXVIII 

THE   TWO    REPUBLICS  —  DUTCH   AND   AMERICAN 

THE  little  boy  who  was  to  be  William  V.  was 
put  under  the  care  of  his  mother  Anna,  who 
thus  became  regent  of  Holland.  She  was  the 
daughter  of  George  II.  of  England.  She  lived 
until  1759.  During  her  lifetime,  and  for  long 
years  afterwards,  Holland  was  little  more  than 
an  annex  of  Great  Britain.  The  government 
at  The  Hague  had  to  think  pretty  much  as 
King  George  suggested,  and  to  act  obediently 
to  his  beck  and  nod. 

Yet  when,  but  eighteen  years  of  age,  in  1766, 
the  young  prince  of  Orange  married,  he  did 
not  find  his  wife  in  England,  but  in  Germany, 
his  bride  being  a  niece  of  Frederick  the  Great 
of  Prussia.  He  was  a  weak  ruler  and  greatly 
under  the  influence  of  his  stronger  minded 
wife  and  her  German  relatives.  During  his 
long  rule,  from  1756  to  1795,  things  in  Hol- 
land seemed  to  go  from  bad  to  worse. 

When   the   American    war   broke   out,  Sir 

Joseph  Yorke,  the  British  minister,  wanted  the 

262 


TWO  REPUBLICS  —  DUTCH  AND  AMERICAN 

republic  to  do  everything  to  favor  the  British 
cause,  but  from  the  beginning  the  sympathies 
of  the  Dutch  people  were  with  the  Americans. 
The  first  salute  ever  fired  in  honor  of  the 
American  flag,  even  before  it  had  any  stars 
in  its  field,  was  given  by  de  Graeff  at  St.  Eusta- 
cius  in  the  West  Indies,  on  November  16, 
1776. 

The  Dutch  saw  clearly  that  our  war  with 
Great  Britain  was  very  much  like  their  own 
revolt  for  independence  against  Spain.  Their 
government  was  very  much  like  ours  ;  that  is, 
several  provinces  had  become  states  and  formed 
one  federal  republic,  with  the  red,  white,  and 
blue  flag,  with  a  written  constitution,  and  with 
a  declaration  of  independence.  They  had  de- 
posed their  king  because  they  would  not  sub- 
mit to  taxes  which  they  themselves  did  not 
vote. 

There  were  many  prominent  and  active 
friends  of  America  in  the  Netherlands,  and 
these  were  led  by  Baron  Van  der  Capellen. 
Kin£  George  III.  wrote  a  letter  to  the  stad- 

o  o 

holder,  the  prince  of  Orange,  demanding  that 
the  Scotch  brigade,  which  had  served  in  the 
Dutch  army  for  over  two  hundred  years,  should 
be  returned  to  the  British  service,  to  be  sent  to 

the  Americans,  but  Baron  Van  der  Ca- 

263 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

pellen  in  the  States-General  strongly  opposed 
this.  The  British  government  heard  that  the 
Dutch  governor  in  the  West  Indies,  Johannes 
de  Graeff,  had  saluted  our  flag,  and  was  furnish- 
ing supplies  to  Washington's  army.  Through 
Sir  Joseph  Yorke,  at  The  Hague,  a  demand 
was  made  that  he  be  called  home  and  pun- 
ished for  encouraging  rebels.  Having  great 
influence  with  the  stadholder  and  the  States- 
General,  Yorke  secured  the  passage  of  a  law 
prohibiting  any  convoy,  or  protection  by  men- 
of-war,  to  Dutch  vessels  laden  with  materials 
for  shipbuilding.  This  nearly  ruined  the  ship- 
building trade  of  Holland,  and  the  dockyards 
lay  idle  until  grass  grew  in  them ;  but  the 
friends  of  America  multiplied. 

When  Commodore  Paul  Jones  brought  his 
prize,  the  British  frigate  Serapis,  into  the 
Texel,  in  1779,  a  song,  "Here  comes  Paul 
Jones,"  was  sung  all  over  the  country  in  his 
praise.  Van  Berckel,  of  Amsterdam,  having 
proposed  to  open  trade  directly  with  America, 
the  Continental  Congress  at  Philadelphia  sent 
commissioners  to  Holland  to  make  a  treaty. 
When  Sir  Joseph  Yorke  found  this  out,  he 
asked  that  Van  Berckel  be  punished.  His 
request  was  refused.  Then  Great  Britain  de- 
clared war  against  Holland.  This  was  done  a 

264 


DE   GRAEFF 

Who  first  saluted  the  American  flag 


'THE  NE w  Y o R K 


PUBL          BRARY 


TWO  REPUBLICS  —  DUTCH  AND  AMERICAN 

whole  week  before  her  action  was  known  at 
The  Hague,  and  when  hundreds  of  Dutch 
ships  lay  at  anchor  in  the  ports  of  England. 
These  were  all  captured.  Thus  heavily  had 
little  Holland  to  pay  for  her  friendship  with 
the  United  States.  A  naval  battle  was  fought 
off  the  Doggerbank,  in  the  North  Sea,  in  which 
the  Dutch  fleet  under  Admiral  Zoutman  drove 
off  the  British  fleet  under  Admiral  Parker. 

Nevertheless,  the  Netherlanders  were  obliged 
to  make  a  disgraceful  treaty  with  Great  Britain. 
Their  envoys  not  being  invited  to  sit  at  the 
congress  in  Paris,  which  was  to  make  a  gen- 
eral peace  and  recognize  the  United  States  of 
America,  they  had  to  come  of  their  own  accord. 
They  received  no  satisfaction ;  for  none  could 
be  obtained. 

The  trouble  with  the  country  was  that  the 
Dutch  had  got  "too  fat  to  fight,"  or  to  de- 
fend themselves,  and  the  quarrels  between  the 
Orange  and  the  anti-Orange  factions  were 

o  o 

more  bitter  than  ever.  Party  rancor  was  mis- 
taken for  patriotism.  Some  of  the  more  ear- 
nest of  their  leaders  began  to  inquire  into  the 
cause  of  the  nation's  weakness.  One  gentle- 
man, named  Adrian  Van  der  Kemp,  had,  in 
1781,  written  an  anonymous  letter,  addressed 

to  the  people  of  the  Netherlands,  in  which  he 

265 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

suggested  that  the  government  should  be  a 
democracy,  and  all  power  be  put  directly  into 
the  hands  of  the  people.  He  would  have  the 
stadholder  give  up  his  hereditary  claim,  abolish 
the  power  of  the  city  regents  or  governors,  and 
have  the  functions  of  government  so  distrib- 
uted, under  the  executive,  legislature,  and  judi- 
ciary, that  one  branch  would  check  and  control 
the  others,  while  the  people  should  have  a  direct 
vote  in  all  important  affairs. 

This  letter,  published  in  pamphlet  form,  was 
widely  perused  and  everywhere  discussed,  but 
it  made  the  Orange  party  very  angry.  Both 
the  prince  of  Orange  and  the  legislature  of 
Holland  offered  large  rewards  for  the  discovery 
of  the  author.  But  for  many,  many  years  no 
one  ever  found  out  who  was  the  true  author, 
though  Van  der  Kemp  was  suspected.  He 
afterwards  came  to  America  and  founded  the 
town  of  Barneveldt,  now  Trenton,  N.  Y.,  and 
surveyed  the  route  of  the  Erie  Canal. 

The  people  were  now  divided  into  Orange 
and  anti-Orange  parties,  the  latter  also  call- 
ing themselves  Patriots.  Many  of  these,  like 
Daendels,  went  into  France  to  watch  events, 
and  when  the  opportunity  should  come,  to 
march  into  Holland. 


266 


CHAPTER  XXIX 

THE    FALL    OF    THE    REPUBLIC 

WHEN  the  Patriots  tried  to  lessen  the  power 
of  the  tyrannical  stadholder  and  to  have  a  more 
popular  government,  Great  Britain,  France, 
and  Prussia  interfered  to  keep  the  prince  of 
Orange  in  full  power,  and  thus  to  destroy  the 
republic.  The  Patriots  hoped  that  the  French 
would  help  them ;  but  France,  professing  not 
to  be  able,  declined.  This  encouraged  the  king 
of  Prussia  to  meddle  still  further  in  Dutch 
affairs.  Through  his  envoy,  he  persuaded  his 
daughter,  the  princess,  in  1784,  to  ride  from 
Nymegen  in  her  carriage  to  The  Hague,  where 
she  should  make  the  Patriots  beg  her  pardon. 
The  Patriots  stopped  her  carriage  and  sent 
her  back  to  Nymegen.  This  was  exactly  what 
the  king  of  Prussia  wanted  —  an  excuse  for 
active  interference.  Twenty  thousand  of  his 
troops  marched  at  once  into  the  Netherlands. 
The  stadholder  entered  The  Hague  and  was 
welcomed  by  the  people,  while  streets,  houses, 
and  churches  were  almost  covered  with  masses 

of  orange  cloth  and  ribbons. 

267 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

During  all  this  disgraceful  civil  war,  for  it 
was  nothing  less,  the  partisans  of  one  side  were 
called  by  their  enemies  "  Oranje  Klants,"  that 
is,  Orange  fellows  or  "  chappies,"  those  of  the 
other  party  being  stigmatized  as  "  Keezen." 
When  the  Keezen  were  in  power,  they  refused 
to  let  the  Orangeists  show  anything  having 
their  colors,  whether  badges,  clothes,  flags,  or 
even  things  good  to  eat.  When  carrots  were 
sold  in  market,  the  green  tops  must  be  laid 
forward  and  the  root  ends  out  of  sight.  The 
Keezen  seemed  to  be  as  wild  on  the  subject  of 
the  orange  color  as  are  bulls  when  a  red  flag 
is  shaken  before  them.  Now,  however,  when 
the  Orangemen  were  in  power,  they  compelled 
the  wearing  of  the  Orange  cockade  and  badges, 
and  flaunted  the  gay  color  in  every  form.  The 
Prussians  overran  the  whole  country  and  even 
conquered  Amsterdam,  which,  for  the  first  time 
in  its  history,  was  occupied  by  a  foreign  army. 

Thus  again  dark  days  had  fallen  upon  Hol- 
land, and  things  seemed  as  bad  as  in  the  age 
of  Spanish  tyranny.  The  Dutch  republic  was 
little  more  than  a  province,  ruled  by  Prussia 
and  England.  Hundreds  of  the  Patriot  leaders 
had  left  the  country  to  find  refuge  in  France 
or  the  United  States.  Commerce  was  almost 
dead,  and  public  spirit  never  lower.  The 

268 


THE   FALL   OF   THE   REPUBLIC 

Dutch  seemed  to  care  nothing  about  what  was 
going  on  in  Europe. 

In  Paris  the  French  Revolution  had  broken 
out.  When  the  French  army  marched  into 
the  Belgian  Netherlands,  there  was  danger 
that  a  quarrel  between  the  Dutch  and  French 
would  soon  ensue,  and  the  country  be  invaded 
and  conquered.  In  1648,  when  the  Dutch  had 
won  their  victory  over  Spain,  they  demanded 
that  the  river  Scheldt  should  be  closed,  and 
that  no  seagoing  ships  should  pass  in  or  out 
of  the  river.  Their  object  was  to  prevent  the 
Belgian  Netherlands  from  having  any  for- 
eign commerce,  so  that  Antwerp  might  re- 
main poor  and  small,  and  Amsterdam  get  rich. 
Now,  in  1792,  the  French  wanted  to  send 
their  vessels  up  and  down  the  river  Scheldt. 
The  Dutch  tried  to  prevent  them  and  at  once 
there  was  cause  for  quarreling ;  for  the  French 
insisted  upon  free  navigation.  When  the 
prince  of  Orange,  agreeing  with  the  British 
king,  treated  the  French  envoys  with  con- 
tempt, France  declared  war  against  Great 
Britain  and  the  Netherlands.  Although  some 
British  troops  were  sent  over  to  help  the 
Dutch,  and  especially  the  prince  of  Orange, 
they  accomplished  little  or  nothing. 

Just  as  the  Orange  party  had  invited  the 

269 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

Prussian  invaders  seven  years  before,  so  now, 
in  1793,  the  long  persecuted  Patriots  were 
ready  to  welcome  the  French  invaders.  All 
over  the  country  there  were  formed  what  were 
called  "  reading  societies."  In  reality,  these 
were  revolutionary  committees,  which  were 
ready  to  welcome  the  French  when  they  should 
come.  The  unusually  cold  season  of  1794 
and  1795,  still  called  "the  French  winter," 
froze  all  the  rivers  and  inland  waters,  and  thus, 
instead  of  being  the  barrier  to  an  enemy, 
these  furnished  bridges.  The  French  rushed 
over  the  ice,  with  their  artillery  and  troops, 
seized  the  fortresses,  drove  off  the  garrisons, 
and  soon  reached  the  heart  of  the  country.  It 
seemed  odd,  that  with  cavalry  they  should 
capture  ships  frozen  in,  so  as  to  be  helpless,  in 
the  Zuyder  Zee,  but  this  was  actually  done. 
The  dragoons  made  prizes  of  the  vessels. 

At  Willemstad,  a  fortress  in  North  Brabant 
on  the  Holland  Deep,  built  by  the  prince  of 
Orange  in  1583,  the  French  found  an  obstacle. 
For  two  weeks,  with  red-hot  shot  and  shell, 
they  bombarded  the  place  without  success. 
Defended  by  the  valor  and  skill  of  Baron  Van 
Boetselaer,  the  adjutant-general  of  the  stad- 
holder  William  V.,  Willemstad  held  out.  A 
daughter  of  this  brave  soldier  afterwards  came 


270 


THE   FALL    OF   THE    REPUBLIC 

to  America  and  founded  the  well-known  Tank 
home  for  children  at  Oberlin,  Ohio. 

When  the  city  of  Utrecht  had  fallen,  the 
States-General  assembled  at  The  Hague  and 
sent  a  delegation  to  the  stadholder,  asking 

*— *  O 

mournfully  whether  anything  could  yet  be 
done  for  the  defense  of  Holland.  He  ffave  a 

o 

discouraging  answer,  saying  that  nothing  would 
avail.  He  also  informed  them  that  he  would 
quit  the  country.  About  two  o'clock  on  that 
day,  bidding  farewell  to  his  legislators,  having 
already  sent  the  princess  and  his  daughter 
over  to  England,  he  got  on  board  a  fishing 
vessel  to  leave  Holland. 

A  great  crowd  of  people  had  gathered  at 
Scheveningen  on  the  seacoast  to  take  fare- 
well of  their  ruler.  As  the  boat  was  some 
distance  out,  the  prince  of  Orange  started  to 
wade  in  the  water  to  the  boat.  Then  Bentinck, 
his  prime  minister,  called  out  to  the  people, 
"  What,  will  you  allow  your  prince  to  leave  you 
in  this  way?'  Thereupon  some  men  imme- 
diately hoisted  him  on  their  shoulders,  walked 
into  the  water,  and  set  him  on  board  the  ship. 
There  he  remained,  to  get  word  from  Paris. 
When  the  letters  came,  the  order  was  that  the 
prince  of  Orange  should  leave  the  country,  or 

else  the  French  would  not  make  peace  with 

271 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

the  States-General.  Thus  the  last  stadholder 
sailed  away  to  England,  landing  the  next  day 
at  Harwich.  When  he  left  The  Hague,  the 
envoys  of  Great  Britain,  Prussia,  Spain,  Italy, 
and  Hanover  departed  also. 

In  all  modem  Dutch  history,  Amsterdam, 
being  the  largest  city,  has  usually  led  the 
way  in  war  or  peace.  The  Dutch  republican 
general,  Daendels,  was  one  of  the  emigrants 
who  had  fled  to  France,  and  of  whom  there 
were  a  great  many  like  himself  then  in  the 
French  camp.  He  sent  word  to  the  burgo- 
master, promising  peace  and  safety  if  the  city 
was  surrendered,  but  massacre  if  they  refused. 
The  regents,  or  city  rulers,  agreed  to  yield. 
On  the  same  evening,  the  members  of  the 
revolutionary  committee,  gathering  together  by 
torchlight,  assembled  the  people  in  the  great 
broad  square,  called  the  Dam,  in  front  of  the 
city  hall.  Standing  on  the  steps,  they  pro- 
claimed the  Revolution,  urging  the  people  to 
treat  the  French  soldiers  well.  During  the 

O 

night,  which  was  very  quiet,  General  Daendels 
with  a  few  hussars  entered  the  city  and  took  a 
seat  with  the  revolutionary  committee.  This 
was  now  a  permanent  body,  which,  after  dis- 
missing the  city  council,  assumed  charge  of 
the  government  of  Amsterdam. 

272 


THE   FALL   OF   THE   REPUBLIC 

The  stadholders  of  the  United  Netherlands 
were  as  follows :  — 

Of  Holland. 

William  I.,  1559-1584. 
Maurice,  1585-1625. 
Frederick  Henry,  1625-1647. 
William  II.,  1647-1650. 
William  III.,  1672-1702. 

General  Hereditary  Stadholders. 

William  IV.,  1747-1751. 
William  V.,  1766-1795. 


273 


CHAPTER  XXX 

THE    BATAVIAN    REPUBLIC  AND   THE    KINGDOM    OF 

HOLLAND 

Now  began  some  lively  scenes  on  the  Dam, 
and  what  was  done  in  Amsterdam  was  imi- 
tated all  over  the  country.  Early  the  next 
morning,  a  pole,  representing  the  tree  of  liberty, 
was  planted  in  the  centre  of  the  square.  On 
top  of  this  was  a  high  hat,  with  the  revolution- 
ary cockade  and  the  tri-color,  red,  white,  and 
blue,  stuck  in  it.  Thousands  of  people,  men, 
women,  and  children,  joined  hands  together  in 
a  circle  and  danced  under  it,  singing,  making 
merry,  and  shouting,  "  Liberty,  equality,  and 
fraternity." 

From  the  steps  of  one  of  the  public  build- 
ings, a  proclamation  was  made  that  the  city 
government  had  obeyed  the  will  of  the  people. 
When  twenty-one  names  were  read  out  as 
provisional  popular  representatives,  the  great 
crowd  shouted  their  assent.  This  was  sup- 
posed to  be  their  vote,  and  the  Dam  was  called 

the  "  Plain  of  Liberty." 

274 


THE   BATAVIAN   REPUBLIC 
Another  committee  was  formed  of  delegates 

o 

from  committees  in  the  provinces,  and  this 
united  revolutionary  committee  completed  the 
work  throughout  the  country.  Thus,  before 
any  French  soldiers  arrived,  "  the  people  "  had 
changed  their  old  city  governments,  put  in  new 
officers,  and  decorated  themselves  with  the 
French  cockade.  The  "  Batavian  republic ' 
was  proclaimed. 

On  the  22d  of  January,  1795,  Generals  Piche- 
gru  and  Moreau  made  their  entrance  into 
The  Hague,  where  they  were  received  with 
enthusiasm.  In  Zeeland,  the  states  legislature 
changed  their  names  from  "  noble  and  mighty 
lords"  to  that  of  "representatives  of  the  peo- 
ple of  Zeeland,"  and  headed  their  acts  with  the 
motto,  "  Liberty,  equality,  and  fraternity." 

Now  began  a  period  of  eighteen  years  of 
French  rule,  in  which  some  things  good  were 
done  and  numerous  things  foolish  attempted. 
The  methods  of  government  were  completely 
changed,  and  many  old  customs  swept  away. 
Hereditary  nobility,  the  wearing  of  liveries, 
escutcheons,  ornaments  of  heraldry,  and  all  mo- 
nopolies and  special  privileges  were  abolished. 
Marriage  was  made  a  secular  contract.  Every- 
thing that  seemed  to  show  social  inequalities 

was  changed.    The  gallows  and  whipping-posts 

275 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

in  the  country  were  destroyed  as  relics  of  old 
barbarism,  and  opposed  to  the  dignity  of  man- 
kind. Along  with  these  went  the  total  abo- 
lition of  torture.  Reform  in  almost  everything 
was  the  order  of  the  day.  In  the  museums  of 
the  Netherlands,  one  may  look  upon  interesting 
relics  of  the  old  privileges  and  monopolies, 
which  came  to  an  end  in  1795.  The  stu- 
dent in  the  archives  notes  what  simplicity  the 
French  introduced  into  the  maze  and  confu- 
sion that  existed  under  the  old  republic. 

The  Dutch  people  had  to  pay  dearly  for 
the  liberty  brought  them  by  their  French  de- 
liverers. They  were  obliged  to  feed  and  clothe 
the  French  armies,  and  to  take  their  worthless 
paper  money.  Much  of  the  charm  and  sweet- 
ness of  the  old  life  passed  away  forever,  and 
the  new  order  of  things  was  very  distasteful  to 
many. 

When  Napoleon  Bonaparte  became  first 
consul,  or  ruler  of  France,  the  Dutch  found  in 
him  a  still  more  terrible  master.  Their  finest 
young  men  had  to  enlist  under  the  French 
eagles  and  fight  Napoleon's  battles.  In  1797, 
the  British  fleet  under  Admiral  Duncan  block- 
aded the  Texel,  the  great  northern  outlet  to 
the  Zuyder  Zee,  through  which  all  the  com- 
merce from  Amsterdam  and  several  other 

276 


THE   BATAVIAN   REPUBLIC 

cities  entered  and  departed.  The  shipping 
business  at  once  stopped  and  the  price  of  food 
rose.  When  the  Dutch  fleet  under  Admiral 
Winter  tried  to  break  up  this  blockade,  it  was 
met  by  Admiral  Duncan  who,  with  his  heavy 
British  ships  and  cannon,  captured  several  of 
the  Dutch  war  vessels  and  scattered  the  re- 
mainder. This  battle  was  fought  off  the  village 

o  o 

called  Camperduin,  or  "  the  camp  amid  the 
dunes,"  and  ever  since  there  has  been  a  vessel 
in  the  British  navy  called  "  Camperdown,"  in 
remembrance  of  this  great  victory. 

Two  years  later,  an  army  of  nearly  twenty-five 
thousand  Russian  and  British  troops  landed  in 
North  Holland  at  Kijkduin,  well  named  "  a 
peep  in  the  dunes."  To  the  surprise  of  the 
invaders,  the  Dutch  folks  were  not  very  anxious 
to  welcome  their  deliverers.  The  allied  army 
was  defeated  by  the  French  skillfully  massed 
together ;  for  the  Russians  had  lost  their  way, 
while  the  English  had  to  retreat  before  superior 
numbers.  In  1901,  with  impressive  ceremonies, 
a  monument  in  the  form  of  a  triple-armed 
Russian  cross  was  erected  at  the  burial  place 
of  the  Czar's  soldiers. 

In  1805,  Napoleon  himself  visited  his  new 
possessions;  for  Holland  had  now  become  little 

else  than  a  province  of  France.     He  entered 

277 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

Amsterdam  and  traveled  to  the  end  of  North 
Holland,  opposite  Texel  Island.  At  this  place, 
called  Den  Helder,  he  determined  to  build  a 
great  naval  station.  He  set  his  Spanish  pris- 
oners at  work  digging  and  hauling,  pile-driving 
and  pounding,  until  great  docks  and  dikes 
were  built  and  forts  were  made.  By  these 
labors  Den  Helder  became  one  of  the  strong- 
est places  in  Holland.  It  is  still  the  chief  naval 
station  of  the  kingdom.  Under  Napoleon,  the 
Dutch  pensionary  became  almost  like  a  king. 
There  were  three  political  parties  among  the 
Dutch  politicians,  named  the  Unitaries,  Fed- 
eralists, and  Democrats,  the  last  being  few  in 
number. 

Napoleon,  having  studied  the  geography  of 
the  Netherlands,  saw  that  the  country  had 
been  made  by  the  mud  brought  down  from  the 
rivers  of  Germany  and  France.  He  therefore 
considered  that  Dutch  soil  was  a  natural  part 
of  France,  so  that  he  felt  free  to  change  the 
constitution  of  the  country.  In  1807,  he  made 
the  Dutch  State  a  kingdom,  that  is,  the  king- 
dom of  Holland,  and  set  on  the  throne  his 
brother  Louis  as  the  king.  Louis  was  a  good 
man  and  endeavored  to  be  a  just  ruler.  The 
people  were  in  poverty  and  suffering.  Louis 
tried  to  make  the  country  rich  and  food  cheap. 

278 


THE   KINGDOM    OF  HOLLAND 

It  was  about  this  time  that  the  Dutch  began  to 
cultivate  chicory,  to  mix  with  or  to  use  instead 
of  coffee.  Indeed,  King  Louis  favored  those 
who  love  to  drink  this  cheering  beverage ;  for 
he  appointed  Herman  Daendels  to  be  gov- 
ernor-general of  the  East  Indies.  This  wise 

o 

and  able  man  had  forty-five  millions  of  coffee- 
trees  planted,  and  otherwise  greatly  improved 
the  Dutch  possessions. 

The  Dutch  having  a  king  must  also  now 
have  a  palace.  So  the  beautiful  city  hall  in 
Amsterdam,  which  had  been  built  in  1648,  to 
celebrate  the  completion  of  the  war  with  Spain, 
and  which  rested  on  thirteen  thousand  piles, 
was  made  the  palace,  and  it  is  still  called  the 
"  Paleis."  Yet,  although  it  is  exactly  the  right 
sort  of  a  building  for  a  city  hall,  it  is  not  fitted 
to  be  a  king's  dwelling.  As  all  citizens  of  the 
republic  had  equal  rights,  so  all  the  doors  front- 
ing the  Dam  are  of  the  same  size.  There  is 

o 

no  special  entrance  for  privileged  persons,  like 
kings  or  queens.  It  must  be  remembered  that 
the  Dutch  had  no  kings  or  queens  before  the 
nineteenth  century,  though  they  had  counts 
and  other  feudal  officers  under  the  Empire. 
Hence,  when  the  queen  comes,  or  royalty  visits 
the  Paleis,  they  decorate  the  door  of  entrance 

with  a  red  velvet  baldachin. 

279 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

King  Louis,  whose  wife  was  Hortense, 
daughter  of  the  Empress  Josephine,  and  whose 
son  became  Napoleon  III.,  lived  most  of  the 
time  at  the  Pavilion  near  Haarlem ;  but  often 
during  the  warmer  months  he  retired  to  Het 
Loo,  which  has  since  been  the  summer  resi- 
dence of  Dutch  royalty.  The  Royal  Institute 
of  science,  letters,  and  fine  arts  was  established 
in  1808.  Everyone  thought  the  popular  King 
Louis  would  long  reign  over  the  nation,  but  in 
1810  he  resigned,  refusing  to  be  a  mere  tool  in 
the  hands  of  his  brother  in  Paris. 

Then  Napoleon  Bonaparte  abolished  the 
kingdom  of  Holland,  making  the  Netherlands 
a  part  of  the  French  empire,  and  divided  the 
country  into  seven  departments.  He  tried  to 
change  the  Dutch  into  French  people,  en- 
couraging and  almost  compelling  them  to 
adopt  the  customs,  manners,  tastes,  and  ideas 
of  France.  Amsterdam  was  called  the  third 
city  of  the  French  empire,  and  the  Code 
Napoleon  was  made  the  law  of  the  land.  The 
conscription  was  enforced  on  all  males  above 
twenty  years  of  age,  so  that  one  fifth  of  the 
whole  population  became  soldiers.  Fifteen 
thousand  young  Dutchmen  marched,  with  Na- 
poleon's mighty  army,  to  disaster  at  Moscow. 

The  two   universities   of  Harderwijk  and  of 

280 


THE   KINGDOM   OF   HOLLAND 

Franeker  were  suppressed,  and  those  at  Utrecht 
and  Amsterdam  were  reduced  to  the  grade  of 
secondary  schools.  The  French  prohibition 
of  English  goods  raised  the  cost  of  the  neces- 
saries of  life,  so  that  the  Dutchman's  coffee  and 
sugar  became  too  dear  for  poor  folks  to  buy. 
Beets  were  extensively  cultivated,  and  sugar, 
made  from  these  roots,  took  the  place  of  that 
made  from  sugaf  cane.  The  day  of  the  gen- 
eral use  of  cocoa  and  chocolate  had  not  yet 
come. 

Although  the  British  could  not  at  first  win  in 
the  field  against  Napoleon,  who  had,  by  1809, 
forced  Prussia,  Russia,  and  Austria  to  acknow- 
ledge his  power,  they  attempted  to  capture  Ant- 
werp. A  mighty  fleet  of  nearly  two  hundred 
ships,  with  over  forty  thousand  soldiers,  was 
sent  up  the  river  Scheldt,  but  instead  of  going 
straight  on,  as  he  had  been  ordered,  the  Brit- 
ish commander  stopped  to  bombard  Flushing. 
This  took  much  time,  and  when  the  troops 
were  landed  on  the  island  of  Walcheren,  they 
spent  a  whole  month  among  the  marshes, 
where  thousands  of  them  were  struck  down 
with  malarial  fever.  One  half  the  army  died, 
and  the  whole  expedition  proved  a  failure. 
To-day  one  can  find  the  village  graveyards  of 

Zeeland  thickly  sown  with  the  tombstones  of 

281 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

British  soldiers  and  officers,  who  perished  in 
this  wretched  and  wasteful  campaign. 

These  formed  but  a  portion  of  that  large 
number  of  thirty-two  million  men,  which  a 
German  military  officer  reckons  to  have  been 
slain  in  battle  or  who  died  of  wounds  or  dis- 
ease in  the  wars  of  the  nineteenth  century. 
On  the  other  hand,  thousands  of  Dutch  lads, 
or  "conscripts'  as  they  were  called,  lost  their 
lives  in  the  awful  sufferings  during  the  retreat 
from  Moscow,  yet  "  the  man  of  destiny  "  still 
wanted  more  soldiers.  This  frightful  loss  of 
life  and  great  suffering,  together  with  the  con- 
stant intermeddling  of  Napoleon  with  the  edu- 
cation and  customs  of  the  country,  made  the 
Dutchmen  think  him  a  tyrant.  They  were 
very  bitter  against  his  rule  and  were  prepared 
to  revolt  as  soon  as  they  had  a  good  oppor- 
tunity. Having  won  their  land  from  the  sea, 
they  wanted  to  own  and  to  govern  it  them- 
selves. 


282 


CHAPTER   XXXI 
"THE  DUTCH  HAVE  TAKEN  HOLLAND " 

THE  Hollanders  had  not  long  to  wait.  The 
allies,  Austria,  Bavaria,  Russia,  Prussia,  and 
Sweden,  raised  an  army  of  three  hundred  thou- 
sand men  and  determined  to  crush  Napoleon. 
At  Leipsic,  during  the  three  days'  battle,  from 
October  16  to  19,  1813,  Napoleon  was  de- 
feated, and,  in  the  next  campaign,  France  was 
invaded.  Early  in  April,  1814,  the  combined 
German,  British,  and  Russian  armies  entered 
Paris.  Napoleon  was  exiled  and  the  count  of 
Provence  was  made  King  Louis  XVIII. 

The  government  of  this  Bourbon  prince  was 
very  bad.  Napoleon  left  Elba  and,  landing  in 
France,  reached  Paris  on  March  20,  1815. 
He  called  on  the  French  people  to  rally  around 
him.  In  June,  he  commanded  an  army  of  two 
hundred  thousand  men,  but  by  this  time  all 
Europe  was  determined  to  end  the  career  of  a 
man  whom  they  believed  to  be  an  enemy  to 
civilization.  Seven  hundred  thousand  soldiers 

were  put  into  the  field. 

283 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

At  Brussels,  by  the  middle  of  June,  the 
duke  of  Wellington  had  over  one  hundred 
thousand  men,  consisting  of  British,  Germans, 
Hollanders,  and  Belgians.  The  Dutchmen, 
heartily  disgusted  with  French  rule  and  con- 
sidering Napoleon  a  tyrant,  had  enlisted  in 
large  numbers  to  fight  against  him.  The 
Prussian  force,  numbering  over  one  hundred 
thousand  men  commanded  by  Marshal  Blucher, 
was  marching  to  join  the  British.  Napoleon 
hoped  to  prevent  the  union  of  the  two  armies. 
He  planned  to  attack  and  defeat  each  one  in 
succession ;  but  this  he  was  unable  to  do. 
Worn  out  with  fatigue  and  illness,  and  no 
longer  possessing  his  former  great  powers 
of  mind  and  body,  he  lost  the  battle  of  WTater- 
loo,  which  was  fought  June  18,  1815.  The 
French  army  was  utterly  broken,  and  Napoleon 
rode  away,  to  finish  with  a  journey  to  St. 
Helena. 

On  this  famous  field,  the  younger  prince  of 
Orange  and  his  Dutch  soldiers  fought  like 
heroes  and  performed  prodigies  of  valor,  so 
that  their  countrymen  at  home  were  filled  with 
enthusiasm.  Everything  was  now  ripe  in  Hol- 
land for  the  Dutch  to  rise  up,  drive  out  the 
French,  and  regain  their  own  country. 

Word  was  sent  over  to  England,  where  Wil- 

284 


FOUNDERS   OF    THE  CONSTITUTION 


THE  NEW   YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


ASTOR,  LENOX  AND 
TII.OEN  FOUNDATIONS. 
C 


"THE  DUTCH  HAVE  TAKEN  HOLLAND" 

liam  Frederick,  the  son  of  the  last  stadholder, 
William  V.,  was  living,  to  get  ready  to  come 
back  to  Holland.  Several  famous  Dutch  states- 
men, Hoogendorp,  Stirum,  Maasden,  Falk, 
Fagel,  and  Perponcher,  had  arranged  the  de- 
tails of  a  new  government.  On  November  30, 
the  prince  of  Orange,  who  was  to  be  King 
William  I.,  arrived  in  Holland.  As  he  said  he 
would  enter  the  country  as  his  father  had  left 
it,  he  sailed  in  a  fishing  smack  from  England, 
and,  before  a  great  crowd  of  people  assembled 
at  Scheveningen,  he  was  carried  ashore  on  the 
shoulders  of  some  stalwart  fishermen. 

While  the  Dutch  were  getting  ready  to 
break  the  Gallic  yoke,  several  signs  gave  the 
Frenchmen  a  hint  of  what  was  coming,  al- 
though they  did  not  at  first  understand  what 
these  popular  demonstrations  meant.  The 
emblems  of  Napoleon's  authority,  and  even 
the  statues  and  government  property,  were 
smeared  with  orange  paint.  The  men  who 
did  these  things  could  not  be  found,  but  those 
who  understood  the  meaning  of  the  act  knew 
that  the  Dutchmen  were  determined  to  have 
their  own  rulers  back  again,  and  that  the 
French  would  soon  be  driven  out  of  the  coun- 
try. 

The  Dutch  had  never  been  used  to  kings. 

285 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

In  olden  time,  the  Netherlands  formed  part  of 
the  German  empire,  but  in  the  country  itself 
they  had  no  officers  higher  than  barons  and 
counts.  Although  now  a  king  was  to  be  at  the 
head  of  the  government,  the  people  were  to 
have  more  freedom  than  their  fathers  enjoyed 
under  the  old  republic ;  for  he  was  to  be  a  con- 
stitutional ruler.  Indeed,  in  a  national  con- 
vention, a  constitution  was  first  written  out  and 
agreed  upon,  and  then  the  prince  of  Orange 
was  invited  to  come  and  obey  it. 

This  instrument,  called  the  fifth  constitution, 
was  made  by  a  congress  of  the  notable  men  of 
the  land,  who  assembled  in  the  New  Church 
at  Amsterdam  March  29,  1814,  and  voted  it. 
Under  it  there  were  to  be  two  houses  of  the 
national  legislature,  freedom  of  religion,  and 
the  equality  of  all  before  the  law.  The  bound- 
aries of  the  nine  provinces  were  fixed.  North 
Brabant  and  Limburg  were  not  then  a  part  of 
the  kingdom. 

In  the  old  New  Church  in  Amsterdam,  built 
in  the  year  1408,  the  prince  of  Orange  was 
solemnly  inaugurated  king  as  William  I.  The 
ancient  edifice  was  hung  with  flags,  banners, 
and  tapestry,  while  around  and  fronting  the 
king  stood  the  chief  men  and  women  of  Hol- 
land, in  the  costume  of  the  period,  making 

286 


"THE  DUTCH  HAVE  TAKEN  HOLLAND" 

a  brilliant  picture.  With  the  little  country  once 
more  in  their  possession,  and  their  foreign  mas- 
ters driven  out,  all  Europe  was  electrified  by 
the  news,  and  laughed  at  the  announcement, 
that  "  the  Dutch  have  taken  Holland." 


287 


CHAPTER   XXXII 

BELGIUM  AND    HOLLAND    UNITED  AND  SEPARATED 

A  CONGRESS  of  European  powers  was  held  after 
the  battle  of  Waterloo,  and  it  was  decided  that 
Belgium  and  Holland  should  be  united  in  a 

o 

single  kingdom,  over  which  King  William  I.  of 
Holland  was  to  rule.  Again,  as  in  the  old  days 
before  the  troubles  with  Spain  and  the  war 
of  independence,  and  from  1576  to  1579,  the 
seventeen  provinces  of  the  Netherlands  became 
one  domain. 

Yet  the  new  union  was  a  weak  and  poor 
one.  The  two  nations  were  not  alike,  and  are 
still  quite  different,  in  religion,  manners,  ideas, 
and  interests.  The  people  of  the  northern 
Netherlands,  usually  spoken  of  as  Holland, 
were  Protestants,  active  in  manufactures  and 
commerce,  spoke  Dutch,  and  were  strongly 
democratic  in  ideas.  Those  of  the  southern  or 
Belgian  Netherlands  were  Roman  Catholic  in 
religion,  most  of  the  people  spoke  French,  and 
were  agricultural  and  manufacturing.  Besides 

O  O 

two  languages  and  two  strains  of  blood,  Flem- 

288 


BELGIUM   AND   HOLLAND 

ish  and  Walloon,  the  people  were  much  under 
the  control  of  their  priests. 

King  William  I.  was  far  from  being  a  wise 
ruler,  and  soon  became  unpopular  with  the  Bel- 
gians. When  that  revolution  broke  out  in  Paris 
which  drove  out  the  Bourbon  king,  Charles  X., 
and  set  up  Louis  Philippe,  there  was  trouble  in 
Belgium,  which  finally  exploded  in  1830.  Ex- 
cited by  the  words  and  music  of  the  French 
Marseillaise,  the  mob  plundered  the  house  of 
the  Dutch  minister  and  hoisted  the  old  colors 
of  Brabant,  now  Belgium's  tri-color  flag  of 
black,  yellow,  and  red.  All  over  the  country 
the  people  rose  up  to  drive  out  the  Dutch  army. 
A  provisional  government  was  formed  and  the 
European  congress,  meeting  in  London,  de- 
creed the  separation  of  the  two  countries. 

In  the  field  there  was  a  "  Ten  Days'  Cam- 
paign," with  some  little  skirmishing,  but  not 
many  lives  were  lost.  On  the  water  the  daring 
bravery  of  Van  Spijk  is  well  remembered.  He 
had  been  an  orphan  boy,  reared  in  the  orphan- 
age of  the  city  of  Amsterdam,  and  educated  for 
the  navy.  In  February,  1831,  while  in  com- 
mand of  a  Dutch  gunboat  at  Antwerp,  he  saw 
hundreds  of  Belgians  coming  in  boats  to  cap- 
ture his  vessel.  Knowing  that  he  would  lose 
his  little  ship,  he  ran  to  the  powder  magazine, 

289 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

fired  his  pistol  into  it,  and  the  ship  was  blown 
up.  To-day,  in  Amsterdam,  one  can  see  in 
the  parlor  of  the  orphan  house  his  sword  and 
accoutrements,  and  at  Egmond-aan-Zee  there 
is  a  bronze  lion  to  his  honor.  On  the  Dam, 
fronting  the  palace  in  Amsterdam,  is  the  monu- 
ment of  the  Iron  Cross,  in  honor  of  those 
Dutchmen  who  were  killed  in  this  war,  and 
there  is  in  Brussels  a  memorial  to  the  Belgians 
slain  at  the  same  time.  Limburg  was  given  to 
Holland,  as  one  of  her  provinces,  making,  with 
North  Brabant,  eleven  in  all.  In  1839,  the 
river  Scheldt,  which  since  1648  had  been  shut 
up  from  foreign  commerce,  was  fully  opened  to 
the  world.  In  1863,  all  river  dues  were  abol- 
ished. From  this  time  Antwerp  became  rich 
and  great,  and  is  now  one  of  the  chief  seaports 
of  Europe.  In  the  Place  Marnix,  one  may  see 
a  superb  statue  erected  in  1883,  showing  how 
the  opening  of  the  river  has  been  the  source  of 
Antwerp's  life  and  wealth. 

King  William  I.  had  much  money,  but  was 
neither  wrise  nor  popular.  He  resigned  in  1840, 
and  his  son,  the  prince  of  Orange,  the  brave 
young  military  officer  who  had  fought  at  Wa- 
terloo, and  was  greatly  admired  by  the  people, 
was  made  kinor  He  had  married  the  Russian 

o 

princess,  Anna  Paulowna,  who  won  great  popu- 

290 


P! 

(Sat- 

(MMMBtt 

assssss^x  ^SwS^s 

-Sgste!f>v^ 

•—  . 

•^RwEK&v. 

*•*!•*•»"!  .  .  •-•-*.-sear"»>--*~4:    V         ^_-                  -  .     .4  — 

""fe^T 

.  -  -'Jrrf"*TBHP'»i- 

'IT"1       ««»^--~. 

.  •;      •:,     '     ^Ts.^ 

,    •         *.                                    r^i 

jf-*~   -!_„ 

*  i-         v;^"*--"^*  * 
^•T 

itrf^ 
»-           •"       -,^^*-^ 

-     .    •*,.£]    ^ 

-«l^ 

-imMH   •'•       -        ^    •            r- 

•4*                 *.       ^»^^-»                     f 

J    ,.      -1$^', 

***-•                                                        "  '3r 

P'                  «««<r  t 

TV 

V^V> 

1              ^^ 

•^^ 

-'^ 

"v 

i  _  •'-•  -' 

•      —  T— 

•         -   : 

V.,              f. 
| 

-      V-J.  . 
dM 

' 

I 

1 

if       '.""    ?.-":."         -                .'               -                                           »**»  -'--'»       '           j 

^-«:v-                                 .                                                 ZSSFS?** 

•-        ''- 


THE   NEW   YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


A6TOR,  LENOX  ANO 
TU.DEN  FOUNDATIONS. 

C 


BELGIUM   AND   HOLLAND 

larity  in  the  Netherlands.  The  new  king  was 
inaugurated  in  the  church  at  Amsterdam, 
November  28,  1840.  As  usual  in  the  Dutch 
inauguration  ceremony,  there  was  no  crown 
set  on  the  king's  head,  though  there  was  one 
on  the  table  in  front  of  the  monarch,  the  crown 
being  the  symbol  of  law  and  government,  and 
not  of  personal  possession. 

The  Dutch  idea  of  a  king  is  an  ancient,  sen- 
sible, and  Christian  one ;  it  is,  that  he  is  the 
servant  of  servants  in  the  kingdom.  King 
William  II.  was  greatly  beloved.  He  encour- 
aged art,  stimulated  trade,  and  did  that  good 
work  which  all  true  and  wise  statesmen  are 
glad  to  do  —  kept  the  old  and  the  new  in 
harmony,  with  reverence  for  the  past  and  hope 
for  the  future. 

The  Dutch  statesmen  revised  the  constitu- 
tion, and  the  new  law  of  the  land  was  published 
November  3,  1848."  Thorbecke  was  the  prime 
minister,  and  under  his  direction  a  great  era  of 
prosperity  dawned  upon  the  kingdom. 

When  king  William  II.  died  in  1849,  there 
was  real  mourning  all  through  the  country. 
His  kindly  face  may  be  seen  on  the  coins,  and 
his  statue  at  The  Hague  shows  how  the  peo- 
ple appreciated  him. 

The  new  ruler,  William  III.,  who  married 

291 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

Sophia,  the  daughter  of  the  king  of  Wurtem- 
burg,  was  destined  to  rule  forty-one  years, 
during  an  era  of  great  prosperity.  A  new 
force  had  come  into  the  world,  or  rather  men 
had  learned  to  tame  an  old  force.  The  Dutch- 
men no  longer  waited  for  the  winds  to  blow 
and  turn  their  windmills  and  move  their  boats ; 
for  steamships  on  the  water  and  locomotives 
on  land  were  the  novelties  in  fashion.  With 
large  steam  engines,  working  mighty  pumps, 
they  drained  Haarlem  Lake  dry,  reclaiming 
seventy-two  square  miles  of  land.  Now  on  its 
site  there  are  towns  and  villages  and  happy 
homes,  with  ten  thousand  people  living  where 
once  were  waters.  The  Dutch  dug  long  canals, 
made  new  rivers  and  drained  more  lakes,  in- 
creasing the  grain,  garden,  and  grazing  space 
of  the  country.  In  all,  they  have  diked  hun- 
dreds of  miles  of  seacoast  and  river  banks,  and, 
having  pumped  out  ninety  lakes,  they  may  yet 
dry  up  the  Zuyder  Zee  and  change  it  into  a 
polder,  or  drained  meadow. 

King  William's  reign  will  always  be  re- 
membered for  the  general  prosperity  of  the 
people,  at  home  and  abroad.  Besides  the  in- 
habitants dwelling  in  the  fatherland,  millions 
of  the  Netherlanders  have  emigrated  to  South 

Africa,  forming   what   was   formerly  Orange 

292 


BELGIUM   AND   HOLLAND 

Free  State  and  the  Transvaal  Republic,  or 
have  made  new  homes  in  the  East  and  West 
Indies,  or  North  America. 

The  Dutch  possess  the  East  India  archi- 
pelago, comprising  Borneo,  Sumatra,  Java,  and 
various  other  islands,  which  are  collectively 
called  Insulinde.  They  rule  this  Island  India 
so  well  that  peace  is  the  general  rule,  and  an 
outbreak  is  quite  rare  among  its  thirty-three 
million  inhabitants. 

Several  years  before  King  William  III.  be- 
gan his  reign,  that  is  about  1844,  emigration 
to  America  had  begun.  Tens  of  thousands 
of  Dutch  colonists  crossed  the  ocean  and 
came,  by  way  of  the  Mohawk  valley,  or  up 
the  Mississippi  river,  to  the  western  part  of  ' 
the  United  States,  where  they  and  their  de- 
scendants form  an  important  portion  of  our 
population.  They  settled  in  Michigan,  Wis- 
consin, Iowa,  Nebraska,  and  Dakota,  and  most 
of  them  have  made  the  best  kind  of  Ameri- 
cans. During  the  reign  of  William  III.  also, 
our  countryman,  John  Lothrop  Motley,  after 
long  study  in  the  archives  of  Spain,  France, 
Germany,  and  the  Netherlands,  wrote  the  "  Rise 
of  the  Dutch  Republic,"  the  "  History  of  the 
United  Netherlands,"  and  the  "  Life  of  John 
of  Barneveldt,"  telling  the  story  of  the  Dutch 

293 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

nation  from  1554  to  about  1620,  the  year  in 
which  the  Pilgrim  fathers  and  mothers  left 
Holland  to  settle  New  England. 

To  King  William  and  Queen  Sophia  sons 
and  daughters  were  born,  and  for  a  while  it 
looked  as  if  there  would  be  plenty  of  heirs  to 
the  Dutch  throne.  The  queen's  drawing-rooms 
were  famous  for  the  brilliant  array  of  artists, 
scholars,  and  men  and  women  noted  for  their 
part  in  making  the  world  more  beautiful  and 
better  worth  living  in.  Queen  Sophia  died  in 
1874,  and  her  children,  one  after  another,  fol- 
lowed her. 

On  January  7,  1879,  King  William  married 
the  Princess  Emma  of  Waldeck-Pyrmont.  On 
August  30,  1880,  their  daughter,  Wilhelmina, 
was  born.  The  child,  delicate  at  first,  grew 
up  to  be  strong  and  healthy,  as  well  as  lovable 
and  beautiful.  Before  she  was  ten  years  old 
she  became  heir  apparent,  by  the  death  of  the 
last  of  the  king's  sons.  Her  father,  the  king, 
died  shortly  after  and  was  buried,  as  all  the 
princes  of  the  house  of  Orange  have  been,  in 
the  great  church  at  Delft. 


294 


CHAPTER   XXXIII 

THE  TWO  QUEENS,  EMMA  AND  WILHELMINA 

QUEEN  EMMA  became  regent  and  took  charge 
of  the  education  of  her  daughter,  who  was 
trained,  as  indeed  most  educated  Dutch  ladies 
and  gentlemen  are,  to  speak  fluently  four  lan- 
guages, English,  German,  French,  and  Dutch. 
Her  native  tongue  is  one  of  the  strongest  and 
clearest  languages  in  Europe,  with  abundance 
of  first-class  literature,  and  is  rich  in  works  of 
history,  science,  poetry,  fiction,  and  almost  every 
form  of  literary  composition.  It  is  necessary 
and  pleasant,  however,  for  a  queen  to  talk  with 
people  from  other  countries. 

The  young  princess  spent  much  of  her  time 
at  the  beautiful  rural  palaces  of  Soestdijk  and 
Het  Loo.  She  was  not  only  bright  and  for- 
ward in  her  studies,  but  rather  fond  of  pets, 
especially  dogs  and  horses.  When  coming  to 
maidenhood,  she,  with  her  mother,  visited  each 
one  of  the  provinces  in  turn,  enjoying  the  sights 
and  the  costumes  of  the  peasants,  and  sharing 

the  delight  of  the  people.     In  Friesland,  she 

295 


HISTORY    OF    HOLLAND 

wore  the  Frisian  costume  presented  to  her  by 
the  women  of  the  province.  Besides  the  close- 
fitting  dress,  belt,  and  chatelaine,  she  donned 
the  golden  helmet,  with  its  metal  rosettes  in 
front  of  the  ears.  The  gold  "  feather,"  as  it  is 
called,  which  projects  across  the  forehead,  was, 
in  her  case,  set  with  diamonds,  the  gift  of  the 
Frisian  ladies.  According  as  it  is  worn  on  the 

o 

left  or  the  right,  it  shows  that  the  wearer  is 
married  or  unmarried.  In  Zeeland,  the  peasant 
women,  arrayed  in  all  the  different  costumes 
of  the  various  villages  or  districts,  appeared 
before  her. 

When  fifteen  years  of  age,  in  July,  1895, 
at  The  Hague,  she  decorated  the  heroes  of 
Lombok,  who  under  General  Vetter  had  won 
victory  in  the  East  Indies. 

In  Drenthe,  at  Bailer  Kuyl,  near  Rolde,  the 
queens  were  entertained  with  a  tableau  in  the 
leafy  woods,  which  showed  how  a  court  of  jus- 
tice was  held  and  trials  for  crime  deliberated 
upon  in  the  primeval  days,  when  there  were  no 
books  or  written  history,  but  when  men's,  and 
especially  women's,  memories  were  strong  and 
clear.  The  place  was  highly  appropriate  ;  for  it 
is  in  this  region  that  the  greatest  number  of  the 
Hunnebedden,  or  "giants'  graves,"  are  found. 

In  an  open  space,  with  the  semi-circle  of 

296 


QUEEN    VVILHELMINA 


THE  NEW   YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


ASTOR,   LENOX  AND 

FOUNDATIONS. 

L_ 


TWO   QUEENS,    EMMA   AND   WILHELMINA 

mighty  trees  in  the  rear,  the  chief  judge,  having 
on  his  head  a  cap  like  a  coronet  and  holding 
the  wand  of  justice  wrapped  round  with  ribbon, 
sat  on  a  rock  covered  with  a  bearskin.  On  his 
right  and  left  were  ranged  the  six  judges,  one 
of  them  being  the  Druid  priest  dressed  in 
white,  his  forehead  wreathed  with  oak  leaves, 
while  the  other  five  were  chiefs,  stalwart  in 
figure  and  armed  with  heavy  swords.  Behind 
the  principal  judge  stood  the  armor  bearer,  with 
a  lengthy  spear  and  tremendous  buckler.  Fur- 
ther to  the  left  was  another  tall  pole  with  a 
round  shield  upon  it,  and  on  its  top  the  skull 
and  horns  of  an  ox.  Fifty  or  one  hundred 
strong  men,  armed  with  spears,  and  their  heads 
either  capped  with  the  old  metal  helmets  of  the 
Teutonic  warriors  or  bareheaded,  with  their 
hair  gathered  into  a  knot,  one  of  them  with 
outspread  wings  on  his.  helmet,  stood  all  ready 
to  carry  out  the  decrees  of  the  judge.  To  the 
left,  in  the  foreground,  were  seven  beautiful 
women  dressed  in  white,  whose  duty  it  was  to 
remember  what  was  said.  Altogether  it  was 
a  spirited  reproduction  of  a  scene  frequent  in 
primeval  days,  when  law  was  unwritten  and 
there  were  no  prisons,  but  when  justice  was 
simple  and  rude,  though  perhaps  thorough. 

Besides  having  an  English  governess  and  in- 

297 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

structors  in  the  languages,  Queen  Wilhelmina 
was  trained  in  the  religion  of  the  Reformed 
Church  by  the  domine,  or  pastor,  of  the  great 
church  at  The  Hague.  In  history  her  tutors 
were  Professor  P.  J.  Blok  of  Leyden,  and  others. 
She  often  visited  the  great  Rijks  Museum  in 
Amsterdam,  and  was  there  instructed  by  the 
wise  men  and  women  who  could,  with  abun- 
dant object-lessons,  tell  her  the  glorious  story 
of  her  ancestors  and  of  the  country  which  she 
was  to  rule.  Thus  richly  endowed  in  mind  and 
body,  the  time  drew  near  when,  her  eighteenth 
year  ended,  she  should  be  formally  inaugurated 
as  sovereign  of  the  Netherlands.  Then  the 
regency  of  her  mother  would  end. 

The  whole  country  prepared  to  celebrate 
with  her ;  for  their  joy  was  one.  All  classes 
and  conditions  of  the  people  were  eager  to  take 
part  in  some  way.  The  wealthier  people  sub- 
scribed money  and  placed  in  the  New  Church  at 
Amsterdam  a  superb  memorial  window.  This 
showed  the  succession  of  the  house  of  Orange, 
from  William  the  Silent  to  Wilhelmina.  The 
life-sized  historical  figures  of  the  great  men 
whose  names  fill  the  page  of  the  Netherlands 
history,  and  of  the  women  whose  energy  and 
goodness  so  helped  the  men,  make  a  glorious 
vision  of  light  and  color. 

298 


CHAPTER  XXXIV 

THE    REIGN    OF    QUEEN    WILHELMINA 

No  sovereign  was  ever  more  beloved  by  her 
people  than  the  girl  queen,  Wilhelmina,  who, 
as  the  nineteenth  century  drew  to  a  close,  was 
the  last  scion  of  the  house  of  Orange ;  for  all 
other  heirs  in  the  direct  line  had  passed  away. 
The  close  tie  of  mutual  affection  between  this 
illustrious  family  and  the  Dutch  nation  is  one 
of  the  grand  things  in  history.  On  the  eve 
of  the  royal  inauguration,  as  Queen  Emma 
announced  in  dignified  and  fitting  terms  her 
intended  abdication  in  favor  of  her  daughter, 
so  also  Wilhelmina  wrote  what  reads  like  a 
love  letter  "  to  my  people,"  asking  for  their 
love  and  loyalty.  The  New  Church  in  Am- 
sterdam, as  in  the  case  of  her  three  royal 
ancestors,  was  the  place  chosen  for  her  to  take 
her  oath  of  office  and  to  receive  the  loyal  vows 
of  the  ministers. 

On  the  morning  of  inauguration  day,  Sep- 
tember 6,  1898,  the  festivities  were  ushered  in 

with  music  in  the  air.     In  most  of  the  large 

299 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

church  spires  are  chimes  of  bells,  numbering 
from  a  score  to  a  hundred.  The  players  fre- 
quently give  concerts  up  in  the  air,  while  every 
clay  the  bells  strike  the  hours,  halves,  and  quar- 
ters, the  chimes  ringing  out  a  merry  tune,  a 
stanza  of  a  hymn,  an  operatic  air,  or  some  pa- 
triotic or  lullaby  song.  On  the  morning  of  Sep- 
tember 5,  initiating  "  the  national  honeymoon," 
the  carillons  in  the  steeples  had  begun  early. 
Amsterdam  looked  more  like  fairyland  than 
an  ordinary  city.  The  shops  were  closed,  and 
crowds  from  all  the  country  round  filled  the 
streets  with  a  million  of  happy  people,  good 
natured,  and  well  behaved. 

The  mother  and  daughter,  "  the  king's 
widow"  and  the  queen,  left  The  Hague  and 
arrived  in  the  capital  city  on  the  "  Y  '  early 
in  the  afternoon.  This  was  the  beginning  of 
the  "joyous  entry."  Wilhelmina  sat  with  her 
mother  in  an  open  carriage,  smiling  to  the 
people  and  greeting  them  with  wavings  of 
her  little  lace  handkerchief,  while  their  throats 
became  hoarse  with  shouts  of  welcome.  Arriv- 
ing at  the  great  square  in  front  of  the  palace, 
she  rode  round,  and  entering  the  building  soon 
reappeared  on  the  veranda.  Facing  her  in 
welcome  were  ranged  the  representatives  of 
every  branch  of  the  military  and  naval  service, 

300 


^HE   N  EW    YORK 

BRARY 


THE   JOYOUS   ENTRY 


AMSTERDAM,   1898 


THE   NEW    YORK 

PUBLIC  LIBRARY 


ASTOR,  LENOX  AND 

TILOE.N  FOUNDATIONS. 
»  I— 


THE   REIGN   OF   QUEEN  WILHELMINA 

cavalry,  infantry,  artillery,  engineers,  marines, 
and  sailors,  besides  a  company  of  young  gen- 
tlemen dressed  in  the  uniform  of  the  time  of 
Prince  Maurice  in  the  seventeenth  century. 
These  looked  as  gay  and  bright  as  a  swarm  of 
beetles  or  butterflies.  They  were  armed  with 
long  pikes,  and  the  shotmen  had  heavy  mus- 
kets, which,  when  they  fired,  they  rested  on 
prongs  or  supports.  Their  evolutions  attracted 
much  attention. 

After  the  queen  had  greeted  her  loyal  de- 
fenders, and  sabre,  rifle,  carbine,  and  pike 
had  been  brought  to  a  "  present,"  the  military 
filed  out  and  disappeared.  For  a  few  minutes 
the  square  was  vacant.  Then,  by  the  queen's 
own  order  and  plan,  a  signal  was  given  and 
the  people  flowed  in  from  the  seven  or  eight 
streets  leading  into  the  Dam  square,  and  a 
mass  of  perhaps^ fifty  thousand  .human  beings 
filled  the  space.  Again  the  queen  appeared 
on  the  balcony,  greeting  them  all,  smiling  and 
waving  her  handkerchief,  while  the  myriads 
shouted  their  delight. 

The  next  day  was  the  "  coronation."  Walk- 
ing from  the  palace  to  the  New  Church, 
crowded  with  the  elite  of  the  kingdom,  the 
young  queen  entered  and  took  her  seat  in  the 
throne  chair,  a  picture  of  radiant  health  and 


301 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

loveliness.  She  was  dressed  in  white,  with  train 
skirt,  over  which,  and  hung  from  her  shoulders, 
were  four  yards  of  red  velvet  embroidered  with 
gold.  She  had  a  tiara  of  diamonds  on  her 

o 

head,  jewels  at  her  waist,  and  the  military  cor- 
don of  the  order  of  Orange  over  her  breast.  On 
the  left  stood  a  sultan,  rajahs,  and  vassal  rulers, 
her  dark-skinned  subjects  from  Insulinde,  the 
East  Indies,  and  deputies  from  the  colonies. 
On  the  right  were  her  ministers  of  state  and 
her  princely  relatives,  and  in  front  the  members 
of  the  States-General,  and  chosen  guests  from 
the  Netherlands  and  from  many  nations. 

Just  as  the  fair  young  queen  rose  to  read 
her  speech,  the  clouds  broke  and  the  sunlight 
streamed  in  through  the  lofty  Orange  memo- 
rial window,  making  radiant  her  graceful  form. 
Her  enunciation  was  made  with  wonderful 
clearness,  and  she  was  heard  all  over  the 
house.  She  said  she  would  make  the  words 
of  her  royal  father  her  own,  "  The  house  of 
Orange  can  never,  no  never,  do  enough  for 
the  Netherlands."  At  this  many  eyes,  even  of 
stern  men  and  gray-haired  statesmen,  over- 
flowed. When  she  closed,  with  eyes  and  jew- 
eled right  hand  uplifted  to  Heaven,  with  the 
prayer,  "  So  help  me  truly,  God  Almighty,1' 
a  thrill  of  joy  and  hope  spread  through  all 

302 


THE   REIGN   OF   QUEEN   WILHELMINA 

hearts.  At  the  signal  of  the  herald,  all  rose 
and  shouted,  "  Live  the  Queen."  Mutual  oaths 
of  loyalty  and  of  faithfulness  to  the  constitu- 
tion were  exchanged  by  the  queen  and  her 
legislators.  The  four  banners  —  of  the  Nether- 
lands, of  the  house  of  Orange,  of  North  Hol- 
land, and  of  the  city  of  Amsterdam  —  dipped 
in  salutation  to  the  sovereign,  thus  inaugurated, 
and  the  impressive  ceremony  was  over.  Then 
followed  two  weeks  of  royal  and  popular  fes- 
tivities and  rejoicing. 

To  honor  their  queen,  the  poor  people  of 
Amsterdam  had  contributed  their  money  and 
bought  a  golden  coach,  superbly  made  and 
•decorated,  in  which  they  expected  her  to  ride 
to  the  ceremony.  She,  however,  preferred  to 
walk  under  a  canopy  the  few  feet  between  the 
doors  of  the  palace  and  the  church,  but  told 
the  people  that  she  would  reserve  the  golden 
coach  until  her  wedding  day.  Those  who  kept 
carrier  pigeons  had  sent  from  the  cities,  towns, 
villages,  and  hamlets  all  over  the  kingdom, 
their  trained  birds  to  Amsterdam.  They  were 
released,  all  at  one  moment,  on  the  day  given 
up  to  popular  sports,  in  presence  of  the  young 
queen,  to  carry  home  the  news. 

In  all  the  cities  and  towns  there  were  deco- 
rations and  celebrations,  banquets  and  merry- 

3°3 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

making,  with  parades  of  the  children,  but  in 
Amsterdam  and  at  The  Hague,  the  festivi- 
ties reached  the  acme  of  glory.  The  streets, 
bridges,  houses,  and  public  buildings  were 
adorned  with  the  red,  white,  and  blue  of  the 
national  flag  and  the  orange  of  their  rulers. 
The  sailors,  the  soldiers,  the  mechanics,  and 
all  the  different  kinds  of  societies,  and  even 
the  orphans  and  companies  of  boys  and  girls, 
wished  to  have  some  special  arch,  trophy,  or 
token  of  loyalty  in  some  form.  The  Water 
Feast  at  night,  as  became  the  country  under 
the  sea  level,  was  perhaps  the  most  brilliant  of 
all  the  outdoor  spectacles. 

On  and  over  the  canals  were  stretched  tens 
of  thousands  of  Japanese  lanterns  and  colored 
lamps.  On  the  bosom  of  the  river,  craft  of 
every  sort,  built  on  the  models  of  many  nations, 
floated  and  moved  about.  Their  myriads  of 
lights  were  reflected  in  the  water,  increasing  the 
splendor.  In  the  gardens  were  thousands  more 
of  lamps,  set  in  among  the  grass  and  flowers, 
while  in  front  of  the  houses  were  varied  devices 
in  star  and  flower,  wreath  and  blazonry,  the  lion 
of  Holland  and  the  arms  of  the  kingdom,  pro- 
vinces and  cities,  blossoming  in  jets  of  fire. 

During  the  following  summer  of  1899,  the 
Peace  Congress,  called  by  the  Czar  of  Russia 

3°4 


THE    REIGN   OF   QUEEN   WILHELMINA 

and  assembling  by  invitation  at  The  Hague, 
held  its  sessions  at  the  House  in  the  Wood, 
built  by  Amalia  Van  Solms,  in  memory  of  her 
husband,  Prince  Frederick  Henry.  Principles 
were  discussed  and  rules  laid  down  which 
must,  in  time,  mitigate  the  horrors  of  war.  In 
the  great  church  at  Delft,  exercises  were  held 
in  honor  of  Grotius,  the  Dutch  scholar  whose 
writings  on  international  law  had  made  the  In- 
ternational Court  of  Arbitration  possible.  Our 
ambassador  to  Germany,  Andrew  D.  White,  de- 
livered the  oration.  In  the  name  of  the  United 
States,  the  Great  Pacific  Power,  a  wreath  of 
silver  gilt  leaves  and  palms  was  laid  on  the 
grave  of  Grotius. 

During  the  war  in  South  Africa  between  the 
Britons  and  the  Boers,  the  Dutch  looked  on 
with  intense  sympathy,  but  took  no  part  in  the 
strife,  they  having  long  ago  retired  from  the  ac- 
tive politics  of  Europe,  content  to  do  their  part 
of  the  world's  work  in  other  ways  than  in  war. 

At  the  polls,  during  the  summer  of  1900,  the 
Anti-Revolutionary  party  triumphed  over  the 
Liberals,  and  Dr.  Abraham  Kuyper  was  made 
premier.  He  was  active  in  securing  peace  in 
South  Africa,  and  the  Dutch  gave  hearty  wel- 
come to  the  Boer  generals  who  visited  Holland 
in  1902. 

3°5 


HISTORY   OF   HOLLAND 

On  the  1 6th  of  October,  1900,  Queen  Wil- 
helmina  wrote  another  little  love  letter  "  aan 
mijn  volk  "  ("  to  my  people  "),  announcing  her 
engagement  to  Duke  Hendrik  of  Mecklen- 
burg-Schwerin.  On  the  7th  of  February,  1901, 
after  riding  in  her  golden  coach  to  the  great 
church  in  The  Hague,  they  were  united  in 
marriage  according  to  the  ritual  of  the  Re- 
formed Dutch  Church  by  the  court  chaplain, 
Dr.  Van  der  Flier.  Again  for  a  fortnight  the 
cities  of  the  Netherlands  were  in  festal  array 
by  day  and  illuminated  at  night  while  the  royal 
couple  celebrated  their  honeymoon. 

In  recent  years,  especially  since  the  celebra- 
tions by  the  Dutch  people  of  the  three  hun- 
dredth anniversary  of  many  a  stirring  event 
of  the  Eighty  Years'  War  of  Independence, 
through  the  stimulus  given  to  the  study  of 
Dutch  history  by  our  own  historian,  Motley, 
the  endowment  of  chairs  of  history  in  the  uni- 
versities, and  the  formation  of  historical  so- 
cieties, there  has  been  a  revival  of  patriotic 
interest  in  the  past.  The  fruits  of  this  feeling 
are  seen  in  the  numerous  statues,  tablets,  and 
other  works  of  art  which  make  a  tour  in  the 
Netherlands  so  fascinating  to  the  student  who 
would  know  in  detail  the  long  and  glorious 

story  of  the  Dutch  people. 

306 


APPENDIX 


APPENDIX 

OUTLINE  OF  DUTCH  HISTORY 
PREHISTORIC   TIME 

Netherlands  inhabited  by  Celtic  tribes. 
B.  c. 
100.  The  Frisians  and  Batavians  enter. 

THE    ROMAN    PERIOD 

54.  Julius  Caesar. 
ii.  Drusus. 

A.  D. 

14.  Germanicus. 

44.  Corbulo. 

70.  Revolt  of  Claudius  Civilis. 

277.  Weakening  of  the  Roman  power. 

400.  The  expansion  of  the  Germanic  tribes. 

THE    PRANKISH    PERIOD 

496.  Clovis  baptized. 

628.  Dagobert  fights  the  Frisians. 

First  Christian  church  at  Utrecht. 
700.  Willibrord  and  the  Gospel. 
755.  Boniface  killed  at  Dokkum. 
785.  Charles  the  Great  brings  the  Saxons  and  Frisians 

into  Christendom. 

800.  Coronation  of  Charles  at  Rome. 
8 10.  Beginning  of  the  Norman  inroads. 
814.  Death  of  Charles  the  Great. 

3°9 


APPENDIX 

839-1260.  The  Zuyder  Zee  forms. 
843.  Compact  of  Verdun.     Beginning  of  the  evolution 
of  the  seventeen  Netherland  provinces. 

PERIOD  OF  THE  COUNTS  OF  HOLLAND 

922.  Dirk  I. 

1015.  Dirk  III.  founds  Dordrecht. 
1072.  Delft  founded. 
1096.  The  Crusades  begin. 
1170.  Great  flood.     Sea  fish  at  Utrecht. 
1219.  Beginning  of  dikes  and  dams.     Capture  of  Dami- 

etta. 

1277.  Great  flood.     The  Dollart  formed. 
1296.  Floris  V.  murdered  by  feudal  lords. 

1299.  Death  of  John  I.  and  end  of  the  house  of  Holland. 

THE   MIDDLE   AGES  :     THE    FOUR    PRINCELY   HOUSES 

1300.  Amsterdam  becomes  a  city. 

1329.  First  windmill  in  the  Netherlands  built. 
1341.  Elizabeth  flood.     Biesbosch  formed. 

1349.  Quarrels  of  the  Hooks  and  Cods  begin.     End  of 

the  house  of  Hainault. 

1350.  First  use  of  gunpowder  by  the  Dutch. 
1350.  Curing  of  herring  discovered. 

1423.  Use  of  printing  begun. 

1428.  Death  of  Jacqueline.    End  of  house  of  Bavaria. 

1477.  Death  of  Charles  the  Bold. 

Mary  of  Burgundy  grants  the  Great  Privilege. 
1482.  End  of  the  house  of  Burgundy  in  the  Netherlands. 
1490.  End  of  the  Hook  and  Cod  quarrels. 
1492.  Bread  and  cheese  riots. 


310 


APPENDIX 


THE    SPANISH    PERIOD 

1496.  Philip  the  Fair  marries  Joanna  of  Aragon,  crown 

princess  of  Spain. 
1515.  Charles  V.,  son  of  Philip,  assumes  rule  over  the 

Netherlands. 

1517.  Charles  V.  becomes  king  of  Spain. 
1517.  Charles  V.,  emperor. 
1536.  Menno  Simons  and  the  Mennonites. 
1543.  All   the    seventeen   provinces    united   under   one 

prince. 
1555.  Charles  V.  abdicates  in  favor  of  Philip  II. 

1558.  Battle  of  St.  Quentin. 

1559.  Philip  II.  departs  for  Spain.     Margaret  of  Parma 

made  viceroy. 

1564.  Exit  Grarivelle.     Influence  of  William  of  Orange. 

1565.  The  compromise  of  nobles. 

1566.  The  cry  of  the  Beggars.     The  image  storm. 

1567.  Departure    of    William   of    Orange    to   Germany. 

Arrival  of  Alva  and  his  army.    Flight  of  100,000 
Netherlanders  to  other  countries. 

REVOLT   OF    THE    UNITED    NETHERLANDS.      BEGINNING   OF 
THE    EIGHTY   YEARS'    WAR 

1568.  Egmont  and  Hoorn  beheaded. 
Battle  of  Heiligerlee. 
William  crosses  the  Maas. 

1572.  The  Water  Beggars  capture  Briel. 
Massacres  at  Zutphen  and  Naarden. 

1573.  Siege  of  Haarlem. 
Siege  of  Alkmaar. 

Naval  battle  on  the  Zuyder  Zee. 

Departure  of  Alva,  who  is  succeeded  by  Requesens. 

311 


APPENDIX 

1574.  Battle  on  Mook  Heath.    Death  of  Louis  and  Henry 
of  Nassau. 

Siege  of  Leyden. 
1576.  Death  of  Requesens. 

Revolt  of  Spanish  soldiers. 

Pacification  of  Ghent. 

Don  John  of  Austria. 

1578.  Amsterdam  adopts  the  Reformed  religion. 
Death  of  Don  John. 

Alexander  of  Parma,  grand  commander. 

1579.  Union  of  Utrecht. 

THE   REPUBLIC    OF   THE   UNITED    NETHERLANDS 

1581.  Philip  II.  deposed.     Dutch  Declaration  of  Inde- 
pendence. 

1583.  The  French  fury  at  Antwerp. 

1584.  Assassination  of  William  of  Orange. 

1585.  Arrival  of  the  earl  of  Leicester  and  the  English 

auxiliaries. 
Fall   of   Antwerp.      The   northern    and   southern 

provinces  separated. 

1588.  Destruction  of  the  Invincible  Armada. 
1590.  Maurice  begins  the  capture  of  Breda  and  other 

walled  cities. 

1594.  Secession  of  Groningen  from  the  union. 

1595.  East  India  commerce  opened  by  Houtman. 

1596.  The  Dutch  in  Nova  Zembla. 

1597.  Battle  of  Turnhout. 

1600.  Victory  at  Newport. 

1601.  Siege  of  Ostend. 

1602.  East  India  Company  formed. 
1607.  Naval  battle  at  Gibraltar. 
1609.  Twelve  Years'  Truce  begun. 

312 


APPENDIX 

1614.  The  Greenland  Company  formed. 

1618.  National  Synod  at  Dordrecht. 

1619.  Barneveldt  beheaded. 

1621.  Renewal  of  the  war  with  Spain. 

THE   BLOOM    OF   THE   REPUBLIC 

1621.  The  age  of  the  great  artists,  scholars,  poets,  engi- 
neers, explorers,  and  colonists. 
1625.  Death  of  Prince  Maurice. 

1628.  Piet  Hein  captures  the  Spanish  silver  fleet  in  the 

West  Indies. 

1629.  Prince  Frederick  Henry's  campaign. 

1648.  Peace  of  Munster,  Eighty  Years'  War  ended. 

1652.  First  naval  war  with  England. 
Tromp,  DeRuyter,  Evertsen. 
John  DeWitt,  grand  pensionary. 

1653.  Three  days'  sea  fight. 

1654.  Peace  with  England. 

1665.  Second  naval  war  with  England. 

1666.  Four  days'  sea  fight. 

1667.  DeRuyter  in  the  Thames. 
Peace  of  Breda. 

The  Perpetual  Edict. 

1668.  Triple  Alliance  against  France. 

1672.  French  invasion.     DeRuyter's  victory  at  Solebay. 

Murder  of  the  DeWitt  brothers. 

1673.  DeRuyter's  victory  over  the  allied  forces.     Retreat 

of  the  French. 

1678.  The  peace  of  Nymegen. 
1685.  Louis  XIV.  of  France  repeals  Edict  of  Nantes. 

Flight  of  Huguenots  into  the  Netherlands. 
1688.  William  III.  lands  in  England  with  a  Dutch  and 

Huguenot  army. 


APPENDIX 

1689'.  William  III.  made  king  of  Great  Britain  and  Ire- 
land. 
War  with  France. 

1697.  Peace  of  Ryswyk. 

1702.  Death  of  William  III. 

End  of  the  line  of  descent  from  William  of  Orange. 
The  succession  of  the  house  of  Orange-Nassau 
passes  to  John  William  Friso. 

1706-1709.  War  of  the  Spanish  Succession. 

Battles  of  Ramillies,  Oudenarden,  and  Malplaquet. 

1716.  Peace  of  Utrecht. 

1740-1748.  War  of  the  German  Succession. 

1747.  William  IV.  becomes  hereditary  stadholder. 

1751.  Princess  Anne,  governor  for  William  V. 

1766.  William  V.,  last  stadholder. 

1776.  Governor  Johannes  de  Graeff  fires  the  first  foreign 
salute  to  the  American  flag. 

1780.  John  Adams  in  Holland.    Friesland  recognizes  the 

United  States  of  America. 

The  Dutch  republic  recognizes  the  American  re- 
public. 

Fourth  war  with  Great  Britain. 

1781.  Naval  battle  off  the  Doggerbank. 

1784.  Civil  war  between  the  Patriots  and  the  prince's 
partisans. 

1787.  The  Prussians  support  the  prince.  Flight  of  Pa- 
triots into  France. 

THE    FRENCH   REGIME 

1789.  The  French  Revolution. 
1793.  The  French  invasion. 

1795.  The  French  cross  the  frozen  rivers.  Flight  of 
William  V.  to  England. 

3H 


APPENDIX 

1797.  Battle  of  Camperduin. 

1799.  Landing  of  the  Russians  and  British  on  North 

Holland. 

Battles  at  Bergen  and  Castricum. 
1802.  Peace  at  Amiens. 
1804.  Napoleon,  emperor  of  the  French. 
1806.  Louis,  king  of  Holland. 

1809.  British  land  on  Walcheren. 

1810.  The  Netherlands  incorporated  with  France. 

1812.  Napoleon's  march  to  Russia  and  retreat. 

1813.  Battle  of  Leipsic. 

1814.  Congress  of  Vienna. 

THE   KINGDOM    OF   THE    NETHERLANDS 

1815.  Northern  and  southern  Netherlands  made  into  one 

kingdom  under  William  I. 
Battle  of  Waterloo. 

1816.  Dutch  and  British  bombardment  of  Algiers. 
1821-1825.  Extension  of  Dutch  trade  and  conquest  in  the 

East  Indies. 

1830.  Separation  of  Belgium  and  the  Netherlands. 
The  "  Ten  Days'  Campaign." 

RENASCENCE   OF   THE   NETHERLANDS 

1830.  The  railway  system  inaugurated. 

1839.  Peace  with  Belgium. 

1840.  Abdication  of  William  I.  in  favor  of  William  II. 
1844.  Friendly  mission  to  Japan. 

1848.  Reform  of  the  Constitution  under  Thorbecke. 

1849.  Death  of  William  II.    Enthronement  of  William  III. 
1853.  Haarlem  Lake  drained. 

1863.  Emancipation  in  the  West  Indies.    The  Dutch  join 


3*5 


APPENDIX 

with  the  British,  French,  and  Americans  in  the 
bombardment  of  Shimonoseki,  Japan. 

1867.  Limburg  becomes  a  Dutch  province. 

1873.  The  Atcheen  War  begun. 

1876.  The  North  Sea  Canal  from  Amsterdam  opened. 

1879.  Marriage  of  William  III.  and  the  Princess  Emma 

of  Waldeck-Pyrmont. 

1880.  Birth  of  the  Princess  Wilhelmina. 
1883.  World's  Exposition  at  Amsterdam. 
1887.  Revision  of  the  Constitution. 

1890.  Death  of  William  III.     Expedition  to  Lombok. 

1894.  Queen  Emma,  regent. 

1898.  Queen  Wilhelmina  inaugurated. 

1900.  Marriage  of  Queen  Wilhelmina  to  Duke  Hendrik 

of  Mecklenburg-Schwerin. 
The  Peace  Congress  at  The  Hague. 

1901.  Triumph   of  the  Anti-Revolutionary  party  at  the 

polls. 
Dr.  Abraham  Kuyper,  premier. 


316 


INDEX 


INDEX 


ADA,  Countess,  79. 

Adolph  of  Nassau,  172,  173. 

Adrian,  Pope,  127. 

Africa,  252,  292,  305. 

Alcuin,  114. 

Alkmaar,  77,  124. 

Alva,  162,  167-169,  I74-I77*  181, 

184-187,  189,  191,  192,  196. 
Amalia  Van  Solms,  238,  240,  305. 
America,  Dutch  in,  255,  293. 
American  flag  saluted,  263. 
Amsterdam,   139,    212,  272,  279, 

291,  298-304. 
Anabaptists,  129,  137. 
Anglo-Saxons,  29. 
Anjou,  Duke  of,  215-217. 
Anna  Paulowna,  290. 
Antwerp,  158,  169,  176,  241,  269, 

281,  289,  290. 

Armada,  the  Invincible,  220,  221. 
Armor,  133. 
Atjeh,  227. 
Avila,  Don  Sancho  de,  198. 

Banners  of  William  of  Orange,  171. 
Barneveldt,  John  of,  219,  222-224, 

231-234,  293. 

Batavian  Republic,  275-278. 
Batavians,  18. 
Bavarian  house,  89-106. 
Beggars,  the  party  so  called,  1 54, 

155,  166,  168-170,  173.   See  also 

Water  Beggars. 
Belgic  Netherlands,  166,  288. 
Betuwe,  16. 
Beukels,  William,  94. 
Bible,  134-137.  234. 
Biervliet,  95. 
Biesbosch,  105. 

3 


Binnen  Hof,  79. 

Bishops,  145. 

Black  John,  183. 

Blok,  Prof.  P.  J.,  298. 

Boers,  305. 

Boisot,  Admiral,  197-203. 

Boniface,  37. 

Boodle,  origin  of  the  word,  91. 

Bookmaking  in  the  middle  ages, 

IT5- 
Bossu,  Count,  182,  183,  189,  192, 

195,  196. 

Bread  and  Cheese  War,  123,  124. 
Brederode,  151,  153. 
Brethren  of  the  Common  Life,  115. 
Briel,  180-182,  184. 
Brinio,  24,  25. 

Brussels,  173,  174,  181,  290. 
Burgundy,  house  of,  107-121. 
Buys,  Paul,  177. 

Caesar,  18, 19. 

Cambrai,  215. 

Camperduin,  277. 

Cats,  Jacob,  248. 

Ceremonies,  91,  297,  305. 

Charlemagne,  38-42. 

Charles  V.,  Emperor,  95, 126-128, 

140-143. 

Charles  the  Bold,  ill,  116. 
Charlotte  of  Bourbon,  216,  218. 
Chinese,  227. 
Chivalry,  6r,  62. 

Church  and  State,  139,  233,  234. 
Claudius  Civilis,  22-24. 
Cods,  the  party  so  called,  85-89, 

109,  1 20. 
Coevorden,  26. 
"Compromise,"  153. 

19 


INDEX 


Constitutions  of  the  Netherlands, 

214,  286. 

Cornellisen,  Gijsbert,  202,  203. 
Coster,  Laurens  Janszoon,  113. 
Council  of  Blood,  168. 
Council  of  Troubles,  168. 
Count,  the  word  and  the  office,  66. 
Crown,  the  Dutch,  291. 
Crusaders,  54-61,  69,  70. 

Daendels,  Herman,  272,  279. 

Dam,  in  place  names,  67. 

Dam,  the,  in  Amsterdam,  272,  274, 

290,  301. 

Damietje,  the,  69. 
Damietta,  69,  70. 
Danes,  49. 
Delfshaven,  123. 
Delft,  294,  305. 
Delftware,  102. 
De   Ruyter,  Admiral,    249,    250, 

254,  255. 
Dikes,  112,  292. 
Dirk  I.,  Count,  64. 
Dirkson,  Admiral,  195. 
Doggerbank,  265. 
Dokkum,  38,  186. 
Don  Frederic,  186,  189,  191,  192. 
Dordrecht,  120,  127,182,  186,  233. 
Drainage  of  lakes,  292. 
Drenthe,  10,  n,  296. 
Drinking  customs,  76,  154. 
Drusus,  19. 
Duncan,  Admiral,  277. 
Dunes,  3. 

East  Indies,  293,  302. 

Egmond  Abbey,  65. 

Egmont,    Count,    143,    146,    152, 

160-162,  167,  173,  174. 
Elizabeth  of  England,   166,   176, 

179. 

Emma,  Queen,  294,  295,  299,  300. 
England,    relations  with,  82,  99, 

101,  125,  176. 
Erasmus,  136-138. 


Falconry,  73-76. 
Feudalism,  44-48,  61,  66. 


Flag  of  the  Franks,  30,  32  ;  of  the 
Netherlands,  170;  of  Belgium, 
289. 

Flemings,  exodus  of  the,  165, 166. 

Floods,  105,  178. 

Floris  V.,  72,  75-77. 

Flushing,  149,  184,  281. 

Franks,  28-36. 

Frederick  Henry,  239,  240,  305. 

French  invasion,  269-275. 

French  rule  in  Holland,  275-285. 

Friesland,  81,  124,  186,  295. 

Frisians,  27-39,  52>  81,  91,  296. 

Gerard,  Balthazar,  217,  218. 

Germanic  tribes,  26-27,  4°- 

Ghent,  119,  148,  168. 

"  Giants'  graves,"  10,  296. 

Godfrey,  52. 

Goes,  102,  185,  188,  189. 

Golden    Fleece,  Knights  of  the, 

108,  156. 

Gouda,  100,  102,  186. 
Granvelle,  Cardinal,  149-152, 162, 

1 68,  220. 

Great  Privilege,  the,  118. 
Grotius,  233-235,  305. 
Gunpowder,  132. 

Haarlem,  70,  113,  191,  280,  292. 

Hague,  The,  79,  267,  304. 

Hainault,  house  of,  80-84,  88. 

Harik,  John,  195,  196. 

Hedge  preaching,  157,  158,  160. 

Heiligerlee,  the  battle  of,  172, 173. 

Helder,  278. 

Hendrik,  Duke  of  Mecklenburg- 

Schwerin,  306. 
Herring,  94-96. 
Hessels,  168. 
History  writing,  65,  293. 
Hoen,  Captain,  201. 
Holland,  origin  of  the  name,  4 ; 

kingdom  of,  278-282. 
Hooks,  the  party  so  called,  85,  86, 

88,  109,  120,  123. 
Hoorn,  96. 

Hoorn,  Count,  160,  161,  173,  174. 
House  of  a  Thousand  Fears,  183. 


320 


INDEX 


"Image  storm,  the,"  158,  159. 
Inquisition,  153. 
Ireland,  31. 

Jacqueline  of  Bavaria,  90-105. 

Japanese,  227. 

Jemmingen,  174. 

Jews,  141. 

John  of  Austria,  Don,   208,  210- 

212. 

John  of  Nassau,  172,  213. 
Juliana  of  Stolberg,  148. 

Keezen,  the  party  so  called,  268. 
Kenau  Van  Hasselaer,  191. 
Kijkduin,  277. 
Kingship,  286,  291. 
Kuyper,  Dr.  Abraham,  305. 

Leicester,  Earl  of,  220. 

Leyden,  21,  176,  186. 

Liberty  trees,  274. 

Limburg,  286,  290. 

Lombok,  296. 

Louis  Napoleon,  279,  280. 

Louis  of  Nassau,   172,   174,   175, 

185,  187,  198,  199. 
Louvain,  169. 
Luther,  129. 

Maastricht,  175. 

Margaret  of  Holland,  81,83, 86-88. 

Margaret  of  Parma,  148-151,  153, 

154,  156,  158,  1 60,  167,  1 68. 
Marnix     de      Sainte-Aldegonde, 

Philip  Van,  186,  196,  220. 
Mary.     See  William  and  Mary. 
Mary  of  Burgundy,  118-121. 
Maurice,    Prince,    218,    222-232, 

23S»  2S6. 
Maximilian   of  Austria,  120-125, 

127. 

Middelburg,  71. 

Mondragon,  Cristobal,  188,  189. 
Monks,  48,  65. 
Mons,  186. 
Mook,  198,  199. 
Moreau,  General,  275. 
Motley,  J.  L.,  293. 


Naarden,  189,  190. 

Names,  given  and  family,  63,  130, 


Napoleon     Bonaparte,    276-278, 

280-284. 

Nobles'  procession,  153. 
Norsemen,  48-51. 
Nymegen,  21,  41,  267. 

Orange,  color,  268,  285. 
Orange,  house  of,  258. 
"  Oranje  boven,"  170. 

Pacheco,  184. 

Paleis,  279. 

Paris,  283. 

Parma,  Duke  of,   167,    215,    220, 

221. 

Patrick,  Saint,  (Succat),  31,  38. 
Patriots,  the  party  so  called,  266- 

270. 

Paul  Jones,  264. 
Peace  Congress,  304,  305. 
Philip  the  Fair,  125-128. 
Philip  II.  of  Spain,  128,  142-145, 

148,  149,  162,  163. 
Pichegru,  General,  275. 
Pilgrim  Fathers,  20. 
Printing,  113,  114,    133-135,  141, 


Prussia,  267. 

Pope,  power  of  the,  in  the  middle 

ages,  131. 
Porcelain,  102. 

Radbod,  the  Frisian  king,  35. 
Raven,  the,  in  Norse  navigation, 

5°.  Si- 
Religion,  13,  231-234. 

Renneburg,  the  traitor,  214. 
Requesens,  Don  Luis  de,  197,  200, 

207,  208. 

Romans,  9,  17-27. 
Rotterdam,  183. 

Royal  Institute,  the  Dutch,  280. 
Russian  invasion,  277. 


Saracens,  57,  58,  60. 
Scarlet  letter,  55. 


321 


INDEX 


Scheldt  River,  .241,  269,  290. 
Scheyeningen,  271,  285. 
Scotland,  68. 

Seventeen  provinces  of  the  Neth- 
erlands, the,  140,  171,  288. 
Sidney,  Sir  Philip,  220. 
Slaves,  51,  58. 
Sophia,  Queen,  292,  294. 
Spitzbergen,  237. 
Stadholders,  140,  273. 
States-General,  71,  118. 
Succat.     See  Patrick. 
Swarte  Jan,  183. 

Taxation,  72,  118. 

Ten  Days'  Campaign,  289. 

Terpen,  7-10. 

Texel,  180,  277. 

Thorbecke,  Prime  Minister,  291. 

Treslong,  180,  184. 

Tromp,  Admiral  Martin,  247,  249, 

250,  254,  255. 
Tulips,  239. 
Turks,  54,  55. 

Union  of  Utrecht,  214. 

Utrecht,   32,   68,    180,    182,    214, 

271. 
Utrecht  University,  27,  281. 

Valdez,  200. 
Valenciennes,  161,  162. 
Van  Borselen,  Francis,  103. 
Van  der  Kemp,  Adrian,  265. 
Van  der  Mark,  William,  178-180, 

1 86,  189. 
Van  der  Werf,  Burgomaster,  202, 

203. 

Van  Hasselaer,  Kenau,  191. 
Van  Spijk,  289,  290. 
Veer,  68,  69. 

Velleda,  the  fortune-teller,  22,  23. 
Veluwe,  16. 


Verdun,  41. 
Vianen,  21. 
Vikings,  48-51. 
Vilvoorde,  136. 
Vliet,  20. 

Walcheren,  185,  188,  281. 
Water  Beggars,  154, 170, 177, 179- 

182,  189,  197-203,  207. 
Waterloo,  284. 

White,  Hon.  Andrew  D.,  305. 
Widow,  renunciation  of  all  claim 

to  a  husband's  estate  by  a,  90, 

91. 

Wilfried,  33,  34. 
Wilhelmina,  Queen,  294-306. 
"  Wilhelmus  Lied,"  186.  * 
Willemstad,  270. 
William  I.,  King,  285,  286,  288- 

290. 

William  II.,  King,  284,  290,  291. 
William  III.,  King,  291-294,  302. 
William  II.,  Stadholder,  241,  242, 

245- 
William  III.,  Stadholder,  252-257. 

William  IV.,  Stadholder,  258-260. 
William  V.,  Stadholder,  260,  262- 

264,  271. 

William  and  Mary,  255-257. 
William  of  Orange,  140,  142,  144, 

146-152,  160,  161, 1 68, 171,  175, 

186,  187,  194,210-213,216-219, 

229. 

Williamson,  Hubert,  190. 
Willibrord,  34,  65. 
Windmills,  94. 

Wittekind,  the  Saxon  warrior,  38. 
Woden,  13. 

Zealand,  281,  296. 

Zierikzee,  80. 

Zoutman,  Admiral,  265. 

Zuyder  Zee,  22,  195,  270,  276,  292. 


322 


NOV  30  1934